Holy Living
- A SKETCH OF THE LIFE AND TIMES OF BISHOP TAYLOR.
- HOLY LIVING
- CHAPTER I
- CHAPTER II.
- CHAPTER III.
- CHAPTER IV.
- SECTION I.
- SECTION II.
- SECTION III.
- SECTION IV.
- SECTION V.
- SECTION VI.
- SECTION VII.
- SECTION VIII.
- SECTION IX.
- SECTION X.
- PRAYERS
- A Prayer for the Graces of Faith, Hope, Charity.
- Acts of Love by way of Prayer and Ejaculation; to be used in private.
- A Prayer to be said in any Affliction, as Death of Children, of Husband or Wife, in great Poverty, in Imprisonment, in a sad and disconsolate Spirit, and in Temptations to despair.
- Ejaculations and short Meditations to be used in time of Sickness and Sorrow, or Danger of Death.
- An Act of Faith concerning the Resurrection and the Day of Judgment, to be said by Sick Persons, or meditated.
- Short Prayers to be said by Sick Persons.
- Acts of Hope, to be used by Sick Persons after a pious Life.
- A Prayer to be said in behalf of a Sick or Dying Person.
- A Prayer to be said in a Storm at Sea.
- Then make an Act of Resignation thus:
- A Form of a Vow to be made in this or the like Danger.
- A Prayer before a Journey.
- A Prayer to be said before the hearing or reading the Word of God.
- A Form of Confession of Sins and Repentance, to be used upon Fasting Days, or Days of Humiliation, especially in Lent, and before the Holy Sacrament.
- The Prayer.
- Special Devotions to be used upon the Lords Day, and the great Festivals of Christians.
- A Prayer to be said on the Feast of Christmas, or the Birth of our blessed Saviour Jesus; the same also may be said upon the Feast of the Annunciation and Purification of the Blessed Virgin Mary.
- A Prayer to be said upon our Birth-day, or Day of Baptism.
- A Prayer to be said upon the Days of the Memory of Apostles, Martyrs, etc.
- A Form of Prayer recording all the parts and mysteries of Christs Passion, being a short history of it: to be used especially in the week of the Passions, and before the receiving the blessed Sacrament.
- The Manner of using these Devotions by way of Preparation to the receiving of the blessed Sacrament of the Lords Supper.
- A Prayer of Preparation or Address to the Holy Sacrament.
- Ejaculations to be said before or at the receiving the Holy Sacrament.
Typed by: Kathy Sewell, [email protected]
March 2, 1997
This book is in the public domain.
THE RULE AND EXERCISES
OF
HOLY LIVING:
IN WHICH ARE DESCRIBED THE
MEANS AND INSTRUMENTS OF OBTAINING EVERY VIRTUE
AND THE REMEDIES AGAINST EVERY VICE,
AND CONSIDERATIONS
SERVING TO THE RESISTING ALL TEMPTATIONS.
TOGETHER WITH
PRAYERS
CONTAINING
THE WHOLE DUTY OF A CHRISTIAN,
AND THE PARTS OF DEVOTION FITTED TO ALL OCCASIONS, AND
FURNISHED FOR ALL NECESSITIES.
BY JEREMY TAYLOR, D.D.
Chaplain in Ordinary to King Charles the First, and some time
Lord Bishop of Down and Conner.
_______________________
WITH LIFE OF THE AUTHOR, BY DR. CROLY.
________________________
PHILADELPHIA:
J. W. BRADLEY, 48 N. FOURTH STREET.
1860.
It is a matter of high importance in all days, and especially in days of
popular anxiety like our own, to keep before us the examples of minds
distinguished in the former trials of our country. No theory of virtue is equal
in value to its practice embodied in a wise, pure, and manly understanding.
History, the biography of nations, is too vast, abstract, and simple, for the
guidance of the individual. Its events, like the stars in their courses, large
and luminous, moving at a height above the reach of man, and influenced by
powers and impulses which perplex his science, may excite the wonder or
instruct the wisdom of the philosopher, but the school of mankind is man. To
discover the source alike of his energies and errors, we must have before our
eyes the mechanism of the human frame.
The world is but a perpetual recurrence. The
scenes of the great theater shift continually, but the same characters move
across the stage. The story of the drama may be more sullen, or more splendid,
but while Providence is the guide, and man the agent, the moral will be
unchanged. It is thus a subject of more than curiosity, to determine how
generous and lofty spirits have acted in the emergencies of other times; with
what magnanimity they sustained misfortune, or with what vigour they repelled
injustice; with what purity they withstood temptation, or with what piety they
submitted their wrongs to the hand of Heave. If, in days like ours, the wider
knowledge of human right, itself only the offspring of the wider knowledge of
religion, renders persecution less perilous, yet temptation will always exist.
The distinctions of the world will always be at the service of the world. There
has been in every age a Babylon, and men have had the alternative of
worshipping its golden idol, or paying the penalty of their faith in obscurity
and exclusion. It is then that the man who is not resolved to degrade himself,
should solicit new strength in the communion of those who have fought the good
fight and have gained the crown; that the patriot should study the shape and
countenance of public virtue, as in a gallery of the illustrious dead, and feel
the littleness of all fame that gravitates to faction; that, above all, the
Christian, surrounding himself with their recollections, and shutting out, as
with the curtains of the sanctuary, the heated passions and petulant caprices
of the time, should imbibe new energies of immortality. It is by such uses that
the renown of genius, patriotism, and sanctity becomes a splendid realization;
that the suffering of the past revives as the lesson of present wisdom; that
the living eye catches light from beyond the grave, and the forms catches light
from beyond the grave, and the forms of the saint and martyr stand before us,
like Moses and Elias in the mount, in their glory, telling at once of the brief
suffering and the imperishable reward.
Jeremy, afterwards Bishop of Down, Connor, and
Dromore in Ireland, was born in Trinity parish, Cambridge, the third son of
Nathaniel and Mary Taylor, and baptized, August 15, 1613. Like many others
destined for future eminence, he owed nothing to birth, for his father was a
barber. But his genius could dispense with the honors of ancestry; and the man
who could at once instruct the wise by his learning, and delight the elegant by
his fancy, required but little extrinsic aid for fame. Yet even his father's
trade, connected as it then was with the rude practice of surgery, was less
humble than at present; and his family had once possessed a small estate in
Gloucestershire, himself being the direct descendant of the memorable Dr.
Rowland Taylor, chaplain to Archbishop Cranmer, and martyred in the third year
of Mary of bloody memory, on Aldham Common, in his parish of Hadleigh, in the
county of Suffolk.
The rector of Hadleigh was a man of acquirements
sufficient to have moved the envy of the ignorant, and of principles obnoxious
to the bigots of his day; but Gardner, his persecutor, is said to have had the
additional motive, of coveting the family estate at Frampton, on which that
rapacious minister laid his hands, like another Ahab; like his Jewish
prototype, to perish before he could enjoy the possession. The family were thus
reduced to sudden poverty, and retained in poverty by adopting, what was not
uncommon among the families of the persecuted, a turn for puritanism. This
could earn but little favour from the vigorous government of Elizabeth, which
had suffered too much from Popish turbulence to look without alarm on religious
disputes of any kind; and still less from the loose government of James, in
which alternate superstitions seemed to take the lead in the royal mind,
everything was patronized but truth, and every art of government was practiced
but manliness and honour.
In his thirteenth year, August 18, 1626, the
future bishop was sent to Caius College, Cambridge, as a sizer, or "poor
scholar;" an order of free students analogous to the "lay-brothers" of the
Romish convents. The duties of this class were, literally, to serve the higher
rank of students, at least in all the public ministrations of the college. The
feelings of our later age revolt from this employment of men running the common
race of learning. But it should be remembered, that in the time of Taylor, the
division of ranks in general society was at once more distinct and less
painful; that this education was the only one attainable by the poor; and that,
in the precarious property and narrow funds of the colleges, there was the
stronger ground for insisting on the natural maxim, that those who cannot pay
in money must pay in kind.
At Cambridge it cannot be discovered that Taylor
succeeded in any of the more public objects of scholarship, increase of rank or
increase of income. The dignities and emoluments of the University were then,
as now, devoted to proficiency in the severer sciences. And we can be as little
surprised that the poetic richness of his mind should have sought other means
of distinctions, than we can regret that his future eloquence and various
literature were not involved at their birth in the robe of the mathematician.
Accident first brought his peculiar faculties into notice. A fellow-student,
Risdon, having been appointed lecturer in St. Paul's Cathedral, employed Taylor
as his substitute during a temporary absence. The youth of the new preacher,
for he was then but twenty years old,[1] his
happiness of expression and fervour of piety, pleased the people. His rising
fame reached the ears of Laud, then newly translated from London to the see of
Canterbury the archbishop sent for him, objected only to his youth, a fault
which Taylor, in the quaint humour of the age, prayed his grace to forgive, as,
if he lived, he would amend it; and took him under his protection.
The archbishop of Canterbury must always be a man
of eminent influence; his peerage, his patronage, and his revenue, place in his
hands the largest share of practical power that belongs to any individual
beneath the throne. If the lord chancellor seem to rival him in extent of
patronage, he falls altogether short of him in the chief point of possession -
its continuance. Royal will or legislative caprice may disrobe the great law
functionary in a moment, while nothing but the power which kings and subjects
alike must obey, can deprive the great prelate of his income or his authority.
Laud in the archiepiscopal chair, was the most powerful man in England. A
vigorous mind, amply furnished with learning, a daring temperament, and a
personal passion for control, were the qualities with which he undertook the
guidance of the distracted state. But "the times were out of joint," and his
lofty, bold, and headstrong spirit was the last that could have set them
straight. In other days he might have attained secure eminence. In the early
struggles of the reformation, his intrepidity and knowledge might have made him
a second Luther. In the generation that followed the civil war, his munificence
would have raised the fallen church, as his love of order would have restored
her subordination, and his courage asserted her privileges. Hypocrisy has few
darker stains than the blood of Laud. His age, his literature, and his
fidelity, would have rescued him from all hands but those of men struggling to
seize on power by trampling on religion. Faction, which sacrificed his life,
exhibited its last malignity in tarnishing his tomb. But time does justice to
all; and like the false inscription on the Greek watch-tower, the common
operation of years have swept away the libel, and shown the truth graven on the
imperishable material within.
Taylor, by the archbishop's advice, removed to
Oxford, where his patron, as chancellor and visitor, had obvious means of
rendering him service. He was admitted Master of Arts in University College,
and finally, notwithstanding the resistance of Sheldon, warden of All Souls,
(afterwards archbishop of Canterbury,) he succeeded to a fellowship, lapsed to
the visitor in January 1636. Preferment now followed him. In March 1638, he was
presented by Juxon, Bishop of London, to the rectory of Uppingham in
Rutlandshire, having been already appointed chaplain to Laud. On the 5th of
November, 1638, he preached his first memorable sermon, that on the
gunpowder-plot, before the University. On the 27th of May, 1639, being then in
his 26th year, he married at Uppingham, Phoebe Langsdale, of whom little more
is known, that that her brother was a physician practicing at Gainsborough. By
her he had three sons, of whom one died in infancy; the other two grew up to
manhood.
Taylor was now to be called into scenes, which,
if they deeply tried the constancy of all men, gave larger space for the
labours of ability and virtue. In 1642, he joined the king at Oxford, and
signalized himself by his treatise of "Episcopacy Asserted," a publication
commended by his majesty's command. For this he obtained, by the royal mandate,
the degree of Doctor of Divinity. But, for this, the Puritans, neither slow to
discover, nor careless to punish, their enemies, sequestered his living.
Taylor, however, found a protector in Christopher Hatton, afterwards Lord
Hatton, of Kirby, who had been his neighbour at Uppingham; an individual in
high confidence with the king, by whom he had been appointed comptroller of the
household, but who derived still higher honour from his protection of Taylor,
and his suggestion of the "Monasticon" to the learned Dugdale. Loyalty was now
dangerous, but Taylor remained with the king, frequently preaching before the
court at Oxford, and attending the royal marches as chaplain. The affairs of
Charles had already become unfortunate, and his chaplain soon felt his share in
national calamity. He was taken prisoner in the defeat of the royalists at
Cardigan, February 1744. His dedication of the "Liberty of Prophesying" alludes
to this event in his characterist style: -
"In the great storm which dashed the vessel of
the church in pieces, I had been cast on the coast of Wales, and in a little
boat thought to have enjoyed that rest and quietness, which in England, in a
far greater, I could not hope for. Here I cast anchor, and thinking to ride
safely, the storm followed me with so impetuous a violence, that it broke a
cable, and I lost my anchor. And here again I was exposed to the mercy of the
sea, and the gentleness of an element which could neither distinguish things or
persons; and but that He, who stilleth the raging of the sea and the noise of
his waves, and the madness of the people, had provided a plank for me, I had
been lost to all the opportunities of content or study. But I know not whether
I have been more preserved by the courtesies of my friends or the gentleness
and mercy of a noble enemy." Adding in the Greek, the passage from St. Paul's
shipwreck, - "For the barbarous people showed us no little kindness; for they
kindled a fire, and received us every one, because of the present rain, and
because of the cold."[2]
Yet such was force of his diligence, or the
ardour of his devotion, that even imprisonment could not render him idle. In
this year of trouble he published at Oxford, an edition of the Psalter, and a
"Defence of the Liturgy." But the effect of the times was visible in his
anonymous publication of the former, and his sheltering the "Defence" under the
name of his protector, Hatton. There was still one melancholy meeting to take
place, which must have deeply tried the spirit of a man loyal on principle. The
royal cause was now extinct, the unhappy king was in the hands of his enemies;
and, whether as an additional source of bitterness, or in the contemptuous
display of mercy to the undone, the usurping government permitted the royal
chaplains to visit him in his prison. Charles, foreseeing his fate, gave them
parting tokens of his regard, and among the rest gave Taylor his watch, and a
few rubies which had studded the ebony case of his Bible.
Taylor was now utterly destitute; if he can be
called so, who has learning, contentment, and character. His living was seized,
his person liable to daily danger; and the crowd, who instinctively follow
change, could feel but little sympathy for the faith that clung to a fallen
throne. Yet he contrived to live, and to support his family. Joining with
Nicholson, afterwards Bishop of Gloucester, and Wyatt, afterwards Prebendary of
Lincoln, he commenced a school at Lanhangel, in Wales, which produced some
profit, and even obtained some distinction. But a still stronger evidence of
the faculty of abstracting his mind from the sense of surrounding troubles, one
of the rarest evidences of vigor, is to be found in the composition of his most
distinguished work, "The Liberty of Prophesying," at this period. The epistle
dedicatory to Hatton, touchingly enumerates the disadvantages of his book, as
written in adversity and want, without library or leisure. He had no
auxiliaries but his memory and his Bible. Yet with a mind like his, could he
have wanted much more.
Taylor's first wife had died in the year 1642.
After six years of widowhood he married again, probably in 1648. This wife had
her share in the history of the time. She was said to be a daughter of Charles,
during that earlier period of his life when the profligate Buckingham acted as
his father's favorite, and his own example. She was a beautiful girl, strongly
resembling the king in temper and countenance, was brought up in mysterious
privacy in Glamorgan, and was provided for by the estate of Mandiman, in the
country of Carmarthen. But the times were fatal to all regular possessions, and
whatever solace he might have found in the society of his young and lovely
wife, he appears to have derived little increase of income from her fortune.
But Taylor was still further to be tried. When
the men of our age, whether in religion or politics, talk of grievances; they
should turn to the times when the popular will had cleared away all obstacles,
and for the fruit of its blood rebellion had the discovery, that religious
independence finds its natural result in the tyranny of a sect, and republican
freedom in the tyranny of the sword. In those days merit was distinguished only
by a more conspicuous share of the general suffering; and Taylor's learning,
meekness, and purity naturally became offenses, where hypocrisy was virtue. In
1654, he had republished his "Catechism for Children" in a larger shape, and
entitled it the "Golden Grove," in compliment to the Earl of Carbery, whose
neighbouring estate bore that name. The preface, though intended simply to
conciliate the Protector in favour of the fallen Church, yet contained
expressions which were conceived by the quick jealousies of the day, to convey
insult to the influential clergy. The hand of power was then as rapid as its
eye was keen, and Taylor was thrown into prison. From this he was soon
released; but again, in the same year, he was seized, and placed in custody in
Chepstow Castle. In neither case does his confinement seem to have been of
peculiar severity. In the latter, he writes to a friend, "I now have that
liberty, that I can receive my letters, and send any; for the gentlemen in
whose custody I am, as they are careful of their charges, so are civil to my
person." It is probable that his wife's fortune assisted largely in his
liberation, if not in the civility of his jailers. It will be acknowledged, to
the honour of the national manners, that the civil war of England exhibited but
few instances of ferocity. The kindlier feelings of peaceful life were not
altogether trampled out by the violence of the conflict, and strong as might be
the indignation of outraged loyalty on one side, and heated as might be the
fanaticism of the other, the combatants had not altogether forgotten that their
antagonists were human beings.
Yet, perhaps, even this terrible crisis was not
without its value. The thunderstorm clears the atmosphere. The agony of the
parental disease has often taught temperance to the children. The Revolution of
1648 beginning in war and ending in tyranny, may have inspired the wisdom by
which the Revolution of 1688 began in peace and ended in the establishment of
the throne. Still, if the experience was useful, it must not be forgotten by us
and by our children, that the price was tremendous. Man should be content with
easier knowledge. We may well shrink from securing the fertility of the harvest
by steeping the seed in blood. Of all the instruments of change, civil
commotion is the least manageable by the hand of man: once let loose, it is
alike beyond resistance and beyond control; we might as well attempt to turn
the lightnings into a weapon, or direct the invisible arrows of the pestilence.
The gallantry of the English nobles and gentlemen, the solemn intrepidity of
their adversaries, the chivalric spirit of Charles, and the soaring ambition of
Cromwell, have robed the civil was with the splendours of romance; but the eye
that looks beneath that robe sees only the wounds of a dying people. If war,
with all the glories of foreign triumph, is but a dreadful necessity; what must
be its evil, when it breaks up civilized life at home; when it visits the land,
not in the echo of the remote thunders, but in the earthquake that convulses
the soil under its feet? What must be the national loss, when every man who
falls is a subject lost to the sovereign and a son lost to the country; when
every drop of blood shed in the conflict is drawn from the national veins; when
the scaffold completes the massacre of the field, and when both are but a more
sweeping parricide?
And the results are as delusive as the price is
bitter. Until we can gather grapes of thorns and figs of thistles, we shall
never find rebellion the parent of liberty. That fair form is not to be born of
the fierce, intoxicated, and adulterous union of Democracy with Ambition. If
the experiment was ever made with all its advantages, it was in the supremacy
of Cromwell. No man of his age possessed nobler qualities for distinction; no
man of any age was more fitted for the throne of a great kingdom. Unshaken
courage, unequaled sagacity, and inexhaustible resource, threw a light round
him, that dazzled the eye of England, and from his throne spread its lusters to
his country. The royalist cause melted away before him as he rose. The habitual
jealousy of the continent bowed down before his established splendour. For
England he extorted from Europe the homage due to unrivaled success in
diplomacy and war. For himself, he extorted for usurpation the honours due to
right, and compelled the old monarchies to acknowledge the illustrious upstart
as one of the family of kings.
Yet, such is the inevitable evil of all
rebellion, that this great leader, who, on a legitimate throne might have been
as magnanimous as he was brave, was forced to stoop to the arts of the tyrant.
A sovereign by nature, he was a despot by necessity. The great rebel was
compelled to study the temperament of all the rebels beneath him. Where the
power was given by felons, the first man in England could be only the first
jailer. No man was taught more keenly that usurpation must never sleep. At the
height of his supremacy, he felt himself watched by a faction, whose cunning
and virulence he still dreaded, though he had first duped their craftiness, and
then broken their power. Cromwell, with one hand defending himself from the
dagger of the fanatic, and with the other struggling to retain the scepter from
the grasp of the loyalist, was driven into tyranny; and the nation soon
discovered, by bitter experience, that it had only exchanged complaints for
sufferings, gradual freedom for remorseless authority, and the light and
negligent curb of an ancient monarchy, for the heavy and galling harness of an
iron despotism.
This cycle has been run in every period, and in
every variety of national character - in the brilliant levity of Greece, in the
stern ambition of Rome, in the fiery passions of France; and it will be run
again, in the first nation which, proclaiming violence as the instrument of
right, summons the populace to advance the liberties of the people, and erects
the demagogue into the high-priest of the profaned constitution.
That a scholar, a divine, and a man of peace,
like Taylor, should have been twice imprisoned under the protectorate, is among
the deepest evidences of the general state of coercion.
But in those periods of distress, he seems to
have always found especial friends. "I will never leave thee nor forsake thee"
is a high promise; often performed to the servants of the truth, under
circumstances which must have greatly augmented their confidence, and cheered
their trials. Taylor, though now apparently reduced to the most serious
difficulties, stripped of his professional means, unable to pursue his school,
and not merely under the suspicion, but in the hands, of vigilant and angry
power, found a new patron in Vaughan, Earl of Carbery.
Vaughan was a man of talent and distinction; who
had held high offices, and held them with a successive increase to his
character. Having served with honour in the wars of Ireland, for which he
received the knighthood of the Bath, he had subsequently taken up arms for
Charles, in the civil war, and borne the chief royalist command in South Wales.
His services were too important to be forgotten by even the negligent gratitude
of Charles II; and at the Revolution, when so many of the noble cavaliers were
left to pine in discontent, Vaughan received the title of Lord Vaughan of
Emlyn. Even in the ruin of the royalist cause, either fear of his talent, or
respect for his integrity had procured him milder terms than usual from the
parliament. He was permitted to compound for his estates; And the relief which
was thus given to this loyal and able nobleman furnished him with the means of
liberality to Taylor, and probably to many other adherents of the fallen cause.
Lord Vaughan's second wife had a poetic reputation. She was Alice, the eleventh
daughter of John Egerton, first Earl of Bridgwater, memorable as the Lady in
Comus. Milton's verses might have embalmed the remembrance of inferior birth
and beauty; the Lady in Comus is immortal.
Though the churches were closed against the
clergy of the Church, divine service was sustained, wherever it was possible;
and under the roof and in the immediate neighbourhood of this great family,
Taylor delivered his yearly course of sermons. During the entire period he was
the reverse of idle; his zeal never suffered him to adopt the easy excuses of
indolence, or to find in distress a ground for the abandonment of duty. He now
wrote his "Apology for set Forms of Liturgy against the pretence of the
Spirit," which was shortly followed by one of his most distinguished works, the
"Life of Christ." During the three following years, his labours were chiefly,
his Sermon, and his "Holy Living and Dying;" the latter, a volume which
originated in the desire, as it was written for the use of the first Lady
Carbery, and dedicated by him to her husband after her death.
Another of those friends whose services were of
peculiar value during this period, was the well-known and estimable John
Evelyn. Evelyn had accidentally heard him preach in the city in 1654, and it is
easy to conceive that Taylor's sincerity and eloquence could not be heard with
neglect by a man like Evelyn. How casual admiration was heightened into
habitual friendship we have now no means of knowing; but it appears that,
shortly after, Evelyn paid him a visit, "to confer with him about spiritual
matters." Evelyn's nature was liberal, his means were opulent for the time, and
Taylor undoubtedly enjoyed the advantages of both, during a period in which his
personal resources had utterly failed him. In 1656, he visited London, and
dined with Evelyn at his seat, Sayes Court. He there enjoyed, at least, the
feast of reason, for the company were Berkeley, Boyle, and Wilking, all three
eminent in their day for scientific ardour. Of this meeting, and still more, of
the comforts and enjoyments of his accomplished friend, he speaks with natural
pleasure in a letter of which the following is a fragment: -
"To John Evelyn, Esq.
"Honored and dear Sir,
"I hope your servant brought my apology with
him, and that I am already excused in your thoughts, that I did not return an
answer yesterday to your friendly letter. Sir, I did believe myself so very
much bound to you, for your so kind, so friendly reception of me in your
Tusculanum, that I had some little wonder upon me, when I saw you making
excuses that it was no better. Sir, I came to see you and your lady, an am
highly pleased that I did so, and found all your circumstances to be a heap and
union of blessings.
"I am pleased indeed at the order of all your
outward things, and look upon you not only as a person,by way of thankfulness
to God for his mercies and goodness to you, specially obliged to a great
measure of piety; but also as one who being freed in great degrees from secular
cares and impediments, can wholly intend what you so passionately desire, the
service of God. But, now I am considering yours, and enumerating my own
pleasures, I cannot but add that though I could not choose but be delighted by
seeing all about you, yet my delices (delights) were really in seeing you
severe and unconcerned in these things, and now in finding your affections
wholly a stranger to them."
Taylor had found another friend in Mr. Thurland,
afterwards Sir Edward, and one of the barons of the Exchequer. This eminent
lawyer was also the author of a work on Prayer, and either from congenial
studies or personal respect, he was induced to offer Taylor an asylum in
London. He mentions this offer in a letter to Evelyn.
"Truly, sir, I do continue in my desire to settle
about London, and am only hindered by my res an gusta domi, but hope in God's
goodness, that he will create to me such advantages as may make it possible,
and when I am there, I shall expect the daily issues of the Divine Providence
to make all things else well. Because I am much persuaded that by my abode in
your voisinage (neighbourhood) of London, I may receive advantages of society
and books, to enable me better to serve God and the interest of souls. I have
no other design in it, and I hope God will second it with his blessing. Sir, I
desire you to present my thanks and service to Mr. Thurland; his society were
argument enough to make me desire a dwelling there abouts, but his other
kindnesses will also make it possible." The letter proceeds to say, that in
acknowledgement of Thurland's liberality he will send him his new work "On the
Doctrine of Original Sin;" and concludes with a touch of melancholy and
resignation. "Sir, - I am in some little disorder by reason of the deat of a
little child of mine, a boy that lately made us very glad. But now he rejoices
in his little orb while we think, and sigh, and long to be as safe as he
is."
One of the evils of reputation now assailed him.
The man who obtains popularity, will have imitators; and he is fortunate, whose
imitators neither degrade his style nor disgrace his character. In this year a
small volume appeared, entitled a frivolous dissertation on the arts of female
beauty; a work unworthy of Taylor's dignity, alike in its subject and its
performance. Yet it was evidently the publisher's intent to impress the idea
that it proceeded from his pen. The frontis-piece, a female figure with the sun
on her breast, was taken from one of his known works. The peculiarities of his
language, and even his use of italics, were adopted; and though the preface
attributed the work "chiefly to a lady," yet the crowd of classic quotations
which filled its pages, strongly contradicted, and were probably intended to
contradict, the declaration. The haste of criticism, or perhaps the bitterness
of party, charged this trivial work on Taylor; but Bishop Heber, his latest and
best biographer, has indignantly defended his memory. The language of the
treatise wants all the higher characteristics of a pen to which eloquence was
familiar; its sentiments are opposed to his recorded opinions; and thus failing
in the lineaments of vigorous expression and moral dignity which belonged to
all the offspring of his mind, who can doubt its illegitimacy?
In 1662, the artifice was pushed still further,
and an edition appeared with J.T. D.D., his known initials, on its title page.
But the dexterity of fabricators in those days was more daring, and even more
disingenuous, than in our own. The knavery of pirating names was common, and
Taylor only underwent the penalty of having made a reputation which was a
passport to popular applause.
Taylor's tenderness of heart was sadly tried in
the loss of children. Distressing us this must be to any man, it must have been
doubly so to one who could write thus glowingly on the domestic affections. In
his treatise entitled the "Marriage Ring," he thus speaks, in the quaint yet
poetic language of his time.
"Nothing can sweeten felicity but love. No man
can tell, but he that loves his children, how many delicious accents make a
man's heart dance in the pretty conversation of those dear pledges. Their
childishness, their stammering, their little anger, their innocence, their
imperfections, their necessities, are so many emanations of joy and comfort to
him that delights in their persons and society. But he who loves not his wife
and children feeds a lioness at home, and broods over a nest of sorrows, and
blessing itself cannot make him happy. So that all the commandments of God,
enjoining a man to love his wife, are nothing but so many necessities and
capacities of joy. She that is loved is safe, and he that loves is joyful. Love
is an union of all things excellent. It contains in it proportion and
satisfaction, and rest and confidence, and I wish that this were so much
proceeded in, that the heathens themselves could not go beyond us in this
virtue, and its proper and appendant happiness. Tiberius Gracchus chose to die
for the safety of his wife, and yet methinks to a Christian to do so should be
no hard thing, for many servants will die for their masters, and many gentlemen
for their friend, but the examples are not so many of those that are ready to
die for their nearest relations. And yet some there have been. - Baptiste
Fregosa tells of a Neapolitan, that gave himself as slave to the Moors that he
might follow his wife, and this is a greater thing than to die."
During this period, he kept up his correspondence
with Evelyn, and between those two amiable yet grave men, the topics were
naturally of a grave and lofty nature. It appears that Evelyn desired to have
some difficulties resolved, relative to the state of the soul after death.
Taylor answers him with a curious mixture of metaphysics and morality, the
worthless learning of the schoolmen, alternately clouding and clearing away
before the vigour of an intelligent mind:- "But, sir, that which you check at,
is the immortality of the soul; that is, its being, in the interval before the
day of judgment, which you conceive is not agreeable to the Apostles Creed, or
current of Scriptures, assigning as you suppose the felicity of Christians to
the resurrection. Before I speak to the thing, I must note this, that the parts
which you oppose to each other may both be true, for the soul may be immortal,
and yet not beatified till the resurrection. For to be, and not to be happy or
miserable, are not necessary consequences to each other. For the soul may be
alive, and yet not feel; as it may be alive, and not understand. So is our soul
when we are fast asleep, and so Nebuchadnezzar's soul when he had his
lycanthropy. The Socinians that say the soul sleeps, do not suppose that she is
mortal, but that for want of her instrument she cannot do any act of life. The
soul returns to God, and that in no sense is death, and I think the death of
the soul cannot be defined, and there is no death to spirits but
annibilation."
He then adverts to the felicity of Christians
after the day of judgment; and, in illustration of the soul's existence,
quotes the fable of Licetus, "his lamps, whose flame had stood still fifteen
hundred years in Tully's wife's vault." He proceeds to say, that "as the
element of fire, and the celestial globes of fire, eat nothing, but live on
themselves, so can the soul when it is divested of its relative (the body.)"
Such was the philosophy of his day, borrowed from the Greeks, and laughed at by
the moderns.
But when he relies on his own understanding his
remarks become of more value. In answer to the allowable question - why St.
Paul, preaching Jesus and the resurrection, said nothing of the intermediate
existence of the souls; he answers, that the resurrection of the body included
and supposed that. And, secondly, "that if it had not, yet what need had he to
preach that to them, which in Athens was believed by almost all their schools;
for, besides that the immortality of the soul was believed by the philosophers
of Egypt, India, and Chaldea, it was acknowledged by all the leading
philosophers of Greece." To this, however, he adds the remarkably insecure
argument, in which, as he expresses it, "St. Paul, speaking of his rapture into
heaven, purposely and by design twice says, "whether in body or out of the body
I know not;" by which Taylor observes, "he plainly says, that it was no ways
unlikely, that his rapture was out of the body, and therefore it is very
agreeable to the nature of the soul, to operate in separation from the
body."
It is striking, to find a man of his sagacity,
falling into the common error of commentators on this remarkable passage; and
not less striking to find him followed in it by Bishop Heber; who remarks, that
"from that text alone, the probability is, that the apostle himself took the
separate existence of the soul for granted, and believed it extremely possible
for a man to be and think, and even to acquire new ideas, without the existence
of the body."
Reluctant as we may be, to reject an argument
which supports the great and consoling truth of the "intermediate state," it
must be acknowledged, that this interpretation is altogether unsustained by the
text. Nothing can be clearer, that that St. Paul is not speaking of himself,
but of another. He distinctly states, that he will glory, not in the visions
and revelations made to himself, but in those made to an individual, in whose
Divine visitations he might rejoice with safety and propriety. While, as to
himself, if he were to glory in anything, it should be in his
infirmities; which is obviously equivalent to not glorying at all.
Having thus fully established the distinction he
proceeds to speak of this highly-favoured individual, as one whom he knew
fourteen years before, though whether he were now dead or living, he could not
say; or as the text expresses it, "whether in the body I cannot tell, or
whether out of the body I cannot tell; God knoweth.[3] The phrase "out of the body," being the common Scripture
phrase for death; and as such used by St. Paul himself, when he desires to be
"absent from the body, and present with the Lord." Under the usual
interpretation the whole passage is a mass of perplexity.
Yet in the midst of those important studies, this
estimable man was not to escape the prying and persecuting spirit of the time.
His printer, Royston, had prefixed to his "Collections of Offices" an engraving
of our Lord in prayer. The representations, which printers had been so long in
the habit of prefixing to their volumes, were regarded as idolatrous by the
new-born conscience of the age. The scruple had even gone to the extent of an
act for punishing those formidable transgressions by fine and imprisonment.
Taylor was not a man likely to provoke authority, for the mere indulgence of
opposition; and it could scarcely be supposed that he felt inclined to pay more
homage to Popery than to government. But those were the days for which zealots
had cavilled and rebels had fought; and the triumph of both had alike issued in
the direct overthrow of their principles. It is enough to say of this period
and its law, that Taylor was committed to a prison for a third time.
His place of confinement was the Tower; whether
as implying an offence more nearly touching on high-treason, or from the
crowded state of the other prisons in this era of successful freedom! How long
he might have been destined by the mercy of his accusers to remain there, is
not now to be known; for the same friendship which had never failed him, again
interposed. Evelyn exerted himself to represent his innocence to the ruling
powers. Cromwell, who persecuted only from policy, while others persecuted from
zeal, was probably not disinclined to let such a prisoner go free: Evelyn's
entreaty, that his learned and pious friend might be allowed to explain his
conduct, was accordingly listed to; and, after an incarceration of two months,
he regained his liberty.
But the experiment of clemency under the
protectorate was not to be safety hazarded again; and Taylor's friends now
consulted how to withdraw him altogether from the vigilant eyes that watched
his career in England. While he remained in London he would have boldly
continued to officiate, and administer the sacraments, in the private meetings
of his people. But Episcopacy had been extinguished, and the angry strength of
government was bent on crushing the remnants of the church. Edward, Earl of
Conway, the proprietor of large estates near Lisburn in Ireland, now proposed
to Evelyn that his friend should remove there to take a lectureship then at the
earl's disposal.
Taylor was strongly disinclined to leave England,
even though his steps there were in the lion's den. After thanking Evelyn for
his unwearied kindness, he told his thoughts freely of this unpalatable change.
"I like not," says his letter, "the condition of being a lecturer under the
disposal of another. Sir, the stipend is so inconsiderable, that it will not
pay the charge of removing myself and family. It is wholly arbitrary, for the
triers may overthrow it, or the vicar may forbid it, or the subscribers may
die, or grow weary, or be absent. I beseech you, sir, pay my thanks to your
friend who had so much kindness for me as to intend my benefit." He seems here
to have had a correct idea of the "voluntary principle;" but his reluctance was
overcome, probably by the remonstrances of his friends, who knew more of his
danger, and feared more for him than he feared for himself. He accordingly set
out, furnished with letters to the leading persons of Ireland, the lord
chancellor, the chief baron, the general in command, and even with a letter
from Cromwell himself, under his signet. In Ireland he divided his residence
between Lisburn and the neighbourhood of Portmore, a princely mansion built by
Inigo Jones, and belonging to the Conway family. Here he found at once
seclusion and safety. The surrounding country is romantic: the great lake of
Lough Neah washed the park of Portmore; and in its sylvan and lonely islets, he
is said to have frequently indulged his love of nature and solitude. Here, too,
he proceeded with renewed vigour in the great work, which he had founded as the
pillar of his fame, and it was to the shelter of Portmore that the age owed the
completion of the "Ductor Dubitantium." Yet his shelter was not altogether
secure, for even there he was denounced by an informer, to the Irish privy
council, as a dangerous character; the chief pungency of the crime being, that
he had used the sign of the cross in private baptism. For such treasons men
were thrown into dungeons in the days of our ancestors! Taylor was ordered up
to Dublin, in the depth of winter. The result of his journey was a severe
illness, which however probably saved him from the greater severity of
persecution.
But his trials were at last to approach their
end. To publish his great work, and to renew his intercourse with his friends,
he travelled onwards to London. The times were anxious, the great usurper was
dead, the army had resumed its old power of disposing of the state, and all
eyes were turned on its general. Monk, tardy and cold, yet artificial and
dexterous, still kept the nation in suspense. At this critical period, some of
the bolder loyalists came forward, and drew up a declaration of confidence in
the general. Taylor, who regarded both life and death only as the means of
zealously serving the truth, was among the first to sign this momentous paper.
The confidence thus given to Monk was the signal for the restoration of the
monarchy.
If Charles was yet to disappoint the national
hopes, no sovereign was ever welcomed with more sincere rejoicing. All men were
weary of the past. The misery of revolution had been fully felt: the
unspeakable wretchedness of living at the caprice of a popular assembly, had
penetrated into every cottage; even the sullen tyranny of the protectorate had
been felt as a relief from the restless vexations of popular rule; and so deep
was the disgust earned by republicanism, that the nation, in a moment of
confidence, as rash as their disgust was sincere, threw themselves, and their
liberties together, at the foot of the young king.
In the general re-establishment of the church,
Taylor could not be disregarded without palpable injustice. His piety,
learning, and sufferings had been equally conspicuous. He was well known to
many powerful men round the throne. Whether his having married the natural
sister of the king contributed to his advancement, is not ascertained; though
if Charles desired to remove her from his immediate presence, it might have
contributed to his location at a distance from court. On the 6th of August,
1660, Taylor was appointed to the bishopric of Down and Conner in Ireland; and
soon after elected vice-chancellor of the university of Dublin.
He had at length found a situation worthy of his
activity and of his feelings. His first attention was directed to the affairs
of the university. His knowledge of mankind told him that education was the
great instrument of civil order and religious truth; and his well-won
experience had proved that universities along can dispense education without
hazard to the state, and sustain the stream of national religion without
sullying its purity. He found the revenues of the university dilapidated, and
the lands in many instances given away. So great were the disorders introduced
under the Commonwealth, that none of the existing scholars or fellows had legal
titles, all having been introduced by irregular election, or forced on the
electors by the government. Taylor took upon himself the labour of revising the
statutes of Bishop Bedel, and establishing others required by the new
circumstances of the university.
In this sense, he may be regarded as a second
founder of that noble Institution, which, under Providence, has been the great
source and sustainer of Protestantism and freedom in the sister country - not
destitute of those displays which make national fame; sending out, from time to
time, those magnificent minds, her Burkes and Grattans, which belong not to
provinces, but empires, and come periodically to reinforce the intellect of
mankind; but, in all periods, by the vigour and exactness of her learning, and
the manliness and purity of her principles, transmitting knowledge, loyalty,
and religion, into the bosom of the land: - a great luminary, on which, for
centuries, has depended all the moral sunshine of Ireland; sending out, from
time to time, flashes and emanations, of a lustre that breaks through all her
clouds; and even in her gloomiest hours, shooting its influence through the
soil, kindling every latent seed that is yet to vegetate into national virtue,
and preparing the more perfect day.
"Aggredere, o
magnos, aderit jam tempus, honores;
Cara Deum soboles!"
The Bishop's merits were to be still
further honoured. During the Commonwealth, Ireland had been almost wholly
denuded of its Episcopalian clergy. By the exertions of the Duke of Ormond they
now began to be restored. On the 27th of January, 1661, two archbishops and ten
bishops were consecrated in the cathedral of St. Patrick, in Dublin, by
Bramhall, the primate. And in the next month the Bishop of Down was called to
the Irish privy council, and shortly afterwards appointed to the administration
of the small adjoining diocese of Dromore. But if sudden authority has often
been a dangerous trial to unsettled virtue, it only exhibited more largely the
dignity and mercy of his mind. The Irish massacre of 1641, had thrown vast
tracts of country into the hands of government. The civil war had next
perverted might into rapine, and the Commonwealth had finally consolidated
rapine into law. In Ireland all the elements of order had been confounded. It
was now the difficult task of the legitimate government to bring society into
form once more. The question of the confiscated estates might have offered a
snare to an orator ambitious of influence, or to a man of influence eager for
possession. But Taylor's language on this subject was worthy of his principles.
With equal force and simplicity, he thus addressed his fellow legislators: -
"You cannot obey God, unless you do justice, for
this also is better than sacrifice, said Solomon. For Christ, who is the sun of
righteousness, is a sun and shield to them that do righteously.
"You are to give sentence in the causes of half a
nation; and he had needs be a wise and good man who divides the inheritance
among brethren, that he may not be abused by contrary pretences, nor biassed by
the interest of friends, nor transported with the unjust thoughts even of a
just revenge, nor allured by the opportunities of spoil, nor blinded by gold,
which puts out the eyes of wise men, nor cozened by pretended zeal. For justice
ought to be the simplest thing in the world, and to be measured by nothing but
truth, and by laws, and by the decrees of princes."
The passage which follows is worthy of being
recorded among the first maxims of national justice in troubled times.
"But whatever you do, let not the pretence of a
different religion make you think it lawful to oppress any man in his just
rights; for not opinions, but laws, and doing as we would be done to, are the
measures of justice. And though justice does alike to all men, Jew and
Christian, Lutheran and Calvinist; yet, to do right to them that are of another
opinion, is the way to win them. But if you, for conscience sake, do them
wrong, they will hate both you and your religion."
He concludes with a fine enunciation of his noble
principle: - "You must be as just as the law, and you must be as merciful as
your religion. And you have no way to tie those together, but to follow the
pattern in the mount - do as God does, who in judgment remembers mercy."
This pious and learned man was now approaching
his close. It is among the mysterious dispensations of Providence, that some of
the purest-minded of men have been the most subjected to personal afflictions.
Yet while this world is to be regarded only as a school of the human spirit,
and the Deity holds in his hand boundless compensation for all suffering, it is
only the work of reason, to be convinced that the deeper affliction has been
laid on for purposes essential to the richer reward.
At an early period of life, Taylor had lost all
his sons but two. And now, when affluence and rank seemed sent to brighten the
remainder of his anxious and ardent days, those two died, both by premature
deaths, - His elder son, a captain of horse in the king's service, in a duel
with a brother officer, who also fell; and his second son, of a consumption, in
the house of Villiers, Duke of Buckingham, to whom he was private secretary.
Grief for the former of those losses, hung heavily upon the father's heart; and
though the death of his second son occurred in England, but on the day before
the commencement of his own final illness in Ireland, the knowledge of his
disease, and of its almost inevitable consummation, may have added bitterness
to the blow. On the 3rd of August 1667, the Bishop was seized with a fever,
which, acting on an enfeebled frame and a depressed mind, made such progress,
that within ten days he breathed his last, in the 55th year of his age, and
tenth of his episcopacy; - thenceforth to live among the glorious concourse,
whom change can touch no more.
"Quique sacerdotes
casti, dum vita mancbat,
Quique pii vates,
Inventas aut qui vitam excoluere per artes
Quique sui memores alios fecere
merendo."
His wife survived him for many years. He left
three daughters, the eldest of whom died unmarried, the second married Dr.
Marsh, afterwards Archbishop of Dublin, and the third married a Mr. Harrison, a
man of fortune, and member of parliament for the borough of Lisburn.
Taylor's personal appearance is said to have been
highly favourable; his figure, above the middle size, strong and well formed,
his eye large and dark, his nose aquiline, his countenance open, and we may
fairly presume, intelligent; and his hair, in early life, in the fashion of his
age, redundant, and flowing in curls. If he had not been a cleric, he would
have made a handsome cavalier. But the only original portrait known to be in
existence, is that in All-soul's College, taken when those youthful graces had
disappeared; and where his resigned yet melancholy look shows that he had gone
through many afflictions.
Of the more important topic, his last hours, too
little is known. The manner in which such a man receives the final summons, the
clearness of his views when the passions are no more, the strength of his faith
when the world sinks from the eye, are inquires which all would make, who
desire to have their convictions enforced, or their hopes animated; who would
be enlightened by the wisdom of the intelligent, or invigorated by the
fortitude of the holy. But, of those hours no detail seems to have been
preserved; and we must be content with such conjecture as we can form from his
life. Yet, who can doubt that the death of this man of virtue was consistent
with his career? that he whose existence was a long display of Christian
courage, was calm in the presence of the last enemy? that he who had faced the
dungeon, and would have faced the scaffold, without a fear, must have shown, on
his pillow, in what peace a Christian can die?
The conditions of the church, during the life of
Bishop Taylor, forms one of the most remarkable features of its history. The
persecution under Mary had driven many of the clergy to seek refuge in foreign
countries. Calvin's learning, zeal, and eloquence had made him the great
surviving leader of the Reformation, in the eyes of a large portion of the
continental church. Some of the clergy, on their return, had brought with them
his doctrines. Calvin, equally stern and sincere, had evidently thought that he
approached the nearer to the truth of the gospel, the further he receded from
the principles of Rome. Especially disgusted with the haughtiness of the Romish
hierarchy, he had at length conceived that independence of the civil government
was essential to the purity of the church. The tempest was now gathering which
was to fall upon the Establishment.
Presbyterianism, founded in Geneva in 1541, first
appeared in England in 1572. The remembrance of the Papal domination and the
terror of its return, made the new doctrines popular. The Protestant exiles,
returning from the Continent, reinforced the zeal of their countrymen. A new
impulse was to be added from the North. Scotland, on the death of Elizabeth, in
1503, had given a king to England. The disputes between the monarch and the
people had already involved the Scottish Episcopacy in odium. Presbyterianism,
recruited from the multitude, was too powerful for Episcopacy, deserted by the
throne; and after a century of various struggles, it was declared the
Established Church of Scotland. The junction of the civil governments brought
with it the religious controversy; and the flame, exhausted in the confines of
the North, blazed into new violence among the vast, various, and inflammable
materials of the public mind of England.
The British constitution, slowly gathered out of
the wrecks of Saxon privilege, had been, for a century, gradually forming into
freedom. But the structure was still harsh, irregular, and threatening. Modeled
by the hands of powerful subjects, more anxious for the increase of personal
power, than for the extension of public right; it bore the characters of the
baronial architecture - bold, but rude; magnificent, but frowning - the palace
combined with the dungeon. Other and nobler times, were at once the fortress
into the temple; and, throwing open its gates alike to all, summon the
multitude to bow down before altars, where true liberty stood robed in the
broadest rays of true religion.
The power of the crown, in the earlier period of
that memorable century, had, by habit, assumed something of the power of a
Divinity; and its first restraints were regarded by the sovereign less an
innovation than sacrilege. But England was marked for a high destiny,
incompatible with a return to arbitrary rule. She was to be the head of
Protestantism to Europe; and for this purpose she was to be the great example
of a free government to mankind. The form of her church was still of clay, but
the proportions were noble; and life, from the most illustrious of all sources,
was already shooting through its frame. If, like our great ancestor, it was
soon to fall upon evil days, and be disinherited of its original birth-right,
it was appointed to a triumphant recovery; that recovery itself, we will
believe, only an emblem of days of larger dominion, and more unclouded
splendour.
The prosperity of England under Elizabeth, the
overthrow of the Spanish invasion, the new growth of commerce, and the native
manliness of the public heart, all animated by the evidence of the public
strength, had prepared her for the future ascent to all the heights of civil
freedom. If her elevation was still to be slow, stormy, and exposed to
vicissitude, it was still to proceed. The accession of James, well-meaning but
harsh, a pedant in statesmanship, and a monk in religion, wasting the royal
treasure on foreign policies, and creating controversies at home, at once
relaxed the royal influence, and stimulated religious inquiry. The accession of
Charles only hastened the catastrophe. His spirit, at once chivalric and gentle
- fatal to him in both aspects, by giving him the loftiest conception of his
rights, and suggesting the feeblest means of sustaining them - marked him as
the victim of a time of change. The death of that unhappy sovereign is still
written in the darkest page of national guilt. It should also be written in the
most disastrous page of national misfortune. Regicide, as the dissolution of
the highest bond of society, seems to be visited in all lands by the especial
wrath of heaven. No event in the national annals ever gave so instant a check
to the advance of freedom, - The stream that flowed from the scaffold of the
king, instantly made its path impassable.
Even from the hour when hostility was first
turned from the crown to the wearer of the crown, and it was resolved to
baptize the Republic in royal blood, calamity fell broad and heavy upon the
land. Liberty, misunderstood by some, and abused by others, and religion,
equally misunderstood and equally abused, were forced into a profane alliance
against the people. The Establishment, the most ancient and noble rampart of
the monarchy, was first to be seized. Too powerful to be stormed, it was
undermined; and the result was true to the calculation. With it went down the
monarchy. The heads of both perished on the same scaffold Laud only preceeded
Charles to the grave.
But the fall of the Church left a chasm in the
state which was not to be filled. Civil faction attempted it, and failed.
Religious faction attempted it, and failed. The liberty, property, and blood of
the people were thrown in, but the gulf was still widening. The Commonwealth
was flung in, the Protectorship followed: at length the nation returned to its
earlier wisdom; replaced the Establishment on its old foundations; and stopped
the progress of public ruin.
The history of this interregnum is only the
history of rival factions, various in their features, but filled with the same
spirit, taking different means to power but all alike hazardous to public
security; and, whether they stole their fires from above or from below, whether
enthusiasts or intriguers, each risking alike the conflagration of the roof
under which they professed to administer to the good of the people.
The Establishment had perished; but it was only
to leave room for the struggle of the sects. Independentism was the new
competitor. It had arisen from the schism of the Brownists, who flourished in
the preceding century. After existing for a period in Holland, it was brought
into England in 1616, by Henry Jacobs, a Puritan. Its principle was, spiritual
association with mutual independence of its churches. At the commencement of
the great rebellion, some of the Independent ministers returning from the
Continent, and taking their seats in the assembly of divines, had begun to form
congregations. Against this measure Presbyterianism, then in possession of
power, strongly remonstrated. The Independents as strongly complained, that the
Presbyterians, standing in the place of the ancient Establishment, had, with
its power, adopted more than its persecution, that it denied a middle way
between rigid uniformity and utter confusion; and that though, in its own case,
declaiming against the use of the civil sword, it had unhesitatingly used force
to settle the consciences of others.
Presbyterianism was now to feel the ascendancy of
its rival. The contest remains as one proof, among the thousand, of the
feebleness of premature power. If the Establishment perishes, rooted as it was
in the soil for centuries, endeared to the national memory by the generations
which had sat under its shade, and forming a central and venerable object from
whatever spot the eye looked upon the constitution; what could be the security
of the new church, the tree without a root, planted in the midst of tempests,
and in a soil beaten into dust by the trampling of the civil war? It still had
the whole force of the state in its hands. It constituted nearly the whole
parliament, and it possessed a vast nominal majority among the people. But the
Independents more than compensated for their minority in numbers, by the vigour
of their zeal, by the impression on the popular feelings, and by that
determination to be masters, which, in itself, is equivalent to mastery; and in
those signs they conquered.
No period of British history presents at once so
strong a display of the madness of man, and of the indefatigable protection of
Providence. Republicanism had torn down the monarchy. Schism had dismantled the
Church. England stood on the verge of the grave; and the factions which dug it,
delayed the blow that would have cast her in, only till the sword or the axe
decided which was to have the robbing of the dead.
The true peril of all popular revolutions is,
that having no defined object, they have no natural termination. Springing from
a desire of universal possession, they an have no limit but universal change.
The man who will go farthest, necessarily becomes the leader. Renovation is
soon abandoned for rapine, justice for revenge, right for licence; until the
land is swept bare. The fancied oppressions of the rich become the pretest for
levelling the whole community, and the attempt to retaliate popular wrongs upon
the higher classes ends in the anarchy of the land. It is an evidence of the
Divine mercy that, hitherto, the process has never been suffered to exhibit
itself in that last stage of political ruin. The sharp remedy of the soldier
has been introduced, at once to punish the national excesses, and to check the
national undoing. In the English and French revolutions the violence of popular
passion has thus been restrained by the despotism of the sword. - The lunatic,
on whom argument and experience would be alike thrown away; whose additional
power would generate only additional evil to himself; and whose frenzy would be
inflamed by success, has been coerced by the bitter restorative of the lash and
the chain. Democracy in England would have raged, till the country was a waste,
if the selfishness and sternness of Cromwell had not been sent forth, to crush
the madness of the time. Democracy in France would have filled the country with
a moral pestilence, which after destroying its own population, would have
spread the contagion resistlessly, perhaps, through every nation of the earth,
if the fierce ambition and iron tyranny of Napoleon had not first checked, and
then turned the current of the disease into domestic slavery and foreign
domination. Both were tyrants, and both criminals of the darkest stain; but
both were the true overthrowers of the democratic principle and to both,
England and France alike owed the cessation of public ruin, and the final
restoration of monarchy. - Like the volcanoes of the great Southern Ocean, even
the thunders among which they rose, and the convulsions that made their birth
felt along the sullen and stormy expanse of nations, were proofs that there was
solid ground rising for the foot of man; that the capricious and disturbed
element through which they shot up was to have new barriers set to its career;
and that, wild and fiery as they towered before the eye of man, they were to be
the commencement of a new era of settlement and security.
Cromwell had found himself suspected, at an early
period, by the Presbyterian government. The Independents required a leader, and
he required a party. The terms were speedily made; and the great republican,
uniting in himself all the qualities essential to the time - appealing to the
multitude by the lure of popular power; to the fanatical, by raptures borrowed
from their own enthusiasm; to the soldiery, by the display of signal valour in
the field; and to the ambitious, by that inexhaustible sagacity and undeviating
success which promised his adherents every object that ambition could desire;
saw supremacy at his feet. His appointment as lieutenant, under Fairfax, one of
the capital oversights of the parliament; threw the parliament itself into his
power. The calamitous battle of Naseby extinguished the royal cause. The
fatality which entrusted the royal person to the Scottish Commissioners; the
perfidy with which they repaid that trust by betraying it to the parliament,
all played the game of his sovereignty. Presbyterianism, at the height of
power, was next to be taught by him how near success may be to subversion. The
Independents were masters of the army; the army seized the unfortunate monarch;
a weak legislature tried him; a mockery of popular opinion sanctioned the
crime; and the forms of justice, the national character, and the spirit of
religion, were alike betrayed by a faction purchasing power with the fall of
their king. But all those crimes only levelled the path before the great
usurper. Even the blood of Charles only tracked the way for Cromwell to a
throne.
In those references to a period of public shame,
there can be no wish to involve religious minds in the general charge of
treason. The men who dipped their hands in regicide were the actual antagonists
of all religion. Conscience, first used as a mask, was speedily abandoned: the
atrocities of the rebellion were committed, not by religionists but
revolutionists. Among the Independent ministers of London, it is recorded that
but two, Goodwin and Peters, consented to the king's death.
The destruction of the establishment had been the
virtual destruction of the monarchy. The legislature, reduced to eighty
members, proceeded to fix in principle the misdemeanours which they had already
committed in practice. They voted the throne dangerous, and the House of Lords
useless to a state. A new oath was imposed, by which was named the Engagement,
was levelled by the Independents against the Presbyterians; the latter having
now fallen from power, and revenging themselves by calling the government an
usurpation.
But Cromwell's experience had taught him the
hazard of suffering religion to be made a political instrument, or of giving
the fallen party the strength that is to be found in the outcry against
persecution. By an act introduced at his especial suggestion, the whole body of
penalties against religious opinions were swept away. A general toleration was
declared, with the large exception, however, of Papists and Episcopalians; the
one, as irreconcilable with all Protestantism, and the other, as repelling the
Protestantism of the day. Cromwell thus paid the fallen church the involuntary
compliment of providing that he believed its allegiance to be above his
purchase. Its principles had already resisted his power. Yet nothing shows his
faculties for government more clearly than the moderation with which he bore
the acknowledged disgust of the sectaries. The "Engagement," had produced much
irritation. Baxter, with many of the leading Presbyterian ministers, inveighed
against the oath. But the Independents now forming the government, and
themselves governed by Cromwell, bore the insult calmly, and turned it to
account, by filling up the vacant livings with Independent ministers. The press
was not neglected, and the great Milton was employed to write down the
recusants. The powers of the law were brought into action, and all who refused
"the Engagement," of the age of eighteen, were prohibited from sueing in the
law courts: while all ministers attacking the oath from their pulpits, were
deprived of their benefices for the time. But while he was thus rigid to all
who exhibited determined resistance, he gave full opportunity of repentance to
all the wavering. Presbyterianism was still too powerful to be lightly
offended; and the national church was declared to be Presbyterian in doctrine,
discipline, and worship. An attempt was even made to raise all livings to a
hundred pounds a year. But the liberality of rebellion is seldom justice, and
those livings were to be augmented by the confiscation of the lands of the
bishops, deans, and chapters, with, however, the addition of the first-fruits
and tenths. Though fallen even the church was not to be wholly forgotten. With
republican generosity it was to be propitiated out of its own plunder, and
small salaries were allotted to the bishops and the chief clergy of the
cathedrals. Still, it is the history of all usurpations, that their practice
essentially falsifies their professions. The liberty of speaking and writing
had been among the most urgent demands of the republicans. The complaint had
answered its purpose; and the press had broken down the monarchy. The champion
was now itself to be in chains. The royalist and Presbyterian writers were
declared to have abused the rights of discussion. The House of Commons took
those rights under its charge, and the press was thenceforth the tool of
power.
But the crisis of popular usurpation was at hand.
The expedition of Charles the Second to recover his crown, once more brought
Cromwell's military talents before the eyes of men. The defeat of the king at
Worcester, with his flight into France, left the sovereignty open to the first
bold hand; and who could compete with the general who had delivered the
partizans of the rebellion from the imminent dread of royal vengeance? His new
popularity with the troops first awoke the government to a sense of their
peril. To enfeeble the man whom they now felt to be their great antagonist,
they proposed to disband a part of his army. The act would have been followed
by the seizure of its general. But, when the game lies between the indolence of
many and the decision of one, between the possession of authority and the
preservation of life, it speedily comes to an issue. The single vigorous
competitor carries the day against the slow activity and mingled motives of the
crowd. Cromwell's prompt and contemptuous overthrow of the parliament is among
the most remarkable, yet the most natural events of the time.
Still his sagacity as a religious reformer
characterized even his triumph. The fear of rousing again the decayed
enthusiasm of the sectaries was the perpetual guide of his administration. All
England, in all its shapes of opinion, was already powerless before his
acknowledged supremacy. The cavaliers were weary of defeat, and disgusted with
the flight of Charles. The Presbyterians were rendered submissive at once by
the strong hand of government, and by possession. The Independents were the
natural adherents of Cromwell. That burlesque of a legislature, the Barebones'
Parliament, had resigned their functions, from the combined sense of inadequacy
and public ridicule. Yet with all the elements of resistance thus at his feet,
his first work, as sovereign, was to popularize his religious polity. In the
council of officers it was again proposed, that all religious penalties should
be formally extinguished; that a regular provision should be made for the
officiating ministers, and that a general toleration should be the law of the
land; with the old exceptions of Popery and Prelacy. Presbyterianism was still
treated with the customary respect, and was once more recognized as the
established religion.
Yet those were restless, and must have been
unhappy times. We are not driven for this conclusion to the constant privations
and frequent imprisonments of the most meritorious of the English clergy. It
follows, from the necessity of the case, from the mutual irritations of the
leading religionists, from the utter uncertainty of a religious code, dependent
on the will of a capricious council, and from the boundless jealousies,
suspicions, and bitternesses inseparable from a state of perpetual religious
struggle. All men's minds were turned on political power; to some as an object
of enjoyment, to others as a means of protection. It is impossible to doubt
that religion must thus have rapidly tended to decay. In the hands of the
politicians, a mere instrument, it must have soon fallen into scorn among the
higher and more reckless ranks of public men. In the hands of the populace,
alternately a stimulant and a victim of popular turbulence, it must have been
as rapidly degraded by ignorance, as it was deformed by fanaticism. A wise
government can give no greater boon than religious rest to a people.
But Cromwell, who never slumbered over the signs
of the times, watched Presbyterianism with the keenness of personal fear. To
sustain his popularity he adopted the Independent worship, and exhibited the
most singular raptures of their most conspicuous leaders. He further
established a commission of thirty-eight, "Tryers," to select candidates for
the ministry; and for the purpose of countervailing the influence of the
Presbyterians, appointed several Baptists and Independents to the commission.
The selection was charged with degrading the ministry by a crowd of pastors,
remarkable for nothing but the meanness of their condition and the narrowness
of their knowledge. Yet the choice was hostile to Presbyterianism, and the
commission thus answered all the purposes for which it was designed.
The inevitable result of all those changes was at
last felt in the growing unfitness of the parochial clergy for their office.
The habitual remedy was a commission. A board of lay commissioners was
appointed to examine into the learning and conduct of the clergy in general.
Yet even in this period of suffering, the policy
of the government afforded a comparative shelter to the church.Usher,
Brownrigg, Pearson, and Hall, were overlooked in their use of the liturgy;
though it had been declared by the lay-commissioners a ground of deprivation.
The "Corporation of the Sons of the Clergy" also originated about this period;
Hall, afterwards Bishop of Chester, preaching the inauguration sermon at St.
Paul's; and even taking as his subject the budding of Aaron's rod, in bold
allusion to a regular priesthood.
In this republicanism of religion the evils of
schism were at length felt so strongly, that an attempt was made, under the
influence of Usher and Baxter, to combine the Episcopalians, Presbyterians, and
Independents in a general association, only retaining such principles as were
alike acknowledged by the three. But this attempt, generous in its conception,
but incompatible with the feelings of the times, was soon abandoned. The Lord
Protector adopted the plan, but, powerful as he was, and anxious to extinguish
the religious disputes, which were still the objects of his chief alarm, he
found that it was easier to subdue armies than controversialists.
Yet all his projects had the stamp of grandeur.
If his political triumphs were won more for himself than for his country, he
desired to make his religious successes the common property of Europe.
Establishing himself as the champion of Protestantism, and England as its
supreme seat, he had conceived the plan of a great Protestant commonwealth,
consisting of representatives from the Protestantism of every nation of the
Continent, capable of guiding all its impulses, securing all its rights, and
demanding retribution for all its injuries. But this design, a nobler one than
the boasted confederation of Henry the Fourth, was not to be realized by a man
harassed by domestic enemies, perplexed by craving partizanship, and now
gradually sinking under bodily decay.
The closing days of his daring and brilliant
existence are too well known to be more than touched on here. Of all cares, the
cares of a throne must be the most exhausting: for what are the anxieties of
humbler life, to his who feels the responsibilities of empire? Or, if hope is
the great stimulant of life, what hope can be his who has already attained the
highest point of human elevation? Or, if the fear of change is the great
penalty of possession, what must be the restlessness of the usurper's pillow?
The dread of assassination was the form in which decay seized on the vigorous
mind of Cromwell. The man who had habitually defied danger, whose whole life
was hazard; prompt in all the difficulties of council; daring, and even
desperate, in all the emergencies of the field; was seen sunk into timidity
within the walls of his palace, and in the midst of his guards. Worn out with
those distractions he died, September 3, 1658, leaving a mighty moral to
unlicensed ambition, in an unhappy prosperity and a clouded fame. Even the
circumstances of his death exhibited that singular mixture of good and ill,
honour and shame, which characterized his life. The day which he had always
regarded as the most fortunate of his career, the double anniversary of the
victories of Dunbar and Worcester, was his last; but he died in the midst of a
tempest so violent as to be long recorded in the popular memory, as a peculiar
evidence of Divine judgment on his crimes. He was buried with royal state at
Westminster; but was thus buried, only to be disinterred, his body removed to
the place of common execution at Tyburn; and there, after being suspended in
its coffin till sunset, flung into a hole at the foot of the scaffold. A signal
instance of the brevity of national applause, but a mean revenge on the
conqueror of two kings of England!
In contemplating the rebellion, as a great
political experiment, it presents every aspect of failure.If in the earliest
ages of the struggle it obtained some important privileges from the throne, it
destroyed their value by the violence of their seizure. The king soon learned
to suspect the moderation of men who made concession the ground of demand, and
argued conciliation into an evidence of infirmity. Self-defence compels all to
resist, when the assault is palpably made not for right but for possession.
Charles, it is true, was unfitted for the time: even the qualities that place
his name with honour among the records of personal merit, were adverse to his
success, as the master of a beleaguered throne. His high spirit was too easily
roused by the insults by the insults of meaner men; his known intrepidity was
too quick in scorning the low-born subtleties of the fanatics and conspirators
who had pledged themselves to his ruin; and his alternate contempt of all
advice, and deference to ill advisers, deprived him of that character of
decision, which, in times of civil tumult, is the one essential to victory.
But if the king erred through the defects of his
nature, the people erred still more by the rashness of their passions. Their
triumph terminated in the extinction of all liberty: their crimes against a
king were punished by the sternness of a despot; and nothing but that fortune
which cut off their usurper in the vigour of life, and left his boldness and
intelligence to be succeeded by a feeble and timid offspring, could have saved
England from a dynasty of chains.
The Rebellion, regarded as a great experiment for
liberty of conscience, was equally unsuccessful. Without liberty of conscience
no true faith can exist. But the freedom established by the rebellion was a
licence of mutual injury. The privilege which placed every novelty,
extravagance, and fantasy of popular religion on a rank with all that was
consecrated by experience, sustained by learning, and founded on the exercise
of the mature understanding; overthrew at a blow all the natural barriers
between wisdom and error. The sudden influx of political aspirants into the
sects made even their virtues dangerous to the community, and their thirst of
power exposed the state to all the hazards of faction, inflamed by all the
fantasies of zeal.
The natural result of a licence inconsistent with
the public tranquility, was a licence inconsistent with the soberness of
Scripture. Sects started up, whose claim to popularity was their eagerness for
all that was new, and their scorn of all that was established. Among the most
remarkable of those were the Levellers, a name now limited to political
conspirators, but then distinguishing a tribe of enthusiasts, who had arrived
at the unaccountable conclusion, that among Christians all property and all
power should be in common. - A doctrine, which, in our present social state, by
extinguishing all the fruits of individual industry, would obviously extinguish
all the stimulants to labour, substitute force for law, and end by pauperizing
the community.
Another sect, the Fifth-monarchy men, are more
memorable; from their having given a clearer proof of the powers of fanaticism
to disturb the public peace. Pronouncing that all earthly authority was on the
eve of being abolished by the predicted kingdom of Christ, they formed a plan
to destroy Cromwell, and proclaim the returning Messiah as king. Unfurling a
banner, with the lion couchant as its emblem, and inscribed with the words "Who
shall rouse him up," a party of those lunatics, headed by one of their
preachers, sallied from their place of worship to commence the grand
revolution. They were instantly defeated, and the tumult and the sect
suppressed together.
But if such sects were the prominent effects of
the general dislocation of religious authority, more serious evils arose from
its agency on the national mind at the Restoration. As the violence of the
politicians had finally disgusted the nation with liberty, the extravagance of
the enthusiasts had tended to shake the popular respect for religion. As the
one threw the Constitution at the foot of the king, the other hazarded even the
decencies of the Establishment. Forms had been perverted, they were now
ridiculed; all religion was declared hypocrisy, and all unbelief took the name
of candour. The morals of the king, learned in the loosest court of the
Continent, became the standard of manners: the stage conveyed the
licentiousness of the court of the multitude; and the infidelity of the higher
ranks completed the picture of a degenerate age. England was, for fifty years,
the center of intellectual evil to Europe: the especial land of the infidel,
who, in the insolence and vanity of his heart, assumed to himself the haughty
title of the Freethinker.
But she had a signal source of recovery within.
Her established Church, long stripped of its branches, and iron-bound, like the
tree in Nebuchadnezzar's vision, had deeply felt the injuries of the rebellion.
But it was soon to spread a nobler shade than ever. Its literature again became
conspicuous; to break down the infidel was its first work: a succession of
forcible treatises on the evidences, the spirit, and the value of Christianity
rapidly achieved this great service. The names of Butler, Waterland, Warburton,
Sherlock, and a crowd of other churchmen; with Lardner, Leland, and their
followers among the dissenters, are still eminent as the defenders of religion.
The deluge of revolt and impurity which had overspread the land, at length
dried away; and the Church of England, like the patriarchal family descending
from the ark, renewed the compact with its supreme Preserver. It saw, and sees
still, the soil requiring many a long period of labour, and many a high
interposition of Providence, before the traces of the day of evil shall be
wholly obliterated. But it saw the bow in the cloud; and it received in its
renewed strength the practical pledge, that the succession of the seasons of
truth and knowledge should not be interrupted again. It now sees, in the sudden
and vigorous activity of its servants a home, and the new and magnificent
planting of Episcopacy in the East and West, the approaching realization of the
promise of increase and replenishing of the earth; and now, with a faith only
refreshed by the lapse of ages, looks beyond the troubles of the time, in
sacred confidence, that while it retains its fidelity to the great Covenant of
Protestantism, the day of subversion shall return no more.
G.C.
London
March, 1838
____________
CONSIDERATION OF THE GENERAL INSTRUMENTS AND MEANS SERVING A
HOLY LIFE, BY WAY OF
INTRODUCTION.
It is necessary that every man should consider, that since God hath given him
an excellent nature, wisdom, and choice, an understanding soul, and an immortal
spirit; having made him lord over the beasts, and but a little lower than the
angels; he hath also appointed for him a work and a service great enough to
employ those abilities, and hath also designed him to a state of life after
this, to which he can only arrive by that service and obedience. And therefore,
as every man is wholly God's own portion by the title of creation, so all our
labours and care, all our powers and faculties, must be wholly employed in the
service of God, and even all the days of our life; that this life being ended,
we may live with him for ever.
Neither is it sufficient that we think of the
service of God as a work of the least necessity, or of small employment, but
that it be done by us as God intended it; that it be done with prevailing
ingredient; and the ministers of religion are so scattered, that they cannot
unite to stop the inundation, and from chairs or pulpits, from their synods or
tribunals, chastise the infidelity of the willingly seduced multitude; and that
those few good people who have no other plot in their religion but to serve God
and save their souls, do want such assistances of ghostly counsel as may serve
their emergent needs, and assist their endeavours in the acquist of virtues,
and relieve their dangers when they are tempted to sin and death; - I thought I
had reasons enough inviting me to draw into one body those advices which the
several necessities of many men must use at some time or other, and many of
them daily: that by a collection of holy precepts they might less feel the want
of personal and attending guides, and that the rules for conduct of souls might
be committed to a book which they might always have; since they could not
always have a prophet at their needs, nor be suffered to go up to the house of
the Lord to inquire of the appointed oracles.
I know, my Lord, that there are some interested
persons who add scorn to the afflictions of the Church of England; and because
she is afflicted by men, call her "forsaken of the Lord;" and because her
solemn assemblies are scattered, think that the religion is lost, and the
church divorced from God, supposing Christ (who was a man of sorrows) to be
angry with his spouse when she is like him, (for that is the true state of the
error,) and that he who promised his Spirit to assist his servants in their
troubles will, because they are in trouble, take away the Comforter from them;
who cannot be a comforter, but while he cures our sadnesses, and relieves our
sorrows, and turns our persecutions into joys, and crowns, and sceptres. But,
concerning the present state of the Church of England, I consider, that because
we now want the blessings of external communion in many degrees, and the
circumstances of a prosperous and unafflicted people, we are to take estimate
of ourselves with single judgments, and every man is to give sentence
concerning the state of his own soul by the precepts and rules of our Lawgiver,
not by the after-decrees and usages of the church; that is, by the essential
parts of religion, rather than by the uncertain significations of any exterior
adherences; for, though it be uncertain when a man is the member of a church
whether he be a member to Christ or no, because in the church's net there are
fishes good and bad; yet we may be sure that, if we be members of Christ we are
of a church to all purposes of spiritual religion and salvation; and, in order
to this, give me leave to speak this great truth: -
That man does certainly belong to God, who, 1.
believes and is baptized into all the articles of the Christian faith, and
studies to improve his knowledge in the matters of God, so as may best make him
to live a holy life. 2. He that, in obedience to Christ, worships God
diligently, frequently, and constantly, with natural religion; that is, of
prayer, praises, and thanksgiving. 3. He that takes all opportunities to
remember Christ's death by a frequent sacrament, (as it can be had,) or else by
inward acts of understanding, will, and memory (which is the spiritual
communion,) supplies the want of the external rite. 4. He that lives chastely;
5. And is merciful; 6. And despises the world, using it as a man, but never
suffering it to rifle a duty; 7. And is just in his dealing, and diligent in
his calling. 8. He that is humble in his spirit; 9. And obedient to government;
10. And content in his fortune and employment. 11. He that does his duty
because he loves God; 12. And especially if, after all this, he be afflicted,
and patient, or prepared to suffer affliction for the cause of God: the man
that hath these twelve signs of grace and predestination, does as certainly
belong to God, and is his son, as surely as he is his creature.
And if my brethren is persecution and in the
bonds of the Lord Jesus can truly show these marks, they shall not need be
troubled that others can show a prosperous outside, great revenues, public
assemblies, uninterrupted successions of bishops, prevailing armies, or any arm
of flesh, or less certain circumstance. These are the marks of the Lord Jesus,
and the characters of a Christian: this is a good religion; and these things
God's grace hath put into our powers, and God's laws have made to be our duty,
and the nature of men and the needs of commonwealths have made to be necessary.
The other accidents and pomps of a church are things without our power, and are
not in our choice: they are good to be used when they may be had, and they help
to illustrate or advantage it; but if any of them constitute a church in the
being of a society and a government, yet they are not of its constitutions, as
it is Christian and hopes to be saved.
And now the case is so with us that we are
reduced to that religion which no man can forbid, which we can keep in the
midst of a persecution; by which the martyrs, in the days of our fathers, went
to heaven; that by which we can be servants of God, and receive the Spirit of
Christ, and make use of his comforts, and live in his love, and in charity with
all men: and they that do so cannot perish.
My Lord, I have now described some general lines
and features of that religion which I have more particularly set down in the
following pages; in which I have neither served nor disserved the interests of
any party of Christians, as they are divided by uncharitable names from the
rest of their brethren; and no man will have reason to be angry with me for
refusing to mingle in his unnecessary or vicious quarrels; especially while I
study to do him good by conducting him in the narrow way to heaven, without
intricating him in the labyrinths and wild turnings of questions and uncertain
talkings. I have told what men ought to do, and by what means they may be
assisted; and in most cases I have also told them why; and yet with as much
quickness as I could think necessary to establish a rule, and not to engage in
homily or discourse. In the use of which rules, although they are plain,
useful, and fitted for the best and worst understandings, and for the needs of
all men, yet I shall desire the reader to proceed with the following
advices.
1. They that will with profit make use of the
proper instruments of virtue, must so live as if they were always under the
physician's hand. For the counsels of religion are not to be applied to the
distempers of the soul as men used to take hellobore; but they must dwell
together with the spirit of a man, and be twisted about his understanding for
ever: they must be used like nourishment, that is, by a daily care and
meditation; not like a single medicine, and upon the actual pressure of a
present necessity: for counsels and wise discourses, applied to an actual
distemper, at the best are but like strong smells to an epileptic person;
sometimes they may raise him, but they never cure him. The following rules, if
they be made familiar to our natures and the thoughts of every day, may make
virtue and religion become easy and habitual; but when the temptation is
present, and hath already seized upon some portions of our consent, we are not
so apt to be counselled, and we find no gust or relish in the precept: the
lessons are the same, but the instrument is unstrung, or out of tune.
2. In using the instruments of virtue we must be
curious to distinguish instruments from duties, and prudent advices from
necessary injunctions; and if by any other means the duty can be secured, let
there be no scruples stirred concerning any other helps, only if they can, in
that case, strengthen and secure the duty, or help towards perseverance, let
them serve in that station in which they can be placed. For there are some
persons in whom the Spirit of God hath breathed so bright a flame of love, that
they do all their acts of virtue by perfect choice and without objection, and
their zeal is warmer than that it will be allayed by temptation; and to such
persons mortification by philosophical instruments, as fasting, sackcloth, and
other rudenesses to the body, is wholly useless; it is always a more uncertain
means to acquire any virtue, or secure any duty; and if love hath filled all
the corners of our soul, it alone is able to do all the work of God.
3. Be not nice in stating the obligations of
religion; but where the duty is necessary, and the means very reasonable in
itself, dispute not too busily whether, in all circumstances, it can fit thy
particular; but "super totam materiam," upon the whole make use of it. For it
is a good sign of a great religion, and no imprudence, when we have
sufficiently considered the substance of affairs then to be easy, humble,
obedient, apt, and credulous in the circumstances, which are appointed to us in
particular by our spiritual guides, or, in general, by all wise men in cases
not unlike. He that gives alms does best not always to consider the minutes and
strict measures of his ability, but to give freely, incuriously, and
abundantly. A man must not weigh grains in the accounts of his repentance; but
for a great sin have a great sorrow, and a great severity; and in this take the
ordinary advices, though, it may be, a less rigour might not be insufficient;
arithmetical measures, especially of our own proportioning, are but arguments
of want of love, and of forwardness in religion; or else are instruments of
scruple, and then become dangerous. Use the rule heartily and enough, and there
will be no harm in thy error if any should happen.
4. If thou intendest heartily to serve God, and
avoid sin in any one instance, refuse not the hardest and most severe advice
that is prescribed in order to it, though possibly it be a stranger to thee;
for whatever it be, custom will make it easy.
5. When many instruments for the obtaining any
virtue, or restraining any vice, are propounded, observe which of them fits thy
person or the circumstances of thy need, and use it rather that the other; that
by this means thou mayest be engaged to watch and use spiritual arts and
observation about thy soul. Concerning the managing of which, as the interest
is greater, so the necessities are more, and the cases more intricate, and the
accidents and dangers greater and more importunate; and there is greater skill
required than in the securing an estate, or restoring health to an infirm body.
I wish all men in the world did heartily believe so much of this as is true; it
would very much help to do the work of God.
Thus, my Lord, I have made bold by your hand to
reach out this little scroll of cautions to all those, who, by seeing your
honoured names set before my book, shall, by the fairness of such a
frontispiece, be invited to look into it. I must confess it cannot but look
like a design in me, to borrow your name and beg your patronage to my book,
that, if there be no other worth in it, yet at least it may have the splendour
and warmth of a burning glass, which, borrowing a flame from the eye of Heaven,
shines and burns by the rays of the sun its patron. I will not quit myself from
the suspicion, for I cannot pretend it to be a present either of itself fit to
be offered to such a personage, or any part of a just return; but I humbly
desire you would own it for an acknowledgement of those great endearments and
noblest usages you have passed upon me; but so men in their religion give a
piece of gum, or the fat of a cheap lamb, in sacrifice to Him that gives them
all that they have or need; and unless He, who was pleased to employ your
Lordship as a great minister of his providence, in making a promise of his good
to me, the meanest of his servants, "that he will never leave me nor forsake
me," shall enable me, by greater services of religion, to pay my great debt to
your honour, I must still increase my score; since I shall now spend as much in
my needs of pardon for this boldness, as in the reception of those favours, by
which I stand accountable to your Lordship in all the bands of service and
gratitude; though I am, in the deepest sense of duty and affection,
My most honoured Lord,
Your Honour's
most obliged,
And most humble servant,
JEREMY TAYLOR
TO THE
RIGHT HON. AND TRULY NOBLE
RICHARD LORD VAUGHAN,
EARL OF CARBERY,
KNIGHT OF THE HONOURABLE ORDER OF THE BATH
___________________________
My Lord,
I have lived to see religion painted upon
banners, and thrust out of churches; and the temple turned into a tabernacle,
and that tabernacle made ambulatory, and covered with skins of beasts and torn
curtains; and God to be worshipped, not as he is "the Father of our Lord
Jesus," (an afflicted Prince, the King of sufferings,) nor as the "God of
Peace," (which two appellatives God newly took upon him in the New Testament,
and glories in for ever,) but he is owned now rather as "the Lord of Hosts,"
which title he was preached by the Prince of Peace. But when religion puts puts
on armour, and God is not acknowledged by his New Testament titles, religion
may have in it the power of the sword, but not the power of godliness; and we
may complain of this to God, and amongst them that are afflicted, but we have
no remedy but what we must expect from the fellowship of Christ's sufferings
and the returns of the God of peace. In the meantime, and now that religion
pretends to stranger actions upon the new principles; and men are apt to prefer
a prosperous error before an afflicted truth; and some will think they are
religious enough, if their worshippings have in them the great earnestness and
passion, with much zeal and desire; that we refuse no labour; that we bestow
upon it much time; that we use the best guides, and arrive at the end of glory
by all the ways of grace, of prudence, and religion.
And, indeed, if we consider how much of our lives
is taken up by the needs of nature; how many years are wholly spent, before we
come to any use of reason; how many years more before that reason is useful to
us to any great purposes, how imperfect our discourse is made by our evil
education, false principles, ill company, bad examples, and want of experience;
how many parts of our wisest and best years are spent in eating and sleeping,
in necessary businesses and unnecessary vanities, in worldly civilities and
less useful circumstances, in the learning arts and sciences, languages, or
trades; that little portion of hours that is left for the practices of piety
and religious walking with God, is so short and trifling, that, were not the
goodness of God infinitely great, it might seem unreasonable or impossible for
us to expect of him eternal joys in heaven, even after the well spending those
few minutes which are left for God and God's service, after we have served
ourselves and our own occasions.
And yet it is considerable, that the fruit which
comes from the many days of recreation and vanity is very little; and, although
we scatter much yet we gather up but little profit; but from the few hours we
spend in prayer and the exercises of a pious life, the return is great and
profitable; and what we sow in the minutes and spare portions of a few years,
grows up to crowns and sceptres in a happy and a glorious eternity.
1. Therefore although it cannot be enjoined, that
the greatest part of our time be spent in the direct actions of devotion and
religion, yet it will become, not only a duty, but also a great providence, to
lay aside, for the services of God and the businesses of the Spirit, as much as
we can; because God rewards our minutes with long and eternal happiness; and
the greater portion of our time we give to God, the more we treasure up for
ourselves; and "No man is a better merchant that be that lays out his time upon
God, and his money upon the poor."
2. Only it becomes us to remember, and to adore
God's goodness for it, that God hath not only permitted us to serve the
necessities of our nature, but hath made them to become parts of our duty; that
if we, by directing these actions to the glory of God, intend them as
instruments to continue our persons in his service, he, by adopting them into
religion, may turn our nature into grace and accept our natural actions as
actions of religion. God is pleased to esteem it for a part of his service,[4] if we eat or drink; so it be done temperately,
and as may best preserve our health, that our health may enable our services
toward him: and there is no one minute of our lives (after we are come to the
use of reason) but we are or may be doing the work of God, even then when we
most of all serve ourselves.
3. To which if we add, that in these and all
other actions of our lives we always stand before God, acting, and speaking,
and thinking in his practice, and that it matters not that our conscience is
sealed with secrecy, since it lies open to God; it will concern us to behave
ourselves carefully, as in the presence of our Judge.
These three considerations rightly managed, and
applied to the several parts and instances of our lives, will be like Elisha
stretched upon the child, apt to put life and quickness into every part of it,
and to make us live the life of grace, and to do the work of God.
I shall, therefore, by way of introduction,
reduce these three to practice, and show how every Christian may improve all
and each of these to the advantage of piety, in the whole course of his life;
that if he please to bear but one of them upon his spirit, he may feel the
benefit, like an universal instrument, helpful in all spiritual and temporal
actions.
He that is choice of his time will also be choice
of his company, and choice of his actions; lest the first engage him in vanity
and loss; and the latter, by being criminal, be a throwing his time and himself
away, and a going back in the accounts of eternity.
God hath given to man a short time here upon
earth, and yet upon this short time eternity depends: but so, that for every
hour of our life (after we are persons capable of laws, and know good from
evil) we must give account to the great Judge of men and angels. And this is it
which our blessed Saviour told us, that we must account for every idle word;
not meaning that every word which is not designed to edification, or is less
prudent, shall be reckoned for a sin; but that the time which we spend in our
idle talking and unprofitable discoursings; that time which might and ought to
have been employed to spiritual and useful purposes - that is to be accounted
for.
For we must remember that we have a great work to
do, many enemies to conquer, many evils to prevent, much danger to run through,
many difficulties to be mastered, many necessities to serve, and much good to
do; many children to provide for, or many friends to support, or many poor to
relieve, or many diseases to cure; besides the needs of nature and of relation,
our private and our public cares, and duties of the world, which necessity and
the providence of God have adopted into the family of religion.
And that we need not fear this instrument to be a
snare to us, or that the duty must end in scruple, vexation, and eternal fears,
we must remember, that the life of every man may be so ordered (and indeed
must) that it may be a perpetual serving of God: the greatest trouble and most
busy trade and worldly encumbrances, when they are necessary, or charitable, or
profitable in order to any of those ends which we are bound to serve, whether
public or private, being a doing of God's work. For God provides the good
things of the world to serve the needs of nature, by the labours of the
ploughman the skill and pains of the artisan, and the dangers and traffic of
the merchant: these men are, in their callings, the ministers of the Divine
Providence, and the stewards of the creation, and servants of a great family of
God, the world, in the employment of procuring necessities for food and
clothing, ornament, and physic. In their proportions also, a king and a priest
and a prophet, a judge and an advocate, doing the works of their employment
according to their proper rules, are doing the work of God; because they serve
those necessities which God hath made, and yet made no provisions for them, but
by their ministry. So that no man can complain that his calling takes him off
from religion; his calling itself, and his very worldly employment in honest
trades and offices, is a serving of God; and, if it be moderately pursued and
according to the rules of Christian prudence, will leave void spaces enough for
prayers and retirements of a more spiritual religion.
God has given every man work enough to do, that
there shall be no room for idleness; and yet hath so ordered the world, that
there shall be space for devotion. He that hath the fewest businesses of the
world is called upon to spend more time in the dressing of the soil; and he
that hath the most affairs may so order them that they shall be a service of
God; whilst at certain periods, they are blessed with prayers and actions of
religion, and all day long are hallowed by a holy intention.
However, so long as idleness is quite shut out
from our lives, all the sins of wantonness, softness, and effeminacy, are
prevented and there is but little room left for temptation; and, therefore, to
a busy man temptation is fain to climb up together with his business, and sins
creep upon him only by accidents and occasions; whereas, to an idle person they
come in a full body, and with open violence and the impudence of a restless
importunity.
Idleness is called `the sin of Sodom and her
daughters,'[5] and indeed is "the burial of a
living man;" an idle person being so useless to any purpose of God and man,
that he is like one that is dead, unconcerned in the changes and necessities of
the world; and he only lives to spend his time, and to eat the fruits of the
earth; like a vermin or a wolf, when their time comes they die and perish, and
in the meantime do no good; they neither plough nor carry burdens; all that
they do is either unprofitable or mischievous.
Idleness is the greatest prodigality in the
world; it throws away that which is invaluable in respect of its present use,
and irreparable when it is past, being to be recovered by no power of art or
nature. But the way to secure and improve our time we may practise in the
following rules.
1. In the morning, when you awake, accustom
yourself to think first upon God, or something in order to his service; and at
night, also let him close thine eyes: and let your sleep be necessary and
healthful, not idle and expensive of time beyond the needs and conveniences of
nature; and sometimes be curious to see the preparation which the sun makes,
when he is coming forth from his chambers of the east.
2. Let every man that hath a calling be diligent
in pursuance of its employment, so as not lightly or without reasonable
occasion to neglect it in any of those times which are usually, and by the
custom of prudent persons and good husbands, employed in it.
3. Let all the intervals or void spaces of time
be employed in prayers, reading, meditating, works of nature, recreation,
charity, friendliness and neighbourhood, and means of spiritual and corporal
health; ever remembering so to work in our calling, as not to neglect the work
of our high calling; but to begin and end the day with God, with such forms of
devotion as shall be proper to our necessities.
4. The resting days of Christians, and festivals
of the church, must in no sense be days of idleness; for it is better to plough
upon holy days than to do nothing, or to do viciously: but let them be spent in
the works of the day, that is, of religion and charity, according to the rules
appointed.[6]
5. Avoid the company of drunkards and busybodies,
and all such as are apt to talk much to little purpose; for no man can be
provident of his time that is not prudent in the choice of his company; and if
one of the speakers be vain, tedious, and trifling, he that hears, and he that
answers in the discourse, are equal losers of their time.
6. Never talk with any man, or undertake any
trifling employment, merely to pass the time away;[7] for every day well spent may become a "day of salvation,"
and time rightly employed is an "acceptable time." And remember, that the time
thou triflest away was given thee to repent in, to pray for pardon of sins, to
work out thy salvation, to do the work of grace, to lay up against the day of
judgment a treasure of good works, that thy time may be crowned with
eternity.
7. In the midst of the works of thy calling,
often retire to God[8] in short prayers and
ejaculations; and those may make up the want of those larger portions of time,
which, it may be, thou desirest for devotion, and in which thou thinkest other
persons have advantage of thee; for so thou reconcilest the outward work and
thy inward calling, the church and the commonwealth, the employment of the body
and the interest of thy soul: for be sure, that God is present at thy
breathings and hearty sighings of prayer, as soon as at the longer offices of
less busied persons; and thy time is as truly sanctified by a trade, and devout
though short prayers, as by the longer offices of those whose time is not
filled up with labour and useful business.
8. Let your employment be such as may become a
reasonable person; and not be a business fit for children or distracted people,
but fit for your age and understanding. For a man may be very idly busy, and
take great pains to so little purpose, that, in his labours and expense of
time, he shall serve no end but of folly and vanity. There are some trades that
wholly serve the ends of idle persons and fools, and such as are fit to be
seized upon by the severity of laws and banished from under the sun; and there
are some people who are busy; but it is, as Domitian was, in catching flies.
9. Let your employment be fitted to your person
and calling. Some there are that employ their time in affairs infinitely below
the dignity of their person; and being called by God or by the republic to help
to bear great burdens, and to judge a people, do enfeeble their understanding
and disable their persons by sordid and brutish business. Thus Nero went up and
down Greece, and challenged the fiddlers at their trade. Eropus, a Macedonian
king, made lanterns. Harcatius, the king of Parthia, was a mole-catcher; and
Biantes, the Lydian, filed needles. He that is appointed to minister to holy
things must not suffer secular affairs and sordid arts to eat up great portions
of his employment: a clergyman must not keep a tavern, nor a judge be an
innkeeper; and it was a great idleness in Theophylact, the patriarch of C.P. to
spend his time in the stable of horses, when he should have been in his study,
or in the pulpit, or saying his holy offices. Such employments are the diseases
of labour, and the rust of time which it contracts, not by lying still, but by
dirty employment.
10. Let your employment be such as becomes a
Christian; that is, in no sense mingled with sin: for he that takes pains to
serve the ends of covetousness, or ministers to another's lust, or keeps a shop
of impurities or intemperance, is idle in the worst sense; for every hour so
spent runs him backward, and must be spent again in the remaining and shorter
part of his life, and spent better.
11. Persons of great quality, and of no trade,
are to be most prudent and curious in their employment and traffic of time.
They are miserable if their education hath been so loose and undisciplines as
to leave them unfurnished of skill to spend their time: but most miserable are
they, if such misgovernment and unskilfulness make them fall into vicious and
baser company, and drive on their time by the sad minutes and periods of sin
and death. They that are learned know the worth of time, and the manner how
well to improve a day; and they are to prepare themselves for such purposes, in
which they may be most useful in order to arts or arms, to counsel in public,
or government in their country; but for others of them, that are unlearned, let
them choose good company, such as may not tempt them to a vice, or join with
them in any; but that may supply their defects by counsel and discourse, by way
of conduct and conversation. Let them learn easy and youthful things, read
history and the laws of the land, learn the customs of their country, the
condition of their own estate, profitable and charitable contrivances of it;
let them study prudently to govern their families, learn the burdens of their
tenants, the necessities of their neighbours, and in their proportion supply
them, and reconcile their enmities, and prevent their lawsuits, or quickly end
them; and in this glut of leisure and disemployment, let them set apart greater
portions of their time for religion and the necessities of their souls.
12. Let the women of noble birth and great
fortunes do the same things in their proportions and capacities; nurse their
children, look to the affairs of the house, visit poor cottages, and relieve
their necessities; be courteous to the neighborhood, learn in silence of their
husbands or their spiritual guides, read good books, pray often and speak
little, and "learn to do good works for necessary uses;" for by that phrase St.
Paul expresses the obligation of Christian women to good housewifery, and
charitable provisions for their family and neighbourhood.
13. Let all persons of all conditions avoid all
delicacy and niceness in their clothing or diet, because such softness engages
them upon great mispendings of their time, while they dress and comb out all
their opportunities of their morning devotion, and half the day's severity, and
sleep out the care and provision of their souls.
14. Let every one of every condition avoid
curiosity, and all inquiry into things that concern them not. For all business
in things that concern us not, is an employing our time to no good of ours, and
therefore not in order to a happy eternity. In this account our neighbours'
necessities are not to be reckoned: for they concern us, as one member is
concerned in the grief of another: but going from house to house, tattlers and
busybodies, which are the canker and rust of idleness, as idleness is the rust
of time, are reproved by the apostle in severe language, and forbidden in order
to this exercise.
15. As much as may be, cut off all impertinent
and useless employments of your life, unnecessary and fantastic visits, long
waitings upon great personages, where neither duty, nor necessity, not charity,
obliges us; all vain meetings, all laborious trifles, and whatsoever spends
much time to no real, civil, religious, or charitable purpose.
16. Let not your recreations be lavish spenders
of your time; but choose such which are healthful, short, transient,
recreative, and apt to refresh you; but at no hand dwell upon them, or make
them your great employment: for he that spends his time in sports, and calls it
recreation, is like him whose garment is all made of fringes, and his meat
nothing but sauces; they are healthless, chargeable, and useless. And therefore
avoid such games, which require much time or long attendance; or which are apt
to steal thy affections from more severe employments. For to whatsoever thou
hast given thy affections, thou wilt not grudge to give thy time. Natural
necessity and the example of St. John, who recreated himself with sporting with
a tame partridge,[9] teach us, that it is lawful
to relax and unbend our bow, but not to suffer it to be unready or unstrung.
17. Set apart some portions of every day for more
solemn devotion and religious employment, which be severe in observing: and if
variety of employment, or prudent affairs, or civil society, press upon you,
yet so order thy rule, that the necessary parts of it be not omitted; and
though just occasions may make our prayers shorter, yet let nothing but a
violent, sudden, and impatient necessity, make thee, upon any one day, wholly
to omit thy morning and evening devotions; which if you be forced to make very
short, you may supply and lengthen with ejaculations and short retirements in
the day-time, in the midst of your employment or of your company.
18. Do not the `work of God negligently'[10] and idly: let not thy heart be upon the world
when thy hand is lift up in prayer; and be sure to prefer an action of
religion, in its place and proper season, before all worldly pleasure, letting
secular things, that may be dispensed with in themselves, in these
circumstances wait upon the other; not like the patriarch, who ran from the
alter in St. Sophia to his stable, in all his pontificals, and in the midst of
his office, to see a colt newly fallen from his beloved and much-valued mare
Phorbante. More prudent and severe was that of Sir Thomas More, who, being sent
for by the king when he was at his prayers in public, returned answer, he would
attend him when he had first performed his service to the King of kings. And it
did honour to Rusticus,[11] that, when letters
from Caesar were given to him, he refused to open them till the philosopher had
done his lecture. In honouring God and doing his work, put forth all thy
strength; for of that time only thou mayest be most confident that it is
gained, which is prudently and zealously spent in God's service.
19. When the clock strikes, or however else you
shall measure the day, it is good to say a short ejaculation every hour, that
the parts and returns of devotion may be the measure of your time; and do so
also in all the breaches of thy sleep; that those spaces, which have in them no
direct business of the world, may be filled with religion.
20. If, by thus doing, you have not secured your
time by an early and fore-handed care, yet be sure by a timely diligence to
redeem the time; that is, to be pious and religious in such instances in which
formerly you have sinned, and to bestow your time especially upon such graces,
the contrary whereof you have formerly practised, doing actions of chastity and
temperance with as great a zeal and earnestness as you did once act your
uncleanness; and then, by all arts, to watch against your present and future
dangers, from day to day securing your standing: this is properly to redeem
your time, that is, to buy your security of it at the rate of any labour and
honest acts.
21. Let him that is most busied set apart some
solemn time every year,[12] in which, for the
time, quitting all worldly business, he may attend wholly to fasting and
prayer, and the dressing of his soul by confessions, meditations, and
attendances upon God; that he may make up his accounts, renew his vows, make
amends for his carelessness, and retire back again, from whence levity and the
vanities of the world, or the opportunity of temptations, or the distraction of
secular affairs, have carried him.
22. In this we shall be much assisted, and we
shall find the work more easy, if, before we sleep, every night[13] we examine the actions of the past day with a particular
scrutiny, if there have been any accident extraordinary; as long discourse, a
feast, much business, a variety of company. If nothing but common hath
happened, the less examination will suffice; only let us take care that we
sleep not without such a recollection of the actions of the day, as may
represent any thing that is remarkable and great, either to be the matter of
sorrow or thanksgiving: for other things a general care is proportionable.
23. Let all these things be done prudently and
moderately, not with scruple and vexation. For these are good advantages, but
the particulars are not Divine commandments; and therefore are to be used as
shall be found expedient to every one's condition. For provided that our duty
be secured, for the degrees and for the instruments every man is permitted to
himself and the conduct of such who shall be appointed to him. He is happy that
can secure every hour to a sober or a pious employment: but the duty consists
not scrupulously in minutes and half hours, but in greater portions of time;
provided that no minute be employed in sin, and the great portions of our time
be spent in sober employment, and all the appointed days, and some portions of
every day, be allowed for religion. In all the lesser parts of time, we are
left to our own elections and prudent management, and to the consideration of
the great degrees and differences of glory that are laid up in heaven for us,
according to the degrees of our care, and piety, and diligence.
This exercise, besides that it hath influence
upon our whole lives, it hath a special efficacy for the preventing of, 1.
beggarly sins, that is, those sins which idleness and beggary usually betray
men to; such as are lying, flattery, stealing, and dissimulation. 2. It is a
proper antidote against carnal sins, and such as proceed from fulness of bread
and emptiness of employment. 3. It is a great instrument of preventing the
smallest sins and irregularities of our life, which usually creep upon idle,
disemployed, and curious persons. 4. It not only teaches us to avoid evil, but
engages us upon doing good, as the proper business of all our days. 5. It
prepares us so against sudden changes that we shall not easily be surprised at
the sudden coming of the day of the Lord: for he that is curious of his time
will not easily be unready and unfurnished.
The second general instrument of Holy Living, Purity of Intention.
That we should intend and
design God's glory in every action we do, whether it be natural or chosen, is
expressed by St. Paul,[14] "Whether ye eat or
drink, do all to the glory of God. Which rule, when we observe, every action of
nature becomes religious, and every meal is an act of worship, and shall have
its reward in its proportion, as well as an act of prayer. Blessed be that
grace and goodness of God, which, out of infinite desire to glorify and save
mankind, would make the very works of nature capable of becoming acts of
virtue, that all our life-time we may do him service.
This grace is so excellent that it sanctifies the
most common action of our life; and yet so necessary that, without it, the very
best actions of our devotion are imperfect and vicious. For he that prays out
of custom, or gives alms for praise, or fasts to be accounted religious, is but
a pharisee hypocrite in his fast. But a holy end sanctifies all these and all
other actions, which can be made holy, and gives distinction to them, and
procures acceptance.
For, as to know the end distinguishes a man from
a beast, so to choose a good end distinguishes him from an evil man. Hezekiah
repeated his good deeds upon his sick-bed, and obtained favour of God, but the
pharisee was accounted insolent for doing[15]
the same thing: because this man did it to upbraid his brother, the other to
obtain a mercy of God. Zacharias questioned with the angel about his message,
and was made speechless for his incredulity; but the blessed Virgin Mary
questioned too, and was blameless; for she did it to inquire after the manner
of the thing, but he did not believe the thing itself; he doubted of God's
power, or the truth of the messenger; but she only of her own incapacity. This
was it which distinguished the mourning of David from the exclamation of Saul;
the confession of Pharaoh from that of Manasses; the tears of Peter from the
repentance of Judas: `for the praise is not in the deed done, but in the manner
of its doing.'[16] If a man visits his sick
friend, and watches at his pillow for charity's sake, and because of his old
affection, we approve it; but if he does it in hope of legacy, he is a vulture,
and only watches for the carcass. The same things are honest and dishonest: the
manner of doing them, and the end of the design, makes the separation.'
Holy intention is to the actions of a man that
which the soul is to the body, or form to its matter, or the root to the tree,
or the sun to the world, or the fountain to a river, or the base to a pillar:
for, without these, the body is a dead trunk, the matter is sluggish, the tree
is a block, the world is darkness, the river is quickly dry, the pillar rushes
into flatness and a ruin; and the action is sinful, or unprofitable and vain.
The poor farmer that gave a dish of cold water to Artaxerxes was rewarded with
a golden goblet; and he that gives the same to a disciple in the name of a
disciple, shall have a crown; but if he gives water in dispute, when the
disciple needs wine or a cordial, his reward shall be to want that water to
cool his tongue.
1. In every action reflect upon the end; and
in your undertaking it, consider why you do it, and why you propound to
yourself for a reward, and to your actions as its end.
2. Begin every action in the name of the Father,
of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost; the meaning of which is, 1, that we be
careful that we do not the action without the permission or warrant of God; 2,
that we design it to the glory of God, if not in the direct action, yet at
least in its consequence; if not in the particular, yet at least in the whole
order of things and accidents; 3, that it may be so blessed that what you
intend for innocent and holy purposes, may not, by any chance, or abuse, or
misunderstanding of men, be turned into evil, or made the occasion of sin.
3. Let every action of concernment be begun with
prayer, that God would not only bless the action, but sanctify your purpose;
and made an oblation of the action to God: holy and well intended actions being
the best oblations and presents we can make to God; and, when God is entitled
to them, he will the rather keep the fire upon the altar bright and shining.
4. In the prosecution of the action, renew and
re-enkindle your purpose by short ejaculations to these purposes: `Not unto us,
O Lord, not unto us, but unto thy name, let all praise be given;' and consider:
"Now I am working the work of God; I am his servant, I am in a happy
employment, I am doing my master's business, I am not at my own dispose, I am
using his talents, and all the gain must be his:" for then be sure, as the
glory is his, so the reward shall be thine. If thou bringest his goods home
with increase, he will make thee ruler over cities.
5. Have a care, that, while the altar thus sends
up a holy frame, thou dost not suffer the birds to come and carry away the
sacrifice: that is, let not that which began well, and was intended for God's
glory, decline and end in thy own praise, or temporal satisfaction, or a sin. A
story, told to represent the vileness of unchastity, is well begun; but if thy
female auditor be pleased with thy language, and begins rather to like thy
person for thy story than to dislike the crime, be watchful, lest this goodly
head of gold descend in silver and brass, and end in iron and clay, like
Nebuchadnezzar's image; for from the end it shall have its name and reward.[17]
6. If any accidental event, which was not first
intended by thee, can come to pass, let it not be taken into thy purposes, not
at all be made use of; as if, by telling a true story, you can do an ill turn
to your enemy, by no means do it; but, when the temptation is found out, turn
all thy enmity upon that.
7. In every more solemn action of religion join
together many good ends, that the consideration of them may entertain all your
affections; and that, when any one ceases, the purity of your intention may be
supported by another supply. He that fasts only to tame a rebellious body, when
he is provided of a remedy either in grace or nature, may be tempted to leave
off his fasting. But be that in his fast intends the mortification of every
unruly appetite, and accustoming himself to bear the yoke of the Lord, a
contempt of the pleasures of meat and drink, humiliation of all wilder
thoughts, obedience and humility, austerity and charity, and the convenience
and assistance to devotion, and to do an act of repentance; whatever happens,
will have reason enough to make him to continue his purpose, and to sanctify
it. And certain it is, the more good ends are designed in an action the more
degrees of excellency the man obtains.
8. If any temptation to spoil your purpose
happens in a religious duty, do not presently omit the action, but rather
strive to rectify your intention, and to mortify the temptation. St. Bernard
taught us this rule: for when the devil, observing him to preach excellently
and to do much benefit to his hearers, tempted him to vain-glory, hoping that
the good man, to avoid that, would cease preaching, he gave this answer only,
"I neither began for thee, neither for thee will I make an end."
9. In all actions which are of long continuance,
deliberation, and abode, let your holy and pious intention be actual; that is,
that it be, by a special prayer or action, by a peculiar act of resignation or
oblation, given to God; but in smaller actions a pious habitual intention; that
is, that it be included within your general care that no action have an ill
end; and that it be comprehended in your general prayers, whereby you offer
yourself and all you do to God's glory.
10. Call not every temporal end a defiling of thy
intention, but only, 1, when it contradicts any of the ends of God; or 2, when
it is principally intended in an action of religion. For sometimes a temporal
end is part of our duty; and such are all the actions of our calling, whether
our employment be religious or civil. We are commanded to provide for our
family; but if the minister of divine offices shall take upon him that holy
calling for covetous or ambitious ends, or shall not design the glory of God
principally and especially, he hath polluted his hands and his heart; and the
fire of the altar is quenched, or it sends forth nothing but the smoke of
mushrooms or unpleasant gums. And it is a great unworthiness to prefer the
interest of a creature before the ends of God, the Almighty Creator.
But because many cases may happen in which a
man's heart may deceive him, and he may not well know what is in his own
spirit; therefore, by these following signs, we shall best make a judgment
whether our intentions be pure and our purposes holy.
1. It is probable our hearts[18] are right with God, and our intentions innocent and
pious, if we set upon actions of religion or civil life with an affection
proportionate to the quality of the work; that we act our temporal affairs with
a desire no greater than our necessity; and that in actions of religion we be
zealous, active, and operative, so far as prudence will permit; but, in all
cases, that we value a religious design before a temporal, when otherwise they
are in equal order to their several ends: that is, that whatsoever is necessary
in order to our soul's health be higher esteemed than what is for bodily; and
the necessities, the indispensable necessities of the spirit, be served before
the needs of nature, when they are required in their several circumstances; or
plainer yet, when we choose any temporal inconvenience, rather than to commit a
sin, and when we choose to do a duty, rather than to get gain. But he that does
his recreation or his merchandise cheerfully, promptly, readily, and busily,
and the works of religion slowly, flatly, and without appetite; and the spirit
moves like Pharaoh's chariots when the wheels were off; it is a sign that his
heart is not right with God, but it cleaves too much to the world.
2. It is likely our hearts are pure and our
intentions spotless, when we are not solicitous of the opinion and censures of
men: but only that we do our duty, and be accepted of God. For our eyes will
certainly be fixed there from whence we expect our reward: and if we desire
that God should approve us, it is a sign we do his work, and expect him our
paymaster.
3. He that does as well in private, between God
and his own soul, as in public, in pulpits, in theaters, and market-places,
hath given himself a good testimony that his purposes are full of honesty,
nobleness, and integrity. For what Helkanah said to the mother of Samuel, `Am I
not better to thee than ten sons?' is most certainly verified concerning God;
that he, who is to be our judge, is better than ten thousand witnesses. But he
that would have his virtue published, studies not virtue, but glory. "He is not
just[19] that will not be just without praise:
but he is a righteous man that does justice, when to do so is made infamous;
and he is a wise man who is delighted with an ill name that is well gotten."
And indeed that man hath a strange[20]
covetousness, or folly, that is not contented with this reward, that he hath
pleased God. And see what he gets by it. He that does good works[21] for praise or secular ends, sells an inestimable jewel
for a trifle; and that which would purchase heaven for him, he parts with for
the breath of the people; which, at best, is but air, and that not often
wholesome.
4. It is well, also, when we are not solicitous
or troubled concerning the effect and event of all our actions; but that being
first by prayer recommended to him, is left at his dispose: for then, in case
the event be not answerable to our desires, or to the efficacy of the
instrument, we have nothing left to rest in but the honesty of our purposes;
which it is the more likely we have secured, by how much more we are
indifferent concerning the success. St. James converted but eight persons, when
he preached in Spain; and our blessed Saviour converted fewer than his own
disciples did; and if thy labours prove unprosperous, if thou beset much
troubled at that, it is certain thou didst not think thyself secure of a reward
for thine intention; which thou mightst have done if it had been pure and
just.
5. He loves virtue for God's sake and its own
that loves and honours it wherever it is to be seen; but he that is envious or
angry at a virtue that is not his own, at the perfection or excellency of his
neighbour, is not covetous of the virtue, but of its reward and reputation; and
then his intentions are polluted. It was a great ingenuity in Moses that wished
all the people might be prophets; but if he had designed his own honour, he
would have prophesied alone. But he that desires only that the work of God and
religion shall go on, is pleased with it whosoever is the instrument.
6. He that despises the world, and all its
appendant vanities, is the best judge, and the most secured of his intentions;
because he is the farthest removed from temptation. Every degree of
mortification is a testimony of the purity of our purposes; and in what degree
we despise sensual pleasure, or secular honours, or worldly reputation, in the
same degree we shall conclude our heart right to religion and spiritual
designs.
7. When we are not solicitous concerning the
instruments and means of our actions, but use those means which God hath laid
before us, with resignation, indifferency, and thankfulness, it is a good sign
that we are rather intent upon the end of God's glory than our own conveniency,
or temporal satisfaction. He that is indifferent whether he serve God in riches
or in poverty, is rather a seeker of God than of himself; and he that will
throw away a good book because it is not curiously gilded, is more curious to
please his eye than to inform his understanding.
8. When a temporal end consisting with a
spiritual, and pretended to be subordinate to it, happens to fail and be
defeated if we can rejoice in that, so God's glory may be secured, and the
interests of religion, it is a great sign our hearts are right, and our ends
prudently designed and ordered.
When our intentions are thus balanced, regulated,
and discerned, we may consider, 1. That this exercise is of so universal
efficacy in the whole course of a holy life that it is like the soul to every
holy action, and must be provided for in every undertaking; and is, of itself
alone, sufficient to make all natural and indifferent actions to be adopted
into the family of religion.
2. That there are some actions, which are usually
reckoned as parts of our religion, which yet, of themselves, are so relative
and imperfect, that, without the purity of intention, they degenerate: and
unless they be directed and proceed on to those purposes which God designed
them to, they return into the family of common secular, or sinful actions.
Thus, alms are for charity, fasting for temperance, prayer is for religion,
humiliation is for humility, austerity or sufferance is in order to the virtue
of patience; and when these actions fail of their several ends, or are not
directed to their own purposes, alms are misspent, fasting is an impertinent
trouble, prayer is but lip-labour, humiliation is but hypocisy, sufferance is
but vexation; for such were the alms of the pharisee, the fast of Jezebel, the
prayer of Judah reproved by the prophet Isaiah, the humiliation of Ahab, the
martyrdom of heretics; in which nothing is given to God but the body, or the
forms of religion; but the soul and the power of godliness is wholly
wanting.
3. We are to consider that no intention can
sanctify an unholy or unlawful action. Saul, the king, disobeyed God's
commandment, and spared the cattle of Amalek to reserve the best for sacrifice;
and Saul, the pharisee, persecuted the church of God with a design to do God
service; and they that killed the apostles had also good purposes, but they had
unhallowed actions. When there be both truth in election, and charity in the
intention;[22] when we go to God in ways of
his own choosing or approving, then our eye is single, and our hands are clean,
and our hearts are pure. But when a man does evil that good may come of it, or
good to an evil purpose, that man does like him that rolls himself in thorns
that he may sleep easily; he roasts himself in the fire that he may quench his
thirst with his own sweat; he turns his face to the east that he may go to bed
with the sun. I end this with the saying of a wise heathen:[23] "He is to be called evil that is good only for his own
sake. Regard not how full hands you bring to God, but how pure. Many cease from
sin out of fear alone, not out of innocence or love of virtue;" and they, as
yet, are not to be called innocent but timorous.
The third general instrument of Holy Living; or the Practice
of the Presence of God.
That God is present in all places, that he sees
every action, hears all discourses and understands every thought, is no strange
thing to a Christian ear who hath been taught this doctrine, not only by right
reason and the consent of all the wise men in the world, but also by God
himself in holy Scripture. `Am I a God at hand, saith the Lord, and not a God
afar off? Can any hide himself in secret places that I shall not see him? saith
the Lord. Do not I fill heaven and earth?' `Neither is there any creature that
is not manifest in his sight; but all things are naked and open to the eyes of
him with whom we have to do.'[24] "For in him
we live and move and have our being.'[25] God
is wholly in every place; included in no place; not bound with cords, except
those of love; not divided into parts, nor changeable into several shapes;
filling heaven and earth with his present power and with his never absent
nature. So St. Augustine[26] expresses this
article. So that we may imagine God to be as the air and the sea, and we all
enclosed in his circle, wrapped up in the lap of his infinite nature; or as
infants in the wombs of their pregnant mothers: and we can no more be removed
from the presence of God than from our own being.
The presence of God is understood by us in
several manners, and to several purposes.
1. God is present by his essence; which, because
it is infinite, cannot be contained within the limits of any place; and,
because he is of an essential purity and spiritual nature, he cannot be
undervalued by being supposed present in the places of unnatural uncleanness;
because as the sun, reflecting upon the mud of strands and shores, is
unpolluted in its beams, so is God not dishonoured when we suppose him in every
of his creatures, and in every part of every one of them; and is still as
unmixed with any unhandsome adherence as is the soul in the bowels of the
body.
2. God is everywhere present by his power.[27] He rolls the orbs of heaven with his hands;
he fixes the earth with his foot; he guides all the creatures with his eye, and
refreshes them with his influence: he makes the powers of hell to shake with
his terrors, and binds the devils with his word, and throws them out with his
command, and sends the angels on embassies with his decrees: he hardens the
joints of infants, and confirms the bones, when they are fashioned beneath
secretly in the earth. he it is that assists at the numerous productions of
fishes; and there is not one hollowness in the bottom of the sea, but he shows
himself to be Lord of it by sustaining there the creatures that come to dwell
in it: and in the wilderness, the bittern and the stork, the dragon and the
satyr, the unicorn and the elk, live upon his provisions, and revere his power,
and feel the force of his almightiness.
3. God is more specially present, in some places,
but the several and more special manifestations of himself to extraordinary
purposes. First, by glory. Thus, his seat is in heaven, because there he sits
encircled with all the outward demonstrations of his glory, which he is pleased
to show to all the inhabitants of those his inward and secret courts. And thus
they that `die in the Lord, may be properly said to be `gone to God;' with whom
although they were before, yet now they enter into his courts, into the secret
of his tabernacle, into the retinue and splendour of his glory. That is called
walking with God, but this is dwelling or being with him. `I desire to be
dissolved and to be with Christ;' so said St. Paul. But this manner of Divine
Presence is reserved for the elect people of God, and for their portion in
their country.
4. God is, by grace and benediction, specially
present in holy places,[28] and in the solemn
assemblies of his servants. If holy people meet in grots and dens of the earth
when persecution or a public necessity disturbs the public order, circumstance,
and convenience, God fails not to come thither to them; but God is also, by the
same or a greater reason, present there where they meet ordinarily by order and
public authority; there God is present ordinarily, that is, at every such
meeting. God will go out of his way to meet his saints when themselves are
forced out of their way of order by a sad necessity; but else, God's usual way
is to be present in those places where his servants are appointed ordinarily[29] to meet. But his presence there signifies
nothing but a readiness to hear their prayers, to bless their persons, to
accept their offices, and to like even the circumstance of orderly and public
meeting. For thither the prayers of consecration, the public authority
separating it, and God's love of order, and the reasonable customs of religion,
have in ordinary, and in a certain degree, fixed this manner of his presence,
and he loves to have it so.
5. God is especially present in the hearts of his
people by his Holy Spirit; and indeed the hearts of holy men are temples in the
truth of things, and, in type and shadow, they are heaven itself. For God
reigns in the hearts of his servants; there is his kingdom. The power of grace
hath subdued all his enemies: there is his power. They serve him night and day,
and give him thanks and praise; that is his glory. This is the religion and
worship of God in the temple. The temple itself is the heart of man; Christ is
the high-priest, who from thence sends up the incense of prayers, and joins
them to his own intercession, and presents all together to his Father; and the
Holy Ghost, by his dwelling there, hath also consecrated it into a temple;[30] and God dwells in our hearts by faith and
Christ by his Spirit, and the Spirit by his purities: so that we are also
cabinets of the mysterious Trinity; and what is this short of heaven itself,
but as infancy is short of manhood, and letters of words? The same state of
life it is, but not the same age. It is heaven in a looking-glass, dark, but
yet true, representing the beauties of the soul, and the graces of God, and the
images of his eternal glory, by the reality of a special presence.
6. God is especially present in the consciences
of all persons, good and bad, by way of testimony and judgment; that is, he is
there a remembrance to call our actions to mind, a witness to bring them to
judgment, and a judge to acquit or to condemn. And although this manner of
presence is, in this life, after the manner of this life, that is imperfect,
and we forget many actions of our lives; yet the greatest changes of our state
of grace or sin, our most considerable actions, are always present, like
capital letters to an aged and dim eye; and, at the day of judgment, God shall
draw aside the cloud, and manifest this manner of his presence more
notoriously, and make it appear that he was an observer of our very thoughts,
and that he only laid those things by which, because we covered with dust and
negligence, were not then discerned. But when we are risen from our dust and
imperfection they all appear plain and legible.
Now the consideration of this great truth is of a
very universal use in the whole course of the life of a Christian. All the
consequents and effects of it are universal. He that remembers that God stands
a witness and a judge, beholding every secresy, besides his impiety, must have
put on impudence, if he be not much restrained in his temptation to sin. "For
the greatest part of sin is taken away,[31] if
a man have a witness of his conversation: and he is a great despiser of God who
sends a boy away when he is going to commit fornication, and yet will dare to
do it, though he knows God is present, and cannot be sent off; as if the eye of
a little boy were more awful than the all-seeing eye of God. He is to be feared
in public; he is to be feared in private: if you go forth, he spies you; if you
go in, he sees you: when you light the candle, he observes you; when you put it
out, then also God marks you. Be sure, that while you are in his sight, you
behave yourself as becomes so holy a presence." But if you will sin, retire
yourself wisely, and go where God cannot see, for nowhere else can you be safe.
And certainly, if men would always actually consider, and really esteem this
truth, that God is the great eye of the world, always watching over our
actions, and an ever-open ear to hear all our words, and an unwearied arm ever
lifted up to crush a sinner into ruin, it would be the readiest way in the
world to make sin to cease from amongst the children of men, and for men to
approach to the blessed estate of the saints in heaven, who cannot sin, for
they always walk in the presence and behold the face of God. This instrument is
to be reduced to practice, according to the following rules.
1. Let this actual thought often return, that
God is omnipresent, filling every place; and say with David,[32] "Whither shall I go from thy Spirit, or whither shall I
flee from thy presence? If I ascend up into heaven, thou art there: if I make
my bed in hell, thou art there," etc. This thought, by being frequent, will
make an habitual dread and reverence towards God, and fear in all thy actions.
For it is a great necessity and engagement to do unblamably when we act before
the Judge,[33] who is infallible in his
sentence, all-knowing in his information, severe in his anger, powerful in his
providence, and intolerable in his wrath and indignation.
2. In the beginning of actions of religion, make
an act of adoration, that is, solemnly worship God, and place thyself in God's
presence, and behold him with the eye of faith; and let thy desires actually
fix on him as the object of thy worship, and the reason of thy hope, and the
fountain of thy blessing. For when thou hast placed thyself before him, and
kneelest in his presence, it is most likely all the following parts of thy
devotion will be answerable to the wisdom of such an apprehension, and the
glory of such a presence.
3. Let everything you see represent to your
spirit the presence, the excellency, and the power of God; and let your
conversation with the creatures lead you unto the Creator; for so shall your
actions be done more frequently, with an actual eye to God's presence, by your
often seeing him in the glass of the creation. In the face of the sun you may
see God's beauty; in the fire you may feel his heat warming; in the water, his
gentleness to refresh you: he it is that comforts your spirit when you have
taken cordials; it is the dew of heaven that makes your field give you bread;
and the breasts of God are the bottles that minister drink to your necessities.
This philosophy, which is obvious to every man's experience, is a good
advantage to our piety; and, by this act of understanding, our wills are
checked from violence and misdemeanour.
4. In your retirement, make frequent colloquies,
or short discoursings, between God and thy soul. Seven times a-day do I praise
thee: and in the night season also I thought upon thee, while I was waking. So
did David; and every act of complaint or thanksgiving, every act of rejoicing
or of mourning, every petition and every return of the heart in these
intercourses, is a going to God, an appearing in his presence, and a
representing him present to thy spirit and to thy necessity. And this was long
since by a spiritual person called, "a building to God a chapel in our heart."
It reconciles Martha's employment with Mary's devotion, charity and religion,
the necessities of our calling, and the employments of devotion. For thus, in
the midst of the works of your trade, you may retire into your chapel, your
heart, and converse with God by frequent addresses and returns.
5. Represent and offer to God acts of love and
fear, which are the proper effects of this apprehension, and the proper
exercise of this consideration. For, as God is everywhere present by his power,
he calls for reverence and godly fear; as he is present to thee in all thy
needs, and relieves them, he deserves thy love; and since, in every accident of
our lives, we find one or other of these apparent, and in most things we see
both, it is a proper and proportionate return, that, to every such
demonstration of God, we express ourselves sensible of it by admiring the
Divine goodness, or trembling at his presence; ever obeying him because we love
him, and ever obeying him because we fear to offend him. This is that which
Enoch did, who thus `walked with God.'
6. Let us remember that God is in us, and that we
are in him: we are his workmanship, let us not deface it; we are in his
presence, let us not pollute it by unholy and impure actions. God hath `also
wrought all our works in us:'[34] and because
he rejoices in his own works, if we defile them, and make them unpleasant to
him, we walk perversely with God, and he will walk crookedly towards us.
7. `God is in the bowels of thy brother;' refresh
them, when he needs it, and then you give your alms in the presence of God, and
to God; and he feels the relief which thou providest for thy brother.
8. God is in every place; suppose it, therefore,
to be a church: and that decency of deportment and piety of carriage, which you
are taught by religion, or by custom, or by civility and public manners, to use
in churches, the same use in all places; with this difference only, that in
churches let your deportment be religious in external forms and circumstances
also; but there and everywhere let it be religious in abstaining from spiritual
indecencies, and in readiness to do good actions, that it may not be said of
us, as God once complained of his people, `Why hath my beloved done wickedness
in my house?'[35]
9. God is in every creature: be cruel towards
none, neither abuse any by intemperance. Remember, that the creatures and every
member of thy own body, is one of the lesser cabinets and receptacles of God.
They are such which God hath blessed with his presence, hallowed by his touch,
and separated from unholy use, by making them to belong to his dwelling.
10. He walks as in the presence of God that
converses with him in frequent prayer and frequent communion; that runs to him
in all his necessities; that asks counsel of him in all his doubtings; that
opens all his wants to him; that weeps before him for his sins; that asks
remedy and support for his weakness; that fears him as a judge; reverences him
as a lord; obeys him as a father; and loves him as a patron.
The benefits of this consideration and
exercise being universal upon all the parts of piety, I shall less need to
specify any particulars; but yet, most properly, this exercise of considering
the Divine presence is, 1. An excellent help to prayer, producing in us
reverence and awfulness to the Divine Majesty of God, and actual devotion in
our offices. 2. It produces a confidence in God and fearlessness of our
enemies, patience in trouble and hope of remedy; since God is so nigh in all
our sad accidents, he is a disposer of the hearts of men and the events of
things, he proportions out our trials, and supplies us with remedy, and, where
his rod strikes us, his staff supports us. To which we may add this, that God,
who is always with us, is especially, by promise, with us in tribulation, to
turn the misery into a mercy, and that our greatest trouble may become our
advantage, by entitling us to a new manner of the Divine presence. 3. If is apt
to produce joy and rejoicing in God, we being more apt to delight in the
partners and witnesses of our conversation, every degree of mutual abiding and
conversing being a relation and an endearment: we are of the same household
with God; he is with us in our natural actions, to preserve us; in our
recreations, to restrain us; in our public actions, to applaud or reprove us;
in our private, to observe us; in our sleeps, to watch by us; in our watchings,
to refresh us; and if we walk with God in all his ways, as he walks with us in
all ours, we shall find perpetual reasons to enable us to keep that rule of
God, `Rejoice in the Lord always, and again I say rejoice.' And this put me in
mind of a saying of an old religious person,[36] "There is one way of overcoming our ghostly enemies;
spiritual mirth, and a perpetual bearing of God in our minds." This effectively
resists the devil, and suffers us to receive no hurt from him. 4. This exercise
is apt also to enkindle holy desires of the enjoyment of God, because it
produces joy when we do enjoy him; the same desires that a weak man hath for a
defender; the sick man for a physician; the poor for a patron; the child for
his father; the espoused lover for her betroths. 5. From the same fountain are
apt to issue humility of spirit, apprehensions of our great distance and our
great needs, our daily wants and hourly supplies, admiration of God's
unspeakable mercies: it is the cause of great modesty and decency in our
actions; it helps to recollection of mind, and restrains the scatterings and
looseness of wandering thoughts; it establishes the heart in good purposes, and
leadeth on to perseverance; it gains purity and perfection, (according to the
saying of God to Abraham, `walk before me and be perfect,') holy fear, and holy
love, and indeed everything that pertains to holy living: when we see ourselves
placed in the eye of God, who sets us on work and will reward us plenteously,
to serve him with an eye-service is very unpleasing, for he also sees the
heart; and the want of this consideration was declared to be the cause why
Israel sinned so grievously, `for they say, The Lord hath forsaken the earth,
and the Lord seeth not:[37] therefore the land
is full of blood, and the city full of perverseness.' What a child would do in
the eye of his father, and a pupil before his tutor, and a wife in the presence
of her husband, and a servant in the sight of his master, let us always do the
same, for we are made a spectacle to God, to angels, and to men; we are always
in the sight and presence of the all-seeing and almighty God, who also is to us
a father and a guardian, a husband and a lord.
According to the Religion and Purposes of this foregoing Considerations.
I.
O eternal God, who from all eternity dost behold and love thy own glories and
perfections infinite, and hast created me to do the work of God after the
manner of men, and to serve thee in this generation and according to my
capacities, give me thy grace, that I may be a curious and prudent spender of
my time, so as I may best prevent or resist all temptation, and be profitable
to the Christian commonwealth, and, by discharging all my duty, may glorify thy
name. Take from me all slothfulness, and give me a diligent and an active
spirit, and wisdom to choose my employment; that I may do works proportionable
to my person and to the dignity of a Christian, and may fill up all the spaces
of my time with actions of religion and charity; that, when the devil assaults
me, he may not find me idle; and my dearest Lord, at his sudden coming, may
find me busy in lawful, necessary, and pious actions, improving my talent
entrusted to me by thee, my Lord; that I may enter into the joy of my Lord, to
partake of his eternal felicities, even for thy mercy's sake, and for my
dearest Saviour's sake. Amen.
Here follows the devotion of ordinary days, for
the right employment of those portions of time which every day must allow for
religion.
Humbly and reverently compose yourself, with heart lift up to God, and your
head bowed, and meekly kneeling upon your knees, say the Lord's Prayer: after
which use the following collects, or as many of them as you shall choose.
I. An Act of Adoration, being the song that the angels sing in heaven.
Holy, holy, holy, Lord God Almighty, who was, and is, and is to come:[38] heaven and earth, angels and men, the air
and the sea, give glory, and honour, and thanks to him that sitteth on the
throne, who liveth for ever and ever.[39] All
the blessed spirits and souls of the righteous cast their crowns before the
throne, and worship him that liveth for ever and ever.[40] Thou art worthy, O Lord, to receive glory and honour and
power, for thou hast created all things, and for thy pleasure they are, and
were created. Great and marvelous are thy works, O Lord God Almighty; just and
true are thy ways, thou King of saints.[41]
Thy wisdom is infinite, thy mercies are glorious and I am not worthy, O Lord,
to appear in thy presence, before whom the angels hide their faces. O holy and
eternal Jesus, Lamb of God, who wert slain from the beginning of the world,
thou hast redeemed us to God by thy blood out of every nation, and hast made us
unto our God kings and priests, and we shall reign with thee for ever.
Blessing, honour, glory, and power be unto him that sitteth on the throne, and
to the Lamb, for ever and ever. Amen.
II. An Act of Thanksgiving, being the song of David, for the morning.
Sing praises unto the Lord, O ye saints of his, and give thanks to him for a
remembrance of his holiness. For his wrath endureth but the twinkling of an
eye, and in his pleasure is life: heaviness may endure for a night, but joy
cometh in the morning. Thou, Lord, hast preserved me this night from the
violence of the spirits of darkness, from all sad casualties and evil
accidents, from the wrath which I have every day deserved; thou hast brought my
soul out of hell; thou hast kept my life from them that go down into the pit;
thou hast showed me marvelous great kindness, and hast blessed me for ever: the
greatness of thy glory reacheth unto the heavens, and thy truth unto the
clouds. Therefore shall every good man sing of thy praise without ceasing. O my
God, I will give thanks unto thee for ever. Hallelujah!
III. An Act of Oblation, or presenting ourselves to God for the day.
Most holy and eternal God, lord and sovereign of all the creatures, I humbly
present to thy Divine Majesty myself, my soul and body, my thoughts and my
words, my actions and intentions, my passions and my sufferings, to be disposed
by thee to thy glory; to be blessed by thy providence; to be guided by thy
counsel; to be sanctified by thy Spirit; and afterwards that my body and soul
may be received into glory: for nothing can perish which is under thy custody;
and the enemy of souls cannot devour what is thy portion, nor take it out of
thy hands. This day, O Lord, and all the days of my life, I dedicate to thy
honour, and the actions of my calling to the uses of grace, and the religion of
all my days to be united to the merits and intercession of my holy Saviour
Jesus, that in him and for him I may be pardoned and accepted. Amen.
IV. An Act of Repentance or Contrition.
For as for me, I am not worthy to be called thy servant, much less am I worthy
to be thy son; for I am the vilest of sinners and the worst of men; a lover of
the things of the world, and a despiser of the things of God; proud and
envious, lustful and intemperate, greedy of sin, and impatient of reproof;
desirous to seem holy, and negligent of being so; transported with interest;
fooled with presumption and false principles; disturbed with anger, with a
peevish and unmortified spirit, and disordered by a whole body of sin and
death. Lord, pardon all my sins for my sweetest Saviour's sake; thou, who didst
die for me, holy Jesus, save me and deliver me; reserve not my sins to be
punished in the day of wrath and eternal vengeance; but wash away my sins, and
blot them out of thy remembrance, and purify my soul with the waters of
repentance and the blood of the cross; that, for what is past, thy wrath may
not come out against me; and, for the time to come, I may never provoke thee to
anger or to jealousy. O just and dear God, be pitiful and gracious to thy
servant. Amen.
V. The Prayer or Petition.
Bless me, gracious God, in my calling to such purposes as thou shalt choose for
me, or employ me in: relieve me in all my sadnesses; make my bed in my
sickness; give me patience in my sorrows, confidence in thee, and grace to call
upon thee in all temptations. O be thou my guide in all my actions; my
protector in all dangers; give me a healthful body, and a clear understanding;
a sanctified and just, a charitable and humble, a religious and a contented
spirit; let not my life be miserable and wretched; nor my name stained with sin
and shame; nor my condition lifted up to a tempting and dangerous fortune: but
let my condition be blessed, my conversation useful to my neighbours, and
pleasing to thee; that when my body shall lie down in its bed of darkness, my
soul may pass into the regions of light, and live with thee for ever, through
Jesus Christ. Amen.
VI. An Act of Intercession or Prayer for others, to be added to this or any
other office, as our devotion or duty, or their needs, shall determine us.
O God of infinite mercy, who hast compassion on all men, and relievest the
necessities of all that call to thee for help, hear the prayers of thy servant,
who is unworthy to ask any petition for himself, yet, in humility and duty, is
bound to pray for others.
For the Church.
O let thy mercy descend upon the whole church; preserve her in truth and peace,
in unity and safety, in all storms, and against all temptations and enemies;
that she, offering to thy glory the never-ceasing sacrifice of prayer and
thanksgiving, may advance the honour of her Lord, and be filled with his
Spirit, and partake of his glory. Amen.
For the King.
In mercy, remember the king; preserve his person in health and honour; his
crown in wealth and dignity; his kingdoms in peace and plenty; the churches
under his protection in piety and knowledge, and a strict and holy religion;
keep him perpetually in thy fear and favour, and crown him with glory and
immortality. Amen.
For the Clergy.
Remember them that minister about holy things; let them be clothed with
righteousness, and sing with joyfulness. Amen.
For Wife or Husband.
Bless thy servant (my wife, or husband) with health of body and of spirit. O
let the hand of thy blessing be upon his/her head night and day, and support
him/her in all necessities, strengthen him/her in all temptations, comfort
him/her in all his/her sorrows, and let him/her be thy servant in all changes;
and make us both to dwell with thee for ever in thy favour, in the light of thy
countenance, and in thy glory. Amen.
For our Children.
Bless my children with healthful bodies, with good understandings, with the
graces and gifts of thy Spirit, with sweet dispositions and holy habits; and
sanctify them throughout in their bodies, and souls, and spirits, and keep them
unblamable to the coming of the Lord Jesus. Amen.
For Friends and Benefactors.
Be pleased, O Lord, to remember my friends, all that have prayed for me, and
all that have done me good. (Here name such whom you would especially
recommend.) Do thou good to them, and return all their kindness double into
their own bosom, rewarding them with blessings, and sanctifying them with thy
graces, and bringing them to glory.
For our Family.
Let all my family and kindred, my neighbours and acquaintance (here name what
other relations you please) receive the benefit of my prayers, and the
blessings of God, the comforts and supports of thy providence, and the
sanctification of thy Spirit.
For all in Misery.
Relieve and comfort all the persecuted and afflicted; speak peace to troubled
consciences; strengthen the weak; confirm the strong; instruct the ignorant;
deliver the oppressed from him that spoileth him; and relieve the needy that
hath no helper; and bring us all, by the waters of comfort, and in the ways of
righteousness, to the kingdom of rest and glory, through Jesus Christ, our
Lord. Amen.
In the name of the Father, and of the Son, etc. Our Father, etc.
I.
Most glorious and eternal God, Father of mercy, and God of all comfort, I
worship and adore thee with the lowest humility of my soul and body, and give
thee all thanks and praise for thy infinite and essential glories and
perfections, and for the continual demonstration of thy mercies upon me, upon
all mine, and upon thy holy catholic church.
II.
I acknowledge, dear God, that I have deserved the greatest of thy wrath and
indignation; and that, if thou hadst dealt with me according to my deserving, I
had now, at this instant, been desperately bewailing my miseries in the sorrows
and horrors of a sad eternity. But thy mercy triumphing over thy justice and my
sins, thou hast still continued to me life and time of repentance; thou hast
opened to me the gates of grace and mercy, and perpetually callest upon me to
enter in, and to walk in the paths of a holy life, that I might glorify thee,
and be glorified of thee eternally.
III.
Behold, O God, for this thy great and unspeakable goodness, for the
preservation of me this night, and for all other thy graces and blessings, I
offer up my soul and body, all that I am, and all that I have, as a sacrifice
to thee and thy service, humbly begging of thee to pardon all my sins, to
defend me from all evil, to lead me into all good; and let my portion be
amongst thy redeemed ones in the gathering together of the saints, in the
kingdom of grace and glory.
IV.
Guide me, O Lord, in all the changes and varieties of the world; that in all
things that shall happen I may have an evenness and tranquility of spirit; that
my soul may be wholly resigned to thy divine will and pleasure, never murmuring
at thy gentle chastisements and fatherly correction; never waxing proud and
insolent, though I feel a torrent of comforts and prosperous successes.
V.
Fix my thoughts, my hopes, and my desires upon heaven and heavenly things;
teach me to despise the world, to repent deeply for my sins; give me holy
purposes of amendment and ghostly strength, and assistance to perform
faithfully whatsoever I shall intend piously. Enrich my understanding with an
eternal treasure of Divine Truths, that I may know thy will: and thou, who
workest in us to will and to do of thy good pleasure, teach me to obey all thy
commandments, to believe all thy revelations, and make me partaker of all thy
gracious promises.
VI.
Teach me to watch over all my ways, that I may never be surprised by sudden
temptations or a careless spirit, nor ever return to folly and vanity. Set a
watch, O Lord, before my mouth, and keep the door of my lips, that I offend not
in my tongue, neither against piety nor charity. Teach me to think of nothing
but thee, and what is in order to thy glory and service: to speak nothing but
of thee and thy glories; and to do nothing but what becomes thy servant, whom
thy infinite mercy, by the graces of thy Holy Spirit, hath sealed up to the day
of redemption.
VII.
Let all my passions and affections be so mortified and brought under the
dominion of grace, that I may never, be deliberation and purpose, nor yet by
levity, rashness, or inconsideration, offend thy Divine Majesty. make me such
as thou wouldst have me to be: strengthen my faith, confirm my hope, and give
me a daily increase of charity, that, this day and ever, I may serve thee
according to all my opportunities and capacities, growing from grace to grace,
till at last, by thy mercies, I shall receive the consummation and perfection
of grace, even the glories of thy kingdom, in the full fruition of the face and
excellencies of God the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost; to whom be glory
and praise, honour and adoration, given by all angels, and all men, and all
creatures, now, and to all eternity. Amen.
*To this may be added the prayer of intercession
for others, whom we are bound to remember, which is at the end of the foregoing
prayer; or else you may take such special prayers which follow at the end of
the fourth chapter (for parents, for children, etc.).
After which, conclude with this Ejaculation.
Now in all tribulation and anguish of spirit, in all dangers of soul and body,
in prosperity and adversity, in the hour of death and in the day of judgment,
holy and most blessed Saviour Jesus, have mercy upon me, save me, and deliver
me and all faithful people. Amen.
*Between this and noon, usually are said the
public prayers appointed by authority, to which all the clergy are obligated
and other devout persons that have leisure, to accompany them.
*Afternoon, or at any time of the day, when a
devout person retires into his closet for private prayer or spiritual
exercises, he may say the following devotions.
In the name of the Father, and of the Son, etc. Our Father, etc.
The Hymn, collected out of the Psalms, recounting the Excellences and
Greatness of God.
O be joyful in God, all ye lands; sing praises unto the honour of his name,
make his name to be glorious. O come hither, and behold the works of God, how
wonderful he is in his doings towards the children of men. He ruleth with his
power for ever.[42]
He is the Father of the fatherless, and
defendeth the cause of the widow, even God in his holy habitation. He is the
God that maketh men to be of one mind in a house, and bringeth the prisoners
out of captivity; but letteth the runagates continue in scarceness.[43]
It is the Lord that commandeth the waters; it is
the glorious God that maketh the thunder; it is the Lord that ruleth the sea.
The voice of the Lord is a glorious voice.[44]
Let all the earth fear the Lord: stand in awe of
him, all ye that dwell in the world. Thou shalt show us wonderful things in thy
righteousness, O God of our salvation; thou that art the hope of all the ends
of the earth, and of them that remain in the broad sea.[45]
Glory be to the Father, etc.
Or this:
O Lord, thou art my God, I will exalt thee; I will praise thy name for thou
hast done wonderful things; thy counsels of old are faithfulness and truth.[46]
Thou, in thy strength, settest fast the
mountains, and art girded about with power. Thou stillest the raging of the
sea, and the noise of his waves, and the uttermost parts of his people.[47]
They, also, that remain in the uttermost parts of
the earth shall be afraid at thy tokens; thou, that makest the outgoings of the
morning and evening to praise thee.
O Lord God of Hosts, who is like unto thee? thy
truth, most mighty Lord, is on every side.[48]
Among the gods there is none like unto thee: O Lord, there is none that can do
as thou doest For thou art great, and doest wondrous things; thou art God
alone.[49]
God is very greatly to be feared in the council
of the saints, and to be had in reverence of all men that are round about
him.[50]
Righteousness and equity are in the habitation of
thy seat; mercy and truth shall go before thy face. Glory and worship are
before him; power and honour are in his sanctuary.[51]
Thou, Lord, art the thing that I long for; thou
art my hope even from my youth. Through thee have I been holden up, ever since
I was born; thou art he that took me out of my mother's womb; my praise shall
be always of thee.[52]
Glory be to the Father, etc.
*After this may be read some portion of Holy
Scripture, out of the New Testament, or out of the Sapiential books of the Old,
viz. Proverbs, Ecclesiastes, etc., because these are of great use to piety and
to civil conversation. Upon which when you have awhile meditated, humbly
composing yourself upon your knees, say as followeth:
Ejaculations.
My help standeth in the name of the Lord, who hath made heaven and earth.
Show the light of thy countenance upon thy servant, and I shall be safe.[53]
Do well, O Lord, to them that be true of heart, and evermore mightily defend
them.[54]
Direct me in thy truth, and teach me; for thou are my Saviour, and my great
master.[55]
Keep me from sin and death eternal, and from my enemies visible and
invisible.
Give me grace to live a holy life, and thy favour, that I may die a godly and
happy death.
Lord, hear the prayer of thy servant, and give me thy Holy
Spirit.
The Prayer.
O eternal God, merciful and gracious, vouchsafe thy favour and thy blessing to
thy servant: let the love of thy mercies, and the dread and fear of thy
majesty, make me careful and inquisitive to search thy will, and diligent to
perform it, and to persevere in the practices of a holy life, even till the
last of my days.
II.
Keep me, O Lord, for I am thine by creation; guide me, for I am thine by
purchase; thou hast redeemed me by the blood of thy Son; and loved me with the
love of a father, for I am thy child by adoption and grace: let thy mercy
pardon my sins, thy providence secure me from the punishments and evils I have
deserved, and thy care watch over me, that I may never any more offend thee:
make me, in malice, to be a child; but in understanding, piety, and the fear of
God, let me be a perfect man in Christ, innocent and prudent, readily furnished
and instructed to every good work.
III.
Keep me, O Lord, from the destroying angel, and from the wrath of God: let thy
anger never rise against me, but thy rod gently correct my follies, and guide
me in thy ways, and thy staff support me in all sufferings and changes.
Preserve me from fracture of bones, from noisome, infectious, and sharp
sicknesses; from great violences of fortune and sudden surprises: keep all my
senses entire till the day of my death, and let my death be neither sudden,
untimely, nor unprovided: let it be after the common manner of men, having in
it nothing extraordinary, but an extraordinary piety, and the manifestation of
thy great and miraculous mercy.
IV.
Let no riches make me ever forget myself, no poverty ever make me to forget
thee: let no hope or fear, no pleasure or pain, no accident without, no
weakness within, hinder or discompose my duty, or turn me from the ways of thy
commandments. O, let thy Spirit dwell with me for ever, and make my soul just
and charitable, full of honesty, full of religion, resolute and constant in
holy purposes, but inflexible to evil. Make me humble and obedient, peaceable
and pious; let me never envy any man's goods, nor deserve to be despised
myself: and if I be, teach me to bear it with meekness and charity.
V.
Give me a tender conscience; a conversation discreet and affable, modest and
patient, liberal and obliging; a body chaste and healthful, competency of
living according to my condition, contentedness in all estates, a resigned will
and mortified affections; that I may be as thou wouldst have me, and my portion
may be in the lot of the righteous, in the brightness of thy countenance, and
the glories of eternity. Amen.
Holy is our God. Holy is the Almighty. Holy
is the Immortal. Holy, holy, holy, Lord God of Sabbaoth, have mercy upon me.
I.
O eternal God, great Father of men and angels, who hast established the heavens
and the earth in a wonderful order, making day and night to succeed each other;
I make my humble address to thy Divine Majesty, begging of thee mercy and
protection this night and ever. O Lord, pardon all my sins, my light and rash
words, the vanity and impiety of my thoughts, my unjust and uncharitable
actions, and whatsoever I have transgressed against thee this day, or at any
time before. Behold, O God, my soul is troubled in the remembrance of my sins,
in the frailty and sinfulness of my flesh, exposed to every temptation, and of
itself not able to resist any. Lord God of mercy, I earnestly beg of thee to
give me a great portion of thy grace, such as may be sufficient and effectual
for the mortification of all my sins and vanities and disorders, that as I have
formerly served my list and unworthy desires, so now I may give myself up
wholly to thy service and the studies of a holy life.
II.
Blessed Lord, teach me frequently and sadly to remember my sins; and be thou
pleased to remember them no more: let me never forget thy mercies, and do thou
still remember to do me good. Teach me to walk always as in thy presence:
ennoble my soul with great degrees of love to thee, and consign my spirit with
great fear, religion, and veneration of thy holy name and laws; that it may
become the great employment of my whole life to serve thee, to advance thy
glory, to root out all the accursed habits of sin; that in holiness of life, in
humility, in charity, in chastity, and all the ornaments of grace, I may be
patience wait for the coming of our Lord Jesus. Amen.
III.
Teach me, O Lord, to number my days, that I may apply my heart unto wisdom;
ever to remember my last end, that I may not dare to sin against thee. Let thy
holy angels be ever present with me, to keep me in all my ways from the malice
and violence of the spirits of darkness, from evil company, and the occasions
and opportunities of evil, from perishing in popular judgments, from all the
ways of sinful shame, from the hands of all mine enemies, from a sinful life,
and from despair in the day of my death. Then, O brightest Jesus, shine
gloriously upon me, let thy mercies and the light of thy countenance sustain me
in all my agonies, weaknesses, and temptations. Give me opportunity of a
prudent and spiritual guide, and of receiving the holy sacrament; and let thy
loving spirit so guide me in the ways of peace and safety, that, with the
testimony of a good conscience, and the sense of thy mercies and refreshment, I
may depart this life in the unity of the church, in the love of God, and a
certain hope of salvation through Jesus Christ our Lord, and most blessed
Saviour. Amen.
Our Father, etc.
Our Father, etc.
I will lift up my eyes unto the hills, from whence cometh my help.[56]
My help cometh of the Lord, which made heaven and earth.
He will not suffer thy foot to be moved: he that keepeth thee will not
slumber.
Behold, he that keepeth Israel shall neither slumber nor sleep.
The Lord is thy keeper, the Lord is thy shade, upon thy right hand.
The sun shall not smite thee by day, neither the moon by night.
The Lord shall preserve thee from all evil; he shall preserve thy soul.
The Lord shall preserve thy going out and thy coming in, from this time forth
for evermore.
Glory be to the Father, etc.
I.
Visit, I beseech thee, O Lord, this habitation with thy mercy, and me with thy
grace and salvation. Let thy holy angels pitch their tents round about and
dwell here, that no illusion of the night may abuse me, the spirits of darkness
may not come near to hurt me, no evil or sad accident oppress me; and let the
eternal Spirit of the Father dwell in my soul and body, filling every corner of
my heart with light and grace. Let no deed of darkness overtake me; and let thy
blessing, most blessed God, be upon me for ever, through Jesus Christ our Lord.
Amen.
II.
Into thy hands, most blessed Jesus, I commend my soul and body, for thou hast
redeemed both with thy precious blood. So bless and sanctify my sleep unto me
that it may be temperate, holy, and safe; a refreshment to my wearied body, to
enable it so to serve my soul, that both may serve thee with a never-failing
duty. O, let me never sleep in sin or death eternal, but give me a watchful and
prudent spirit, that I may omit no opportunity of serving thee; that whether I
sleep or awake, live or die, I may be thy servant and thy child: that when the
work of my life is done, I may rest in the bosom of my Lord, till by the voice
of the archangel, the trump of God, I shall be awakened, and called to sit down
and feast in the eternal supper of the Lamb. Grant this, O Lamb of God, for the
honour of thy mercies, and the glory of thy name, O most merciful Saviour and
Redeemer Jesus. Amen.
III.
Blessed be the God and Father of our Lord Jesus, who hath sent his angels, and
kept me this day from the destruction that walketh at noon, and the arrow that
flieth by day; and hath given me his Spirit to restrain me from those evils to
which my own weaknesses, and my evil habits, and my unquiet enemies, would
easily betray me. Blessed and for ever hallowed by thy name for that
never-ceasing shower of blessing, by which I live, and am content and blessed,
and provided for in all necessities, and set forward in my duty and way to
heaven. Blessing honour, glory, and power be unto Him that sitteth on the
throne, and unto the Lamb, for ever and ever. Amen.
Holy is our God! Holy is the Almighty! Holy
is the Immortal! Holy, holy, holy, Lord God of Sabbaoth, have mercy upon me!
Stand in awe and sin not: commune with your own heart upon your bed and be
still. I will lay me down in peace and sleep; for thou, Lord, only makest me to
dwell in safety.[57]
O Father of spirits, and the God of all
flesh, have mercy and pity upon all sick and dying Christians, and receive the
souls which thou hast redeemed returning unto thee.
Blessed are they that dwell in the heavenly
Jerusalem, where there is no need of the sun, neither of the moon, to shine in
it; for the glory of God does lighten it, and the Lamb is the light thereof.[58] And there shall be no night there, and they
need no candle; for the Lord God giveth them light, and they shall reign for
ever and ever.[59]
Meditate on Jacob's wrestling with the angel all
night: he thou also importunate with God for a blessing, and give not over till
he hath blessed thee.
Meditate on the angel passing over the children
of Israel, and destroying the Egyptians for disobedience and oppression. Pray
for the grace of obedience and charity, and for the Divine protection.
Meditate on the angel who destroyed in a night
the whole army of the Assyrians for fornication. Call to mind the sins of thy
youth, the sins of thy bed; and say with David, `My reins chasten me in the
night season, and my soul refuseth comfort.' Pray for pardon and the grace of
chastity.
Meditate on the agonies of Christ in the garden,
his sadness and affliction all that night; and thank and adore him for his
love, that made him suffer so much for thee; and hate thy sins which made it
necessary for the Son to suffer so much.
Meditate on the last four things. 1. The
certainty of death. 2. The terrors of the day of judgment. 3. The joys of
heaven. 4. The pains of hell: and the eternity of both.
Think upon all thy friends who are gone before
thee; and pray that God would grant to thee to meet them in a joyful
resurrection.
"The day of the Lord will come as a thief in the
night;[60] in the which the heavens shall pass
away with a great noise, and the elements shall melt with fervent heat; the
earth also, and the works that are therein, shall be burnt up. Seeing, then,
that all these things shall be dissolved, what manner of persons ought we to
be, in all holy conversation and godliness, looking for and hastening unto the
coming of the day of God?"
Lord, in mercy remember thy servant in the day of
judgment.
Thou shalt answer for me, O Lord my God. In thee,
O Lord, have I trusted: let me never be confounded. Amen.
I desire the Christian reader to observe, that
all these offices or forms of prayer (if they should be used every day) would
not spend above an hour and a half: but because some of them are double (and so
but one of them to be used in one day) it is much less: and by affording to God
one hour in twenty-four thou mayest have the comforts and rewards of devotion.
But he that thinks this is too much, either is very busy in the world, or very
careless of heaven. I have parted the prayers into smaller portions, that he
may use which and how many he please in any one of the forms.
Ad. Sect. 2.
O eternal God, who has made all things for man and man for thy glory, sanctify
my body and soul, my thoughts, and my intentions, my words and actions, that
whatsoever I shall think, or speak, or do, may be by me designed to the
glorification of thy name; and by thy blessing it may be effective and
successful in the work of God, according as it can be capable. Lord, turn my
necessities into virtue; the works of nature into the works of grace, by making
them orderly, regular, temperate, subordinate, and profitable to ends beyond
their own proper efficacy: and let no pride or self-seeking, no covetousness or
revenge, no impure mixture or unhandsome purposes, no little ends and low
imaginations, pollute my spirit, and unhallow any of my words and actions; but
let my body be a servant of my spirit, and both body and spirit servants of
Jesus; that doing all things for thy glory here, I may be partaker of thy glory
hereafter: through Jesus Christ our Lord. Amen.
Ad. Sect. 3.
* This Prayer is especially to be used in
temptation to private sin.
O almighty God, infinite and eternal, thou fillest all things with thy
presence; thou art everywhere by thy essence and by thy power; in heaven by
glory, in holy places by thy grace and favour, in the hearts of thy servants by
thy Spirit, in the consciences of all men by thy testimony and observation of
us. Teach me to walk always as in thy presence, to fear thy majesty, to
reverence thy wisdom and omniscience; that I may never dare to commit any
indecency in the eye of my Lord and my Judge; but that I may with so much care
and reverence demean myself that my Judge may not be my accuser but my
advocate; that I, expressing the belief of thy presence here by careful
walking, may feel the effects of it in the participation of eternal glory;
through Jesus Christ. Amen.
OF CHRISTIAN SOBRIETY.
____________ ______
Christian religion, in all its moral parts, in nothing else but the law of
nature, and great reason; complying with the great necessities of all the
world, and promoting the great profit of all relations, and carrying us through
all accidents and variety of changes, to that end which God hath from eternal
ages purposed for that live according to it, and which he hath revealed in
Jesus Christ: and, according to the apostle's arithmetic, hath but these three
parts of it; 1. Sobriety, 2. Justice, 3. Religion. "For the grace of God, being
salvation, hath appeared to all men; teaching us that, denying ungodliness and
worldly lusts, we should live. 1. Soberly, 2. Righteously, and, 3. Godly, in
this present world, looking for that blessed hope and glorious appearing of the
great God and our Saviour Jesus Christ. The first contains all our deportment
in our personal and private capacities, the fair treating of our bodies and our
spirits. The second enlarges our duty in all relations to our neighbour. The
third contains the offices of direct religion, and intercourse with God.
Christian sobriety is also that duty that
concerns ourselves in the matter of meat, and drink, and pleasures, and
thoughts; and it hath within it the duties of 1. Temperance, 2. Chastity, 3.
Humility, 4. Modesty, 5. Content.
It is a using severity, denial, and frustration
of our appetite, when it grows unreasonable in any of these instances: the
necessity of which we shall to best purpose understand, by considering the evil
consequences of sensuality, effeminacy, or fondness after carnal pleasures.
1. A longing after sensual pleasures is a
dissolution of the spirit of a man, and makes it loose, soft, and wandering;
unapt for noble, wise, or spiritual employments; because the principles upon
which pleasure is chosen and pursued are sottish, weak, and unlearned, such as
prefer the body before the soul,[61] the
appetite before reason, sense before the spirit, the pleasures of a short abode
before the pleasures of eternity.
2. The nature of sensual pleasure is vain, empty,
and unsatisfying, biggest always in expectation, and a mere vanity in the
enjoying, and leaves a sting and thorn behind it when it goes off. Our
laughing, if it be loud and high, commonly ends in a deep sigh; and all the
instances of pleasure have a sting in the tail, though they carry beauty on the
face, and sweetness on the lip.
3. Sensual pleasure is a great abuse to the
spirit of a man, being a kind of fascination or witchcraft, blinding the
understanding and enslaving the will. And he that knows he is free-born, or
redeemed with the blood of the Son of God, will not easily suffer the freedom
of his soul to be entangled and rifled.[62]
4. It is most contrary to the state of a
Christian, whose life is a perpetual exercise, a wrestling and warfare, to
which sensual pleasure disables him, by yielding to that enemy with whom he
must strive if ever he will be crowned.[63]
And this argument the apostle intimated: "He that striveth for masteries to
temperate in all things: now they do it to obtain a corruptible crown, but we
an incorruptible."[64]
5. It is by a certain consequence the greatest
impediment in the world to martyrdom: that being a fondness, this being a
cruelty to the flesh; to which a Christian man, arriving by degrees, must first
have crucified the lesser affections: for he that is overcome by little
arguments of pain, will hardly consent to lose his life with torments.
Against this voluptuousness, sobriety is
opposed in three degrees.
1. A despite or disaffection to pleasures, or a
resolving against all entertainment of the instances and temptations of
sensuality; and it consists in the internal faculties of will and
understanding, decreeing and declaring against them disapproving and disliking
them, upon good reason and strong resolution.
2. A tight and actual war against all the
temptations and offers of sensual pleasure in all evil instances and degrees:
and it consists in prayer, in fasting, in cheap diet and hard lodging, and
laborious exercises, and avoiding occasions, and using all arts and industry of
fortifying the spirit, and making it severe, manly, and Christian.
3. Spiritual pleasure is the highest degree of
sobriety; and in the same degree in which we relish and are in love with
spiritual delights, the hidden manna,[65] with
the sweetness of devotion, with the joys of thanksgiving, with rejoicing in the
Lord, with the comforts of hope, with the deliciousness of charity and
alms-deeds, with the sweetness of a good conscience, with the peace of
meekness, and the felicities of a contented spirit; in the same degree we
disrelish and loathe the husks of swinish lusts, and the parings of the apples
of Sodom, and the taste of sinful pleasures is unsavoury as the drunkard's vomit.
The precepts and advices which are of best
and of general use in the curing of sensuality, are these:
1. Accustom thyself to cut off all superfluity in
the provisions of thy life, for our desires will enlarge beyond the present
possession so long as all the things of this world are unsatisfying: if,
therefore, you suffer them to extend beyond the measures of necessity or
moderated conveniency, they will still swell: but you reduce them to a little
compass when you make nature to be your limit. We must more take care that our
desires should cease[66] than that they should
be satisfied: and, therefore, reducing them in narrow scantlings and small
proportions is the best instrument to redeem their trouble, and prevent the
dropsy, because that is next to an universal denying them: it is certainly a
paring off from them all unreasonableness and irregularity. "For whatsoever
covets unseemly things, and is apt to swell into an inconvenient bulk, is to be
chastened and tempered: and such are sensuality, and a boy,[67] said the philosopher.
2. Suppress your sensual desires in their first
approach;[68] for then they are least, and thy
faculties and election are stronger; but if they, in their weakness, prevail
upon thy strengths, there will be no resisting them when they are increased,
and thy abilities lessened. "You shall scarce obtain of them to end, if you
suffer them to begin."
3. Divert them with some laudable employment, and
take off their edge by inadvertency, or a not attending to them. For, since the
faculties of a man cannot at the same time, with any sharpness, attend to two
objects, if you employ your spirit upon a book or a bodily labour, or any
innocent and indifferent employment, you have no room left for the present
trouble of a sensual temptation. For to this sense it was, that Alexander told
the queen of Caria, that his tutor, Leonidas, had provided two cooks for him;[69] "Hard marches all night and a small dinner
the next day: these tamed his youthful aptnesses to dissolution, so long as he
ate of their provisions.
4. Look upon pleasures, not upon that side that
is next the sun, or where they look beauteously; that is, as they come towards
you to be enjoyed, for then they paint and smile, and dress themselves up in
tinsel and glass gems, and counterfeit imagery; but when thou hast rifled and
discomposed them with enjoying their false beauties, and that they begin to go
off, then behold them in their nakedness and weariness.[70] See, what a sigh and sorrow, what naked unhandsome
proportions, and a filthy carcass they discover; and the next time they
counterfeit, remember what you have already discovered, and be no more abused.
And I have known some wise persons have advised to cure the passions and
longings of their children by letting them taste of every thing they
passionately fancied; for they should be sure to find less in it than they
looked for, and the impatience of their being denied would be loosened and made
slack: and when our wishes are no bigger than the thing deserves, and our
usages of them according to our needs (which may be obtained by trying what
they are, and what good they can do us,) we shall find in all pleasures so
little entertainment, that the vanity of the possession will soon reprove the
violence of the appetite.[71] And if this
permission be in innocent instances it may be of good use: but Solomon tried it
in all things, taking his fill of all pleasures, and soon grew weary of them
all. The same thing we may do by reason which we do by experience, if either we
look upon pleasures as we are sure they look when they go off, after their
enjoyment; or if we will credit the experience of those men who have tasted
them and loathed them.
5. Often consider and contemplate the joys of
heaven, that, when they have filled thy desires, which are the sails of the
soul, thou mayst steer only thither, and never more look back to Sodom. And
when thy soul dwells above, and looks down upon the pleasures of the world,
they seem like things at distance, little and contemptible, and men running
after the satisfaction of their sottish appetites seem foolish as fishes,
thousands of them running after a rotten worm, that covers a deadly book; or,
at the best, but like children with great noise pursuing a bubble rising from a
walnut-shell, which ends sooner than the noise.
6. To this the example of Christ and his
apostles, of Moses, and all the wise men of all ages of the world, will much
help; who, understanding how to distinguish good from evil, did choose a sad
and melancholy way to felicity, rather than the broad, pleasant, and easy path
to folly and misery.
But this is but the general. Its first particular
is temperance.
Sobriety is the bridle of the passions of
desire, and temperance is the bit and curb of that bridle, a restraint put into
a man's mouth, a moderate use of meat and drink, so as may best consist with
our health, and may not hinder but help the works of the soul by its necessary
supporting us, and ministering cheerfulness and refreshment.
Temperance consists of the actions of the soul
principally: for it is a grace that chooses natural means in order to proper
and natural, and holy ends; it is exercised about eating and drinking, because
they are necessary; but therefore it permits the use of them only as they
minister to lawful ends; it does not eat and drink for pleasure, but for need,
and for refreshment, which is a part or a degree of need. I deny not that
eating and drinking may be, and in healthful bodies always is,
with pleasure; because there is in nature no greater pleasure than that all the
appetites which God hath made should be satisfied: and a man may choose a
morsel that is pleasant, the less pleasant being rejected as being less useful,
less apt to nourish, or more agreeing with an infirm stomach, or when the day
is festival, by order or by private joy. In all these cases it is permitted to
receive a more free delight, and to design it too, as the less principal: that
is, that the chief reason why we choose the more delicious be the serving that
end for which such refreshments and choices are permitted. But when delight is
the only end, and rest itself, and dwells there long, then eating and drinking
is not a serving of God, but an inordinate action; because it is not in the way
to that end whither God directed it. But the choosing of a delicate before a
more ordinary dish is to be done as other human actions are in which there are
no degrees and precise natural limits described, but a latitude is indulged; it
must be done moderately, prudently, and according to the accounts of wise,
religious, and sober men: and then God, who gave us such variety of creatures,
and our choice to use which we will, may receive glory from our temperate use,
and thanksgiving; and we may use them indifferently without scruple, and a
making them to become snares to us, either by too licentious and studied use of
them, or too restrained and scrupulous fear of using them at all, but in such
certain circumstances, in which no man can be sure he is not mistaken.
But temperance is meat and drink is to be
estimated by the following measures.
1. Eat not before the time, unless necessity,
or charity, or any intervening accident, which may make it reasonable and
prudent, should happen. Remember, it had almost cost Jonathan his life, because
he tasted a little honey before the sun went down, contrary to the king's
commandment; and although a great need which he had excused him from the sin of
gluttony, yet it is inexcusable when thou eatest before the usual time, and
thrustest thy hand into the dish unseasonably, out of greediness of the
pleasure, and impatience of the delay.
2. Eat not hastily and impatiently, but with such
decent and timely action that your eating be human act, subject to deliberation
and choice, and that you may consider in the eating: whereas, he that eats
hastily cannot consider particularly of the circumstances, degrees, and little
accidents and chances, that happen in his meal; but may contract many little
indecencies, and be suddenly surprised.
3. Eat not delicately or nicely, that is, be not
troublesome to thyself or others in the choice of thy meats or the delicacy of
thy sauces. It was imputed us a sin to the sons of Israel, that they loathed
manna and longed for flesh: the quails stunk in their nostrils, and the wrath
of God fell upon them. And the the manner of dressing, the sons of Eli were
noted of indiscreet curiosity: they would not have the flesh boiled but raw,
that they might roast it with fire. Not that it was a sin to eat it, or desire
meat roasted; but that when it was appointed to be boiled, they refused it:
which declared an intemperate and a nice palate. It was lawful in all senses to
comply with a weak and a nice stomach, but not with a nice and curious palate.
When our health requires it, that ought to be provided for; but not so our
sensuality and intemperate longings. Whatsoever is set before you eat it, be it
never so delicate; and be it plain and common, so it be wholesome, and fit for
you, it must not be refused upon curiosity: for every degree of that is a
degree of intemperance. Happy and innocent were the ages of our forefathers,
who ate herbs and parched corn, and drank the pure stream, and broke their fast
with nuts and roots;[72] and when they were
permitted flesh, ate it only dressed with hunger and fire; and the first sauce
they had was bitter herbs, and sometimes bread dipped in vinegar. But in this
circumstance, moderation is to be reckoned in proportion to the present
customs, to the company, to edification, and the judgment of honest and wise
persons, and the necessities of nature.
4. Eat not too much: load neither thy stomach nor
thy understanding. If thou sit at a bountiful table, be not greedy upon it, and
say not there is much meat on it. Remember that a wicked eye is an evil thing:
and what is created more wicked than an eye? Therefore it weepeth upon every
occasion. Stretch not thy hand whithersoever it looketh, and thrust it not with
him into the dish. A very little is sufficient for a man well nurtured, and he
fetcheth not his wind short upon his bed.
We shall best know that we have the grace of
temperance by the following signs, which are as so many arguments to engage us
also upon its study and practice.
1. A temperate man is modest: greediness is
unmannerly and rude. And this is intimated in the advice of the son of Sirach.
When thou sittest amongst many, reach not thy hand out first of all. Leave off
first for manner's sake, and be not insatiable lest thou offend. 2. Temperance
is accompanied with gravity of deportment: greediness is garish, and rejoices
loosely at the sight of dainties.[73] 3. Sound
but moderate sleep is its sign and its effect. Sound sleep cometh of moderate
eating; he riseth early, and his wits are with him. 4. A spiritual joy and a
devout prayer. 5. A suppressed and seldom anger. 6. A seldom-returning and a
never-prevailing temptation. 8. To which add, that a temperate person is not
curious of fancies and deliciousness. He thinks not much, and speaks not often
of meat and drink; hath a healthful body and long life, unless it be hindered
by some other accident: whereas to gluttony, the pain of watching and cholera,
the pangs of the belly are continual company. And therefore Stratonicus said
handsomely concerning the luxury of the Rhodians, "They built houses as if they
were immortal; but they feasted as if they meant to live but a little while."
And Antipater, by his reproach of the old glutton Demades, well expressed the
baseness of this sin, saying, that Demades, now old,[74] and always a glutton, was like a spent sacrifice, nothing
left of him but his belly and his tongue; all the man besides is gone.
But I desire that it be observed, that
because intemperance in eating is not so soon perceived by others as immoderate
drinking, and the outward visible effects of it are not either so notorious or
so ridiculous, therefore gluttony is not of so great disreptuation amongst men
as drunkenness; yet, according to its degree, it puts on the greatness of the
sin before God, and is most strictly to be attended to, lest we be surprised by
our security and want of diligence, and the intemperance is alike criminal in
both, according as the affections are either to the meat or drink. Gluttony is
more uncharitable to the body, and drunkenness to the soul, or the
understanding part of man; and therefore in Scripture is more frequently
forbidden and declaimed against than the other: and sobriety hath by use
obtained to signify temperance in drinking.
Drunkenness is an immoderate affection and use of
drink. That I call immoderate that is beside or beyond that order of good
things for which God hath given us the use of drink. The ends are digestion of
our meat, cheerfulness and refreshment of our spirits, or any end of health;
beside which if we go, or at any time beyond it, it is inordinate and criminal
- it is the vice of drunkenness. It is forbidden by our blessed Saviour in
these words:[75] "Take heed to yourselves,
lest at any time your hearts be overcharged with surfeiting and drunkenness:"
surfeiting, that is, the evil effects, the sottishness and remaining stupidity
of habitual, or of the last night's drunkenness. For Christ forbids both the
actual and the habitual intemperance; not only the effect of it, but also the
affection to it; for in both there is sin. He that drinks but little, if that
little makes him drunk, and if he knew beforehand his own infirmity, is guilty
of surfeiting, not of drunkenness.[76] But he
that drinks much, and is strong to bear it, and is not deprived of his reason
violently, is guilty of the sin of drunkenness. It is a sin not to prevent such
uncharitable effects upon the body and understanding, and therefore a man that
loves not the drink is guilty of surfeiting if he does not watch to prevent the
evil effect; and it is a sin, and the greater of the two, inordinately to love
or to use the drink, though the surfeiting or violence do not follow. Good,
therefore, is the counsel of the son of Sirach, `Show not thy valiantness in
wine; for wine hath destroyed many.'[77]
The evils and sad consequents of drunkenness
(the consideration of which are as so many arguments to avoid the sin) are to
this sense reckoned by the writers of holy Scripture, and other wise personages
of the world. 1. It causeth woes and mischief,[78] wounds and sorrow, sin and shame;[79] it maketh bitterness of spirit, brawling and quarrelling;
it increaseth rage and lesseneth strength; it maketh red eyes, and a loost and
babbling tongue. 2. It particularly ministers to lust, and yet disables the
body; so that in effect it makes man wanton as a satyr, and impotent as age.
And Solomon, in enumerating the evils of this vice, adds this to the account,[80] `thine eyes shall behold strange women, and
thine heart shall utter perverse things: as if the drunkard were only desire,
and then impatience, muttering and enjoying like an eunuch embracing a woman.
3. It besots and hinders the actions of the understanding, making a man brutish
in his passions, and a fool in his reason; and differs nothing from madness but
that it is voluntary, and so is an equal evil in nature, and a worse in
manners.[81] 4. It takes off all the guards,
and lets loose the reins of all those evils to which a man is by is nature or
by his evil customs inclined, and from which he is restrained by reason and
severe principles. Drunkenness calls off the watchmen from their towers; and
then all the evils that can proceed from a loose heart and an untied tongue,
and a dissolute spirit, and an unguarded unlimited will, all that we may put
upon the accounts of drunkenness. 5. It extinguisheth and quenches the Spirit
of God and with wine at the same time. And therefore St. Paul makes them
exclusive of each other:[82] `Be not drunk
with wine wherein is excess; but be filled with the Spirit.' And since Joseph's
cup was put into Benjamin's sack, no man had a divining goblet. 6. It opens all
the sanctuaries of nature, and discovers the nakedness of the soul, all its
weaknesses and follies; it multiplies sins and discovers them; it makes a man
incapable of being a private friend or a public counsellor. 7. It taketh a
man's soul into slavery and imprisonment more than any vice whatever,[83] because it disarms a man of all his reason
and his wisdom, whereby he might be cured, and therefore commonly it grows upon
him with age; a drunkard being still more a fool and less a man. I need not add
any sad examples, since all story and all ages have too many of them. Amnon was
slain by his brother Absalom when he was warm and high with wine. Simon, the
high-priest, and two of his sons, were slain by their brother at a drunken
feast. Holofernes was drunk when Judith slew him; and all the great things that
Daniel spake of Alexander[84] were drowned
with a surfeit of one night's intemperance: and the drunkenness of Noah and Lot
are upon record to eternal ages, that in those early instances, and righteous
persons, and less criminal drunkenness than is that of Christians in this
period of the world, God might show that very great evils are prepared to
punish this vice; no less than shame, and slavery, and incest; the first upon
Noah, the second upon one of his sons, and the third in the person of Lot.
But if it be inquired concerning the periods
and distinct significations of this crime; and when a man is said to be drunk;
to this I answer, that drunkenness in in the same manner to be judged as
sickness. As every illness or violence done to health, in every part of its
continuance, is a part or degree of sickness; so is every going off from our
natural and common temper and our usual severity of behaviour, a degree of
drunkenness. He is not only drunk that can drink no more; for few are so: but
he hath sinned in a degree of drunkenness who hath done anything towards it
beyond his proper measure. But its parts and periods are usually thus reckoned:
1. apish gestures; 2. much talking; 3. immoderate laughing; 4. dullness of
sense; 5. scurrility, that is, wanton, or jeering, or abusive language; 6. an
useless understanding; 7. stupid sleep; 8. epilepsies, or fallings and
reelings, and beastly vomitings. The least of these, even when the tongue
begins to be untied, is a degree of drunkenness.
But that we may avoid the sin of intemperance in
meats and drinks, besides the former rules of measures, these counsels also may
be useful.
1. Be not often present at feasts, nor at all
in dissolute company, when it may be avoided, for variety of pleasing objects
steals away the heart of man; and company is either violent or enticing, and we
are weak or complying, or perhaps desirous enough to be abused. But if you be
unavoidably or indiscreetly engaged, let not mistaken civility or good nature
engage thee either to the temptation of staying, (if thou understandest thy
weakness,) or the sin of drinking inordinately.
2. Be severe in your judgment concerning your
proportions, and let no occasion make you enlarge far beyond your ordinary. For
a man is surprised by parts; and while he thinks one glass more will not make
him drunk, that one glass hath disabled him from well discerning his present
condition and neighbour-danger. While men think themselves wise, they become
fools: they think they shall taste the aconite and not die, or crown their
heads with juice of poppy and not be drowsy; and if they drink off the whole
vintage, still they think they can swallow another goblet.[85] But remember this, whenever you begin to consider whether
you may safely take one draught more, it is then high time to give over. Let
that be accounted a sign late enough to break off; for every reason to doubt is
a sufficient reason to part the company.
3. Come not to table but when thy need invites
thee; and, if thou beest in health, leave something of thy appetite unfilled,
something of thy natural heat unemployed, that it may secure thy digestion and
serve other needs of nature or the spirit.
4. Propound to thyself (if thou beest in a
capacity) a constant rule of living, of eating and drinking, which, though it
may not be fit to observe scrupulously, lest it become a snare to thy
conscience, or endanger thy health upon every accidental violence; yet let not
thy rule be broken often nor much, but upon great necessity and in small
degrees.
5. Never urge any man to eat or drink beyond his
own limits and his own desires. He that does otherwise is drunk with his
brother's surfeit,[86] and reels and falls
with his intemperance; that is, the sin of drunkenness is upon both their
scores, they both lie wallowing in the guilt.
6. Use St. Paul's instruments of sobriety: `Let
us who are of the day be sober, putting on the breastplate of faith and love,
and, for an helmet, the hope of salvation.' Faith, hope, and charity are the
best weapons in the world to fight against intemperance. The faith of the
Mahometans forbids them to drink wine, and they abstain religiously, as the
sons of Rechab; and the faith of Christ forbids drunkenness to us, and
therefore is infinitely more powerful to suppress this vice, when we remember
that we are Christians, and to abstain from drunkenness and gluttony is part of
the faith and discipling of Jesus, and that with these vices neither our love
to God nor our hopes of heaven can possibly consist; and, therefore, when these
enter the heart the others go out at the mouth; for this is the devil that is
cast out by fasting and prayer, which are the proper actions of these
graces.
7. As a pursuance of this rule, it is a good
advice, that, as we begin and end all our times of eating with prayer and
thanksgiving, so, at the meal, we remove and carry up our mind and spirit to
the celestial table, often thinking of it, and often desiring it; that by
enkindling thy desire to heavenly banquets, thou mayest be indifferent and less
passionate for the earthly.
8. Mingle discourses, pious, or in some sense,
profitable, and in all senses charitable and innocent, with thy meal, as
occasion is ministered.
9. Let your drink so serve your meat as your meat
doth your health; that it be apt to convey and digest it, and refresh the
spirits; but let it never go beyond such a refreshment as may a little lighten
the present load of a sad or troubled spirit, never to inconvenience,
lightness, sottishness, vanity, or intemperance; and know that the loosing the
bands of the tongue, and the very first dissolution of its duty, is one degree
of the intemperance.
10. In all cases be careful, that you be not
brought under the power of such things which otherwise are lawful enough in the
use. "All things are lawful for me; but I will not be brought under the power
of any", said St. Paul. And to be perpetually longing, and impatiently desirous
of anything, so that a man cannot abstain from it, is to lose a man's liberty,
and to become a servant of meat and drink, or smoke. And I wish this last
instance were more considered by persons who little suspect themselves guilty
of intemperance, though their desires are strong and impatient, and the use of
it perpetual and unreasonable to all purposes, but that they have made it
habitual and necessary as intemperance itself is made to some men.
11. Use those advices which are prescribed as
instruments, to suppress voluptuousness, in the foregoing section.
Reader, stay, and read not the advices of the
following section, unless thou hast a chaste spirit, or desirest to be chaste,
or at least art apt to consider whether you ought or no. For there are some
spirits so atheistical, and some so wholly possessed with a spirit of
uncleanness, that they turn the most prudent and chaste discourses into dirty
and filthy apprehensions; like choleric stomachs, changing their very cordials
and medicines into bitterness, and, in a literal sense, turning the grace of
God into wantonness. They study cases of conscience in the matter of carnal
sins, not to avoid, but to learn ways how to offend God and pollute their own
spirits; and search their houses with a sunbeam, that they may be instructed in
all the corners of nastiness. I have used all the care I could in the following
periods, that I might neither be wanting to assist those that need it, nor yet
minister any occasion of fancy or vainer thoughts to those that need them not.
If any man will snatch the pure taper from my hand and hold it to the devil, he
will only burn his own fingers, but shall not rob me of the reward of my care
and good intention, since I have taken heed how to express the following
duties, and given him caution how to read them.
Chastity is that duty which was mystically
intended by God in the law of circumcision. It is the circumcision of the
heart, the cutting off all superfluity of naughtiness, and a suppression of all
irregular desires in the matters of sensual or carnal pleasure. I call all
desires irregular and sinful that are not sanctified: 1. by the holy
institution, or by being within the protection of marriage; 2. by being within
the order of nature; 3. by being within the moderation of Christian modesty.
Against the first are fornication, adultery, and all voluntary pollutions of
either sex. Against the second are all unnatural lusts and incestuous mixtures.
Against the third is all immoderate use of permitted beds, concerning meats and
drinks, there being no certain degree of frequency or intention prescribed to
all persons; but it is to be ruled as the other actions of a man, by proportion
to the end, by the dignity of the person in the honour and severity of being a
Christian, and by other circumstances of which I am to give account.
Chastity is that grace which forbids and
restrains all these, keeping the body and soul pure in that state in which it
is placed by God, whether of the single or of the married life; concerning
which our duty is thus described by St. Paul: `For this is the will of God,
even your sanctification, that ye should abstain from fornication; that every
one of you should know how to possess his vessel in sanctification and honour,
not in the lust of concupiscence, even as the Gentiles which know not God.'[87]
Chastity is either abstinence or continence.
Abstinence is that of virgins or widows; continence of married persons. Chaste
marriage are honourable and pleasing to God; widowhood is pitiable in its
solitariness and loss, but amiable and comely when it is adorned with gravity
and purity, and not sullied with remembrances of the past license, nor with
present desires of returning to a second bed. But virginity is a life of
angels, the enamel of the soul, the huge advantage of religion, the great
opportunity for the retirements of devotion;[88] and, being empty of cares it is full of prayers; being
unmingled with the world, it is apt to converse with God; and by not feeling
the warmth of a too forward and indulgent nature, flames out with holy fires
till it be burning like the cherubim and the most ecstasied order of holy and
unpolluted spirits.
Natural virginity, of itself, is not a state more
acceptable to God; but that which is chosen and voluntary, in order to the
conveniences of religion and separation from worldly encumbrances, is therefore
better than the married life, not that it is more holy, but that it is a
freedom from cares, an opportunity to spend more time in spiritual employments.
It is not allayed with businesses and attendances upon lower affairs; and if it
be a chosen condition to these ends, it containeth in it a victory over lusts,
and greater desires of religion and self-denial, and therefore is more
excellent than the married life, in that degree in which it hath greater
religion, and a greater mortification, a less satisfaction of natural desires,
and a greater fulness of the spiritual: and just so is to expect that little
coronet, or special reward, which God hath prepared (extraordinary and besides
the great crown of all faithful souls) for those `who have not defiled
themselves with women, but follow the virgin Lamb for ever.'[89]
But some married persons, even in their marriage,
do better please God than some virgins in their state of virginity: they, by
giving great example of conjugal affection, by preserving their faith unbroken,
by educating children in the fear of God, by patience, and contentedness, and
holy thoughts, and the exercise of virtues proper to that state, do not only
please God, but do in a higher degree than those virgins whose piety is not
answerable to their great opportunities and advantages.
However, married persons, and widows, and
virgins, are all servants of God, and co-heirs in the inheritance of Jesus, if
they live within the restraints and laws of their particular estate, chastely,
temperately, justly, and rigorously.
The blessings and proper effects of chastity
we shall best understand, by reckoning the evils of uncleanness and
carnality.
1. Uncleanness, of all vices, is the most
shameful. `The eye of the adulterer waiteth for the twilight, saying, No eye
shall see me; and disguiseth his face. In the dark they dig through houses,
which they had marked for themselves in the day-time; they knew not the light,
for the morning is to them as the shadow of death. He is swift as the waters;
their portion is cursed in the earth; he beholdeth not the way of the
vineyards.'[90] Shame is the eldest daughter
of uncleanness.[91]
2. The appetites of uncleanness are full of cares
and trouble, and its fruitation is sorrow and repentance. The way of the
adulterer is hedged with thorns;[92] full of
fears and jealousies, burning desires and impatient waitings, tediousness of
delay, and sufferance of affronts and amazements of discovery.[93]
3. Most of its kinds are of that condition that
they involve the ruin of two souls, and he that is a fornicator or adulterous
steals the soul, as well as dishonours the body of his neighbour; and so it
becomes like the sin of falling Lucifer, who brought a part of the stars with
his tail from heaven.
4. Of all carnal sins, it is that alone which the
devil takes delight to imitate and counterfeit; communicating with witches and
impure persons in the corporal act, but in this only.
5. Uncleanness, with all its kinds, is a vice
which hath a professed enmity against the body, `Every sin which a man doth is
without the body; but he that committeth fornication sinneth against his own
body.'[94]
6. Uncleanness is hugely contrary to the spirit
of government[95] by embasing the spirit of a
man, making if effeminate, sneaking, soft, and foolish, without courage,
without confidence. David felt this after his folly with Bathsheba; he fell to
unkingly acts and stratagems to hide the crime; and he did nothing but increase
it, and remained timorous and poor spirited, till he prayed to God once more to
establish him with a free and a princely spirit.[96] And no superior dare strictly observe discipline upon his
charge, if he hath let himself loose to the shame of incontinence.
7.The gospel hath added two arguments against
uncleanness which were never before used, nor, indeed, could be; since God hath
given the Holy Spirit to them that are baptized, and rightly confirmed and
entered into covenant with him, our bodies are made temples of the Holy Ghost,
in which he dwells; and therefore uncleanness is sacrilege, and defiles a
temple. It is St. Paul's argument, `Know ye not that your body is the temple of
the Holy Ghost?'[97] and `He that defiles a
temple him will God destroy.[98] Therefore
glorify God in your bodies; that is, flee fornication. To which, for the
likeness of the argument, add, that our bodies are members of Christ; and
therefore God forbid that we should take the members of Christ and make them
members of a harlot.' So that uncleanness dishonours Christ, and dishonours the
Holy Spirit: it is a sin against God, and in this sense, a sin against the Holy
Ghost.
8. The next special argument which the gospel
ministers, especially against adultery, and for the preservation of the purity
of marriage, is, that marriage is by Christ hallowed into a mystery, to signify
the sacramental and mystical union of Christ and his church.[99] He, therefore, that breaks this knot, which the church
and their mutual faiths have tied, and Christ hath knit up into a mystery
dishonours a great rite of Christianity, of high, spiritual, and excellent
signification.
9. St. Gregory reckons uncleanness to be the
parent of these monsters, blindness of mind, inconsideration, precipitancy, or
giddiness in actions, self-love, hatred of God, love of the present pleasures,
a despite or despair of the joys of religion here, and of heaven hereafter.
Whereas, a pure mind in a chaste body is the mother of wisdom and deliberation,
sober counsels and ingenuous actions, open deportment and a sweet carriage,
sincere principles and unprejudicate understanding, love of God and
self-denial, peace and confidence, holy prayers and spiritual comfort, and a
pleasure of spirit infinitely greater than the sottish and beastly pleasures of
unchastity. "For to overcome pleasure is the greatest pleasure; and no victory
is greater than that which is gotten over our lusts and filthy
inclinations."
10. Add to all these, the public dishonesty and
disreputation that all the nations of the world have cast upon adulterous and
unhallowed embraces. Abimelech, to the men of Gerar, made it death to meddle
with the wife of Isaac, and Judah condemned Thamar to be burnt for her
adulterous conception; and God, besides the law made to put the adulterous
person to death, did constitute a settled and constant miracle to discover the
adultery of a suspected woman, that her bowels should burst with drinking the
waters of jealousy. The Egyptian law was to cut off the nose of the adulteress,
and the offending part of the adulterer. The Locrians put out both the
adulterer's eyes. The Germans (as Tacitus reports) placed the adulteress amidst
her kindred, naked, and shaved her head, and caused her husband to beat her
with clubs through the city. The Gortynaeans crowned the man with wool, to
shame him for his effeminacy; and the Cumani caused the woman to ride upon an
ass, naked, and hooted at, and for ever after called her by an appellative of
scorn, "a rider upon the ass." All nations, barbarous and evil, agreeing in
their general design, of rooting so dishonest and shameful a vice from under
heaven.
The middle ages of the church were not pleased
that the adulteress should be put to death: but in the primitive ages, the
civil laws by which Christians were then governed gave leave to the wronged
husband to kill his adulterous wife if he took her in the fact; but because it
was a privilege indulged to men, rather than a direct detestation of the crime,
a consideration of the injury rather than of the uncleanness, therefore it was
soon altered; but yet hath caused an inquiry, Whether is worse, the adultery of
the man or the woman?
The resolution of which case, in order to our
present affair, is thus: in respect of the person, the fault is greater in a
man than in a woman, who is of a more pliant and easy spirit, and weaker
understanding, and hath nothing to supply the unequal strengths of men, but the
defensative of a passive nature and armour of modesty, which is the natural
ornament of that sex. "And it is unjust that the man should demand chastity and
severity from his wife which himself will not observe towards her,[100] said the good Emperor Antoninus: it is as
if the man should persuade his wife to fight against those enemies to which he
had yielded himself a prisoner.[101] In
respect of the effects and evil consequents, the adultery of the woman is
worse, as bringing bastardly into a family, and disinherisons or great injuries
to the lawful children, and infinite violations of peace, and murders, and
divorces, and all the effects of rage and madness. But in respect of the crime,
and as relating to God, they are equal, intolerable, and damnable: and since it
is no more permitted to men to have many wives than to women to have many
husbands, and that in this respect their privilege is equal, their sin is so
too. And this is the case of the question in Christianity. And the church
anciently refused to admit such persons to the holy communion, until they had
done seven years penances in fasting, in sackcloth, in severe inflictions and
instruments of charity and sorrow, according to the discipline of those ages.
The actions and proper office of the grace of
chastity in general, are these:
1. To resist all unchaste thoughts: at no hand
entertaining pleasure in the unfruitful fancies and remembrances of
uncleanness, although no definite desire or resolution be entertained.
2. At no hand to entertain any desire, or any
fantastic imaginative loves, though by shame, or disability, or other
circumstance, they be restrained from act.
3. To have a chaste eye and hand:[102] for it is all one with what part of the body we commit
adultery: and if a man lets his eye loose and enjoys the lust of that, he is an
adulterer. Look not upon a woman to lust after her. And supposing all the other
members restrained, yet if the eye be permitted to lust, the man can no
otherwise be called chaste than he can be called severe and mortified that sits
all day long seeing plays and revellings, and out of greediness to fill his
eye, neglects his belly. There are some vessels which, if you offer to lift by
the belly or bottom, you cannot stir them, but are soon removed if you take
them by the ears. It matters not with which of your members you are taken and
carried off from your duty and severity.
4. To have a heart and mind chaste and pure; that
is, detesting all uncleanness; disliking all its motions, past actions,
circumstances, likenesses, discourses: and this ought to be the chastity of
virgins and widows, of old persons and eunuchs especially, and generally of all
men, according to their several necessities.
5. To discourse chastely and purely;[103] with great care declining all indecencies
of language, chastening the tongue and restraining it with grace, as vapours of
wine are restrained with a bunch of myrrh.
6. To disapprove by an after-act all involuntary
and natural pollutions: for, if a man delights in having suffered any natural
pollution, and with pleasure remembers it, he chooses that which was in itself
involuntary; and that which, being natural, was innocent, becoming voluntary,
is made sinful.
7. They that have performed these duties and
parts of chastity will certainly abstain from all exterior actions of
uncleanness, those noonday and midnight devils, those lawless and ungodly
worshippings of shame and uncleanness, whose birth is in trouble, whose growth
is in folly, and whose end is in shame.
But besides these general acts of chastity which
are common to all states of men and women,there are some few things to the
severals.
1. Virgins must remember, that the virginity
of the body is only excellent in order to the purity of the soul; who therefore
must consider, that since they are in the some measure in a condition like that
of angels, it is their duty to spend much of their time in angelical
employment: for in the same degree that virgins live more spiritually than
other persons, in the same degree is their virginity a more excellent state.
But else, it is no better than that of involuntary or constrained eunuchs; a
misery and a trouble, or else a mere privation, as much without excellency as
without mixture.
2. Virgins must contend for a singular modesty;
whose first part must be an ignorance in the distinction of sexes, or their
proper instruments; or if they accidentally be instructed in that, it must be
supplied with an inadvertency or neglect of all thoughts and remembrances of
such difference; and the following parts of it must be pious and chaste
thoughts, holy language, and modest carriage.
3. Virgins must be retired and unpublic: for all
freedom and looseness of society is a violence done to virginity, not in its
natural, but in its moral capacity; that is, it loses part of its severity,
strictness, and opportunity of advantages, by publishing that person whose work
is religion, whose company is angels, whose thoughts must dwell in heaven, and
separate from all mixtures of the world.
4. Virgins have a peculiar obligation to charity:
for this is the virginity of the soul; as purity, integrity, and separation is
of the body: which doctrine we are taught by St. Peter: `Seeing ye have
purified your souls in obeying the truth through the Spirit unto unfeigned love
of the brethren, see that ye love one another with a pure heart, fervently.'[104] For a virgin that consecrates her body to
God, and pollutes her spirit with rage, or impatience, or inordinate anger,
gives him what he most hates, a most foul and defiled soul.
5. These rules are necessary for virgins that
offer that state to God, and mean not to enter into the state of marriage; for
they that only wait the opportunity of a convenient change are to steer
themselves by the general rules of chastity.
For widows, the fontanel of whose desires
hath been opened by the former permissions of the marriage-bed, they must
remember,
1. That God hath now restrained the former
license, bound up their eyes, and shut up their heart into a narrower compass,
and hath given them sorrow to be a bridle to their desires. A widow must be a
mourner; and she that is not cannot so well secure the chastity of her proper
state.
2. It is against public honesty to marry another
man so long as she is with child by her former husband: and of the same fame it
is, in a lesser proportion, to marry within the year of mourning; but anciently
it was infamous for her to marry till by common account the body was dissolved
into its first principle of earth.
3. A widow must restrain her memory and her
fancy, not recalling or recounting her former permissions and freer licenses
with any present delight: for then she opens that slice which her husband's
death and her own sorrow have shut up.
4. A widow that desires her widowhood should be a
state pleasing to God, must spend her time as devoted virgins should, in
fastings and prayers and charity.
5. A widow must forbid herself to sue those
temporal solaces, which in her former estate were innocent, but now are
dangerous.
Concerning married persons, besides the
keeping of their mutual faith and contract with each other, these particulars
are useful to be observed:[105]
1. Although their mutual endearments are safe
within the protection of marriage, yet they that have wives or husbands must be
as though they had them not; that is, they must have an affection greater to
each other than they have to any person in the world, but not greater than they
have to God: but that they be ready to part with all interest in each other's
person rather than sin against God.
2. In their permissions and license they must be
sure to observe the order of nature, and the ends of God. "He is an ill husband
that uses his wife as a man treats a harlot," having no other end but pleasure.
Concerning which our best rule is, that although in this, as in eating and
drinking, there is an appetite to be satisfied which cannot be done without
pleasing that desire, yet, since that desire and satisfaction was intended by
nature for other ends, they should never be separate from those ends, but
always be joined with all or one of these ends, "with a desire of children, or
to avoid fornication, or to lighten and ease the cares and sadnesses of
household affairs, or to endear each other: "but never with a purpose, either
in act or desire, to separate the sensuality from these ends which hallow it.
Onan did separate his act from it proper end, and so ordered his embraces that
his wife should not conceive, and God punished him.
3. Married persons must keep such modesty and
decency of treating each other, that they never force themselves into high and
violent lusts, with arts and misbecoming devices; always remembering, that
those mixtures are most innocent which are most simple and most natural, most
orderly and most safe.
4. It is a duty of matrimonial chastity to be
restrained and temperate in the use of their lawful pleasures: concerning
which, although no universal rule can antecedently be given to all persons, any
more than to all bodies one proportion of meat and drink, yet married persons
are to estimate the degree of their license according to the following
proportions. 1. That it be moderate, so as to consist with health. 2. That it
be so ordered as not to be too expensive of time, that precious opportunity of
working out our salvation. 3. That when duty is demanded, it be always paid (so
far as is in our powers and election) according to the foregoing measures. 4.
That it be with a temperate affection, without violent transporting desires, or
too sensual applications. Concerning which a man is to make judgment by
proportion to other actions, and the severities of his religion, and the
sentences of sober and wise persons; always remembering, that marriage is a
provision for supply of the natural necessities of the body, not for the
artificial and procured appetites of the mind. And it is a sad truth, that many
married persons, thinking that the flood-gates of liberty are set wide open
without measures or restraint, (so they sail in that channel,) have felt the
final rewards of intemperance and lust, by their unlawful using of lawful
permissions. Only let each of them be temperate, and both of them be modest.
Socrates was wont to say,that those women to whom nature hath not been
indulgent in good features and colours, should make it up themselves with
excellent manners; and those who were beautiful and comely should be careful
that so fair a body be not polluted with unhandsome usages. To which Plutarch
adds, that a wife, if she be unhandsome, should consider how extremely ugly she
would be if she wanted modesty: but if she be handsome, let her think how
gracious that beauty would be if she super adds chastity.
5. Married persons by consent are to abstain from
their mutual entertainments at solemn times of devotion; not as a duty of
itself necessary, but as being the most proper act of purity, which, in their
condition, they can present to God, and being a good advantage for attending
their preparation to the solemn duty and their demeanour in it. It is St.
Paul's counsel, that `by consent for a time they should abstain, that they may
give themselves to fasting and prayer.' And though when Christians did receive
the holy communion every day, it is certain they did not abstain but had
children; yet, when the communion was more seldom, they did with religion
abstain from the marriage-bed during the time of their solemn preparatory
devotions, as anciently they did from eating and drinking, till the solemnity
of the day was past.
6. It were well if married persons would, in
their penitential prayers, and in their general confessions, suspect
themselves, and accordingly ask a general pardon for all their indecencies, and
more passionate applications of themselves in the offices of marriage; that
what is lawful and honourable in its kind may not be sullied with imperfect
circumstances; or, if it be, it may be made clean again by the interruption and
recallings of such a repentance, of which such uncertain parts of action are
capable.
But, because of all the dangers of a Christian,
none more pressing and troublesome than the temptations to lust, no enemy more
dangerous than that of the flesh, no accounts greater than what we have to
reckon for at the audit of concupiscence, therefore it concerns all that would
be safe from this death to arm themselves by the following rules, to prevent or
to cure all the wounds of our flesh made by the poisoned arrows of lust.
1. When a temptation of lust assaults thee,
do not resist it by heaping up arguments against it and disputing with it;
considering its offers and its dangers, but fly from it;[106] that is, think not at all of it, lay aside all
consideration concerning it, and turn away from it by any severe and laudable
thought of business. Saint Jerome very wittingly reproves the Gentile
superstition, who pictured the virgin-deities armed with a shield and lance, as
if chastity could not be defended without war and direct contention. No; this
enemy is to be treated otherwise. If you hear it speak, though but to dispute
with it, it ruins you; and the very arguments you go about to answer, leave a
relish upon the tongue. A man may be burned if he goes near the fire, though
but to quench his house; and by handling pitch,though but to draw it from your
clothes, you defile your fingers.
2. Avoid idleness, and fill up all the spaces of
thy time with severs and useful employment; for lust usually creeps in at those
emptinesses where the soul is unemployed, and the body is at ease. For no easy,
healthful, and idle person was ever chaste, if he could be tempted. But of all
employments bodily labour is most useful, and of greatest benefit for the
driving away the devil.
3. Give no entertainment to the beginnings, the
first motions and secret whispers of the spirit of impurity: for if you totally
suppress it, it dies;[107] if you permit the
furnace to breathe its smoke and flame out at any vent, it will rage to the
consumption of the whole. This cockatrice is soonest crushed in the shell; but
if it grows, it turns to a serpent, and a dragon, and a devil.
4. Corporal mortification, and hard usages of our
body, hath, by all ages of the church, been accounted a good instrument, and of
some profit against the spirit of fornication. A spare diet, and a thin course
table, seldom refreshment, frequent fasts, not violent, and interrupted with
returns to ordinary feeding, but constantly little, unpleasant, of wholesome
but sparing nourishment: for by such cutting off the provisions of vectorial,
we shall weaken the strengths of our enemy. To which if we add lyings upon the
ground, painful postures in prayer, reciting our devotions with our arms
extended at full length, like Moses praying against Amalek, or our blessed
Saviour hanging upon his painful bed of sorrows, the cross, and (if the lust be
upon us, and sharply tempting) by inflicting any smart to overthrow the
strongest passion by the most violent pain, we shall find great ease for the
present, and the resolution and apt sufferance against the future danger. And
this was St. Paul's remedy. `I bring my body under;' he used some rudenesses
towards it. But it was a great nobleness of chastity which St. Jerome reports
of a son of the king of Nicomedia,[108] who,
being tempted upon flowers and a perfumed bed with a soft violence, but yet
tied down to the temptation, and solicited with circumstances of Asian luxury
by an impure courtesan, lest the easiness of his posture should abuse him, spit
out his tongue into her face; to represent that no virtue hath cost the saints
so much as this of chastity.[109]
5. Fly from all occasions, temptations,
loosenesses of company, balls and revellings, indecent mixtures of wanton
dancings, idle talk, private society with strange women, starings upon a
beauteous face, the company of women that are singers, amorous gestures, garish
and wanton dresses, feasts and liberty, banquets and perfumes,[110] wine and strong drink, which are made to persecute
chastity; some of these being the very prologues to lust, and the most innocent
of them being but like condited or pickled mushrooms, which if carefully
corrected and seldom tasted may be harmless, but can never do good: ever
remembering, that it is easier to die for chastity than to live with it; and
the hangman could not extort a consent from some persons from whom a lover
would have entreated it. For the glory of chastity will easily overcome the
rudeness of fear and violence; but easiness and softness and smooth temptations
creep in, and, like the sun, make a maiden lay by her veil and robe, which
persecution, like the northern wind, makes her hold fast and clap close about
her.
6. He that will secure his chastity must first
cure his pride and his rage. For oftentimes lust is the punishment of a proud
man, to tame the vanity of his pride by the shame and affronts of unchastity;
and the same intemperate heat that makes anger does enkindle lust.
7. If thou beest assaulted with an unclean
spirit, trust not thyself alone; but run forth into company whose reverence and
modesty may suppress, or whose society may divert thy thoughts: and a perpetual
witness of thy conversation is of especial use against this vice, which
evaporates in the open air like camphier, being impatient of light and
witnesses.
8. Use frequent and earnest prayers to the King
of purities, that first of virgins, the eternal God, who is of an essential
purity, that he would be pleased to reprove and cast out the unclean spirit.
For beside the blessings of prayer by way of reward, it hath a natural virtue
to restrain this vice: because a prayer against it is an unwillingness to act
it; and so long as we heartily pray against it our desires are secured, and
then this devil hath no power. This was St. Paul's other remedy: `For this
cause I besought the Lord thrice.' And there is much reason and much advantage
in the use of this instrument; because the main thing that in this affair is to
be secured is a man's mind. He that goes about to cure lust by bodily exercises
alone(as St. Paul's phrase is) or mortifications, shall find them sometimes
instrumental to it, and incitations of sudden desires, but always insufficient
and of little profit: but he that hath a chaste mind shall find his body apt
enough to take laws; and let it do its worst, it cannot make a sin, and in its
greatest violence can but produce a little natural uneasiness, not so much
trouble as a severe fasting-day, or a hard night's lodging upon boards. If a
man be hungry he must eat; and if he be thirsty he must drink in some
convenient time, or else he dies; but if the body be rebellious, so the mind be
chaste, let it do its worst, if you resolve perfectly not to satisfy it, you
can receive no great evil by it. Therefore the proper cure is by application to
the spirit and securities of the mind, which can no way so well be secured as
by frequent and fervent prayers, and sober resolutions, and severe discourses.
Therefore,
9. Hither bring in succor from consideration of
the Divine presence and of his holy angels, mediation of death, and the
passions of Christ upon the cross, imitation of his purities, and of the Virgin
Mary, his unspotted and holy mother, and of such eminent saints, who, in their
generations, were burning and shining lights, unmingled with such
uncleannesses, which defile the soul, and who now follow the Lamb, withersoever
he goes.
10. These remedies are of universal efficacy, in
all cases extraordinary and violent; but in ordinary and common, the remedy
which God hath provided, that is, honourable marriage,[111] hath a natural efficacy, besides a virtue by Divine
blessing, to cure the inconveniences which otherwise might afflict persons
temperate and sober.
__________
Humility is the great ornament and jewel of
Christian religion; that whereby it is distinguished from all the wisdom of the
world; it not having been taught by the wise men of the Gentiles, but first put
into a discipline, and made part of a religion, by our Lord Jesus Christ, who
propounded himself imitable by his disciples so signally in nothing as in the
twin sisters of meekness and humility. `Learn of me, for I am meek and humble;
and ye shall find rest unto your souls.'
For all the world, all that we are, and all that
we have, our bodies and our souls, our actions and our sufferings, our
conditions at home, our accidents abroad, our many sins, and our seldom
virtues, are as so many arguments to make our souls dwell low in the deep
valleys of humility.
1. Our body is weak and impure, sending out
more uncleannesses from its several sinks than could be endured, if they were
not necessary and natural; and we are forced to pass that through our mouths,
which as soon as we see upon the ground, we loathe like rottenness and
vomiting.
2. Our strength is inferior to that of many
beasts, and our infirmities so many that we are forced to dress and tend horses
and asses, that they may help our needs, and relieve our wants.
3. Our beauty is in colour inferior to many
flowers, and in proportion of parts it is no better than nothing; for even a
dog hath parts as well proportioned and fitted to his purposes, and the designs
of his nature, as we have; and when it is most florid and gay, three fits of an
ague can change it into yellowness and leanness, and the hollowness and
wrinkles of deformity.
4. Our learning is then best when it teaches most
humility; but to be proud of learning is the greatest ignorance in the world.
For our learning is so long in getting, and so very imperfect, that the
greatest clerk knows not the thousandth part of what he is ignorant; and knows
so uncertainly what he seems to know, and knows no otherwise than a fool or a
child even what is told him or what he guesses at, that except those things
which concern his duty, and which God hath revealed to him, which also every
woman knows so far as is necessary, the most learned man hath nothing to be
proud of, unless this be a sufficient argument to exalt him, that he
uncertainly guesses at some more unnecessary things than many others, who yet
know all that concerns them, and mind other things more necessary for the needs
of life and commonwealths.
5. He that is proud of riches is a fool. For if
he be exalted above his neighbours, because he hath more gold, how much
inferior is he to a gold mine! How much is he to give place to a chain of
pearl, or a knot of diamonds! For certainly that hath the greatest excellence
from whence he derives all his gallantry and pre-eminence over his
neighbours.
6. If a man be exalted by reason of any
excellence in his soul, he may please to remember that all souls are equal; and
their differing operations are because their instrument is in better tune,
their body is more healthful or better tempered; which is no more praise to him
than it is that he was born in Italy.
7. He that is proud of his birth is proud of the
blessings of others, not of himself; for if his parents were more eminent in
any circumstance than their neighbours, he is to thank God, and rejoice in
them; but still he may be a fool, or unfortunate, or deformed; and when himself
was born, it was indifferent to him whether his father were a king, or a
peasant, for he knew not anything nor chose anything; and most commonly it is
true, that he that boasts of his ancestors, who were the founders and raisers
of a noble family, doth confess that he hath in himself a less virtue and a
less honour, and therefore he is degenerated.
8. Whatsoever other difference there is between
thee and thy neighbour, if it be bad, it is thine own, but thou hast no reason
to boast of thy misery and shame: if it be good thou hast received it from God;
and then thou art more obliged to pay duty and tribute, use and principal to
him, and it were a strange folly for a man to be proud of being more in debt
than another.
9. Remember what thou wert before thou wert
begotten. Nothing. What wert thou in the first regions of thy dwelling, before
thy birth? Uncleanness. What wert thou for many years after? A great sinner.
What in all thy excellencies? A mere debtor to God, to thy parents, to the
earth, to all the creatures. But we may, if we please, use the method of the
Platonists,[112] who reduce all the causes
and arguments for humility, which we can take from ourselves to these seven
heads. 1. The spirit of a man is light and troublesome. 2. His body is brutish
and sickly. 3. He is constant in his folly and error, and inconsistent in his
manners and good purposes. 4. His labours are vain, intricate, and endless. 5.
His fortune is changeable, but seldom pleasing, never perfect. 6. His wisdom
comes not till he be ready to die, that is, till he be past using it. 7. His
death is certain, always ready at the door, but never far off. Upon these or
the like meditations if we dwell, or frequently retire to them, we shall see
nothing more reasonable than to be humble, and nothing more foolish than to be
proud.
The grace of humility is exercised by these
following rules.
1. Think not thyself better for anything that
happens to thee from without. For although thou mayest, by gifts bestowed upon
thee, be better than another, as one horse is better than another, that is of
more use to others; yet as thou art a man, thou hast nothing to commend thee to
thyself but that only by which thou art a man, that is, by what thou choosiest
and refusest.
2. Humility consists not in railing against
thyself, or wearing mean clothes, or going softly and submissively; but in
hearty and real evil or mean opinion of thyself. Believe thyself an unworthy
person heartily, as thou believest thyself to be hungry, or poor, or sick, when
thou art so.
3. Whatsoever evil thou sayest of thyself, be
content that others should think to be true: and if thou callest thyself fool,
be not angry if another say so of thee. For if thou thinkest so truly, all men
in the world desire other men to be of their opinion; and he is an hypocrite
that accuses himself before others, with an intent not to be believed. But he
that calls himself intemperate, foolish, lustful, and is angry when his
neighbours call him so, is both a false and a proud person.
4. Love to be concealed, and little esteemed:[113] be content to want praise, never being
troubled when thou art slighted or undervalued; for thou canst not undervalue
thyself, and if thou thinkest so meanly as there is reason, no contempt will
seem unreasonable, and therefore it will be very tolerable.[114]
5. Never be ashamed of thy birth, or thy parents,
or thy trade,[115] or thy present
employment, for the meanness or poverty of any of them; and when there is an
occasion to speak of them, such an occasion as would invite you to speak of
anything that pleases you, omit it not, but speak as readily and indifferently
of thy meanness as of thy greatness. Primislaus, the first king of Bohemia,
kept his country-shoes always by him, to remember from whence he was raised:
and Agathocles, by the furniture of his table, confessed that from a potter he
was raised to be the king of Sicily.
6. Never speak anything directly tending to thy
praise or glory; that is, with the purpose to be commended, and for no other
end. If other ends be mingled with thy honour, as if the glory of God, or
charity, or necessity, or anything of prudence be thy end, you are not tied to
omit your discourse or your design, that you may avoid praise, but pursue your
end, though praise come along in the company. Only let not praise be the
design.
7. When thou hast said or done anything for which
thou receivest praise or estimation, take it indifferently, and return it to
God, reflecting upon his as the giver of the gift, or the blesser of the
action, or the aid of the design; and give God thanks for making thee an
instrument of his glory, for the benefit of others.
8. Secure a good name to thyself by living
virtuously and humbly; but let this good name be nursed abroad, and never be
brought home to look upon it: let others use it for their own advantage; let
them speak of it if they please; but do not thou at all use it, but as an
instrument to do God glory, and thy neighbour more advantage. Let thy face,
like Moses's, shine to others, but make no looking-glasses for thyself.
9. Take no content in praise when it is offered
thee; but let thy rejoicing in God's gift be allayed with fear, lest this good
bring thee to evil. Use the praise as you use your pleasure in eating and
drinking; if it comes, make it do drudgery; let it serve other ends, and
minister to necessities, and to caution, lest by pride you lose your just
praise, which you have deserved, or else, by being praised unjustly, you
receive shame into yourself with God and wise men.
10. Use no stratagems and devices to get praise.
Some use to inquire into the faults of their own actions or discourses, on
purpose to hear that it was well done or spoken, and without fault; others
bring the matter into talk, or thrust themselves into company, and intimate and
give occasion to be thought or spoken of. These men make a bait to persuade
themselves to swallow the hook, till by drinking the waters of vanity they
swell and burst.
11. Make no suppletories to thyself, when thou
art disgraced or slighted, by pleasing thyself with supposing thou didest
deserve praise, though they understood thee not, or enviously detracted from
thee: neither do thou get to thyself a private theatre and flatterers,[116] in whose vain noises and fantastie
praises thou mayest keep up thine own good opinion of thyself.
12. Entertain no fancies of vanity and private
whispers of this devil of pride, such as was that of Nebuchadnezzar: `Is not
this great Babylon, which I have built for the honour of my name, and the might
of my majesty, and the power of my kingdom?' Some fantastic spirits will walk
alone, and dream waking of greatness, of palaces, of excellent orations, full
theatres, loud applauses, sudden advancement, great fortunes, and so will spend
an hour with imaginative pleasure; all their employment being nothing but fumes
of pride, and secret indefinite desires and significations of what their heart
wishes. In this, although there is nothing of its own nature directly vicious,
yet is either an ill mother or an ill daughter an ill sign or an ill effect;
and therefore at no hand consisting with the safety and interests of
humility.
13. Suffer others to be praised in thy presence,
and entertain their good and glory with delight; but at no hand disparage them,
or lessen the report, or make an objection; and think not the advancement of
thy brother is a lessening of thy worth. But this act is also to extend
further.
14. Be content that he should be employed, and
thou laid by as unprofitable; his sentence approved, thine rejected; he be
preferred, and thou fixed in a low employment.
15. Never compare thyself with others, unless it
be to advance them and to depress thyself. To which purpose, we must be sure,
in some sense or other, to think ourselves the worst in every company where we
come: one is more learned than I am, another is more prudent, a third more
charitable, or less proud. For the humble man observes their good, and reflects
only upon his own vileness; or considers the many evils of himself certainly
known to himself, and the ill of others but by uncertain report; or he
considers that the evils done by another are out of much infirmity or
ignorance, but his own sins are against a clearer light, and if the other had
so great helps, he would have done more good and less evil; or he remembers,
that his old sins before his conversion were greater in the nature of the
thing, or in certain circumstances, than the sins of other men. So St. Paul
reckoned himself the chiefest of sinners, because formerly he had acted the
chiefest sin of persecuting the church of God. But this rule is to be used with
this caution, that though it be good always to think meanest of ourselves, yet
it is not ever safe to speak it, because those circumstances and considerations
which determine thy thoughts are not known to others as to thyself; and it may
concern others that they hear thee give God thanks for the graces he hath given
thee. But if thou preservest thy thoughts and opinions of thyself truly humble,
you may with more safety give God thanks in public for that good which cannot,
or ought not to be concealed.
16. Be not always ready to excuse every
oversight, or indiscretion, or ill action, but if thou beest guilty of it
confess it plainly; for virtue scorns a lie for its cover, but to hide a sin
with it is like a crust of leprosy drawn upon an ulcer. If thou beest not
guilty (unless it be scandalous,) be not over-earnest to remove it, but rather
use it as an argument to chastise all greatness of fancy and opinion in
thyself; and accustom thyself to bear reproof patiently and contentedly, and
the harsh words of thy enemies, as knowing that the anger of an enemy is a
better monitor, and represents our faults, or admonishes us of our duty, with
more heartiness than the kindness does or precious balms of a friend.
17. Give God thanks for every weakness,
deformity, and imperfection, and accept is as a favour and grace of God, and an
instrument to resist pride, and nurse humility, ever remembering, that when
God, by giving thee a crooked back, hath also made thy spirit stoop or less
vain, thou art more ready to enter the narrow gate of heaven, than by being
straight, and standing upright, and thinking highly. Thus the apostles rejoiced
in their infirmities, not moral, but natural and accidental, in their being
beaten and whipped like slaves, in their nakedness, and poverty.
18. Upbraid no man's weakness to him to
discomfort him, neither report it to disparage him, neither delight to remember
it to lessen him, or to set thyself above him. Be sure never to praise thyself,
or to dispraise any man else, unless God's glory or some holy end do hallow it.
And it was noted to the praise of Cyrus, that, amongst his equals in age,[117] he would never play at any sport, or use
any exercise, in which he knew himself more excellent than they; but in such in
which he was unskillful he would make his challenges, lest he should shame them
by his victory, and that himself might learn something of their skill, and do
them civilities.
19. Besides the foregoing parts and actions,
humility teaches us to submit ourselves and all our faculties to God, `to
believe all things, to do all things, to suffer all things,' which his will
enjoins us; to be content in every state or change, knowing we have deserved
worse than the worst we feel, and, as Anytus said to Alcibiades, he hath taken
but half when he might have taken all, to adore his goodness, to fear his
greatness, to worship his eternal and infinite excellencies, and to submit
ourselves to all our superiors, in all things, according to godliness, and to
be meek and gentle in our conversation towards others.[118]
Now, although, according to the nature of every
grace, this begins as a gift, and is increased like a habit, that is, best by
its own acts; yet, besides the former acts and offices of humility, there are
certain other exercises and considerations, which are good helps and
instruments for the procuring and increasing this grace, and the curing of pride.
1. Make confession of thy sins often to God;
and consider what all that evil amounts to which you then charge upon yourself.
Look not upon them as scattered in the course of a long life; now an
intemperate anger, then too full a meal; now idle talking, and another time
impatience; but unite them into one continued representation, and remember,
that he whose life seems fair, by reason that his faults are scattered at large
distances in the several parts of his life, yet, if all his errors and follies
were articled against him, the man would seem vicious and miserable; and
possibly this exercise, really applied upon thy spirit may be useful.
2. Remember that we usually disparage others upon
slight grounds and little instances, and toward them one fly is enough to spoil
a whole box of ointment; and if a man be highly commended, we think him
sufficiently lessened if we clap one sin or folly or infirmity into his
account. Let us, therefore, be just to ourselves, since we are so severe to
others, and consider that whatsoever good any one can think or say of us, we
can tell him of hundreds of base, and unworthy, and foolish actions, any one of
which were enough (we hope) to destroy another's reputation; therefore, let so
many be sufficient to destroy our over-high thoughts of ourselves.
3. When our neighbour is cried up by public fame
and popular noises, that we may disparage and lessen him, we cry out that the
people is a herd of unlearned and ignorant persons, ill judges, loud trumpets,
but which never give certain sound; let us use the same art to humble
ourselves, and never take delight and pleasure in public reports and
acclamations of assemblies, and please ourselves with their judgment, of whom,
in other the like cases, we affirm that they are mad.
4. We change our opinion of others by their
kindness or unkindness towards us. If he be my patron, and bounteous, he is
wise, he is noble, his faults are but warts, his virtues are mountains; but if
he proves unkind, or rejects our importunate suit, then he is ill-natured,
covetous, and his free meal is called gluttony; that which before we called
civility is now very drunkenness, and all he speaks if flat, and dull, and
ignorant as a swine. This, indeed, is unjust towards others; but a good
instrument if we turn the edge of it upon ourselves. We use ourselves ill,
abusing ourselves with false principles, cheating ourselves with lies and
pretences, stealing the choice and elections from our wills, placing voluntary
ignorance in our understandings, denying the desires of the spirit, setting up
a faction against every noble and just desire, the least of which, because we
should resent up to reviling the injurious person, it is but reason we should
at least not flatter ourselves with fond and too kind opinions.
5. Every day call to mind some one of thy foulest
sins, or the most shameful of thy disgraces, or the indiscreetest of thy
actions, or anything that did then most trouble thee, and apply it to the
present swelling of thy spirit and opinion, and it may help to allay it.
6. Pray often for his grace with all humility of
gesture and passion of desire, and in thy devotion interpose many acts of
humility, by way of confession and address to God, and reflection upon
thyself.
7. Avoid great offices and employments, and the
noises of worldly honour.[119] For in those
states, many times so many ceremonies and circumstances will seem necessary, as
will destroy the sobriety of thy thoughts. If the number of thy servants be
fewer, and their observances less, and their reverences less solemn, possibly
they will seem less than thy dignity; and if they be so much and so many it is
likely they will be too big for thy spirit. And here be thou very careful, lest
thou be abused by a pretence, that thou wouldest use thy great dignity as an
opportunity of doing great good. For supposing it might be good for others, yet
it is not good for thee; they may have encouragement in noble things from thee,
and, by the same instrument, thou mayest thyself be tempted to pride and
vanity. And certain it is, God is as much glorified by thy example of humility
in a low or temperate condition, as by thy bounty in a great and dangerous.
8. Make no reflex upon thy own humility, nor upon
any other grace with which God hath enriched thy soul. For since God oftentimes
hides from his saints and servants the sight of those excellent things by
which, they shine to others (though the dark side of the lantern be toward
themselves,) that he may secure the grace of humility, it is good that thou do
so thyself; and if thou beholdest a grace of God in thee, remember to give him
thanks for it, that thou mayest not boast in that which is none of they own;
and consider how thou hast sullied it by handling it with dirty fingers, with
thy own imperfections, and with mixture of anhandsome circumstances. Spiritual
pride is very dangerous, not only by reason it spoils so many graces, by which
we draw nigh unto the kingdom of God, but also because it so frequently creeps
upon the spirit of holy persons. For it is no wonder for a beggar to call
himself poor, or a drunkard to confess that he is no sober person; but for a
holy person to be humble, for one whom all men esteem a saint to fear lest
himself become a devil, and to observe his own danger, and to discern his own
infirmities, and make discovery of his bad adherences, is as hard as for a
prince to submit himself to be guided by tutors, and make himself subject to
discipline, like the meanest of his servants.
9. Often meditate upon the effects of pride on
one side, and humility on the other. First, That pride is like a canker, and
destroys the beauty of the fairest flowers, the most excellent gifts and
graces; but humility crowns them all. Secondly, That pride is a great
hinderance to the perceiving the things of God,[120] and humility is an excellent preparative and instrument
of spiritual wisdom. Thirdly, That pride hinders the acceptation of our
prayers, but humility pierceth the clouds, and will not depart till the Most
High shall regard. Fourthly, That humility is but a speaking truth, and all
pride is a lie. Fifthly, That humility is the most certain way to real honour,
and pride is ever affronted or despised. Sixthly, That pride turned Lucifer
into a devil, and humility exalteth the Son of God above every name, and placed
him eternally at the right hand of his Father. Seventhly, That `God resisteth
the proud,'[121] professing open defiance
and hostility against such persons, but giveth grace to the humble; grace and
pardon, remedy and relief, against misery and oppression, content in all
conditions, tranquillity of spirit, patience in afflictions, love abroad, peace
at home, and utter freedom from contention, and the sin of censuring others,
and the trouble of being censured themselves. For the humble man will not judge
his brother for the mote in his eye, being more troubled at the beam in his own
eye; and is patient and glad to be reproved, because himself hath cast the
first stone at himself, and therefore wonders not that others are of his
mind.
10. Remember that the blessed Saviour of the
world hath done more to prescribe, and transmit, and secure this grace than any
other;[122] his whole life being a great
continued example of humility; a vast descent from the glorious bosom of his
Father to the womb of a poor maiden, to the form of a servant, to the miseries
of a sinner, to a life of labour, to a state of poverty, to a death of
malefactors, to the grave of death, and the intolerable calamities which we
deserved; and it were a good design, and yet but reasonable, that we should be
as humble, in the midst of our greatest imperfections and basest sins, as
Christ was in the midst of his fulness of the Spirit, great wisdom, perfect
life and most admirable virtue.
11. Drive away all flatterers from thy company,
and at no hand endure them, for he that endures himself so to be abused by
another is not only a fool for entertaining the mockery, but loves to have his
own opinion of himself to be heightened and cherished.
12. Never change thy employment for the sudden
coming of another to thee; but if modesty permits, or discretion, appear to him
that visits thee the same that thou wert to God and thyself in thy privacy. But
if thou wert walking or sleeping, or in any other innocent employment or
retirement, snatch not up a book to seem studious, nor fall on thy knees to
seem devout, nor alter anything to make him believe thee better employed than
thou wert.
13. To the same purpose it is of great use that
he who would preserve his humility should choose some spiritual person to whom
he shall oblige himself to discover his very thoughts and fancies, every act of
his, and all his intercourse with others, in which there may be danger; that by
such an openness of spirit he may expose every blast of vain glory, every idle
thought, to be chastened and lessened by the rod of spiritual discipline: and
he that shall find himself tied to confess every proud thought, every vanity of
his spirit, will also perceive they must not dwell with him, nor find any
kindness from him; and, besides this, the nature of pride is so shameful and
unhandsome, that the very discovery of it is a huge mortification and means of
suppressant it. A man would be ashamed to be told that he inquires after the
faults of his last oration or action on purpose to be commended; and,
therefore, when the man shall tell his spiritual guide the same shameful story
of himself, it is very likely he will be humbled and heartily ashamed of it.
14. Let every man suppose what opinion he should
have of one that should spend his time in playing with drum-sticks and
cockle-shells, and that should wrangle all day long with a little boy for pins,
or should study hard and labour to cozen a child of his gauds; and who would
run into a river, deep and dangerous, with a great burden upon his back, even
then when he were told of the danger, and earnestly importuned not to do it?
and let him but change the instances and the person, and he shall find that he
hath the same reason to think as bad of himself, who pursues trifles with
earnestness, spending mistime in vanity, and his labour for that which profits
not; who, knowing the laws of God, the rewards of virtue, the cursed
consequents of sin, that it is an evil spirit that tempts him to do it, a
devil, one that hates him, that longs extremely to ruin him; that it is his own
destruction that he is then working; that the pleasures of his sin are base and
brutish, unsatisfying in the enjoyment, soon over, shameful in their story,
bitter in the memory, painful in the effect here, and intolerable hereafter,
and for ever; yet in despite of all this, he runs foolishly into his sin and
his ruin, merely because he is a fool, and winks hard, and rushes violently
like a horse into the battle, or, like a madman, to his death. He that can
think great and good things of such a person, the next step may court the pack
for an instrument of pleasure, and admire a swing for wisdom, and go for
counsel to the prodigal and trifling grasshopper.
After the use of these and such like instruments
and considerations, if you would try how your soul is grown, you shall know
that humility, like the root of a goodly tree, is thrust very far into the
ground by these goodly fruits which appear above ground.
1. The humble man trusts not to his own
discretion, but in matters of concernment relies rather upon the judgment of
his friends, counsellors, or spiritual guides. 2. He does not pertinaciously
pursue the choice of his own will, but in all things lets God choose for him,
and his superiors, in those things which concern them. 3. He does not murmur
against commands.[123] 4. He is not
inquisitive into the reasonableness of indifferent and innocent commands, but
believes their command to be reasonable enough in such cases to exact his
obedience. 5. He lives according to a rule, and with compliance to public
customs, without any affectation or singularity. 6. He is meek and indifferent
in all accidents and chances. 7. He patiently bears injuries.[124] 8. He is always unsatisfied in his own conduct,
resolutions, and counsels. 9. He is a great lover of good men, and a praiser of
wise men, and a censurer of no man. 10. He is modest in his speech, and
reserved in his laughter. 11. He fears when he hears himself commended, lest
God make another judgment concerning his actions than men do. 12. He gives no
part of saucy answers when he is reproved, whether justly or unjustly. 13. He
loves to sit down in private, and, if he may, be refuses the temptation of
offices and new honours. 14. He is ingenuous, free, and open in his actions and
discourses. 15. He mends his fault, and gives thanks when he is admonished. 16.
He is ready to do good offices to the murderers of his fame, to his slanderers,
backbiters, and detractors, as Christ washed the feet of Judas. 17. And is
contented to be suspected of indiscretion, so before God he may really be
innocent, and not offensive to his neighbour, nor wanting to his just and
prudent interest.
Modesty is the appendage of sobriety, and is
to chastity, to temperance, and to humility, as the fringes are to a garment.
It is a grace of God, that moderates the over-activeness and curiosity of the
mind, and orders the passions of the body and external actions, and is directly
opposed to curiosity, to boldness, to indecency. The practice of modesty
consists in the following rules:
1. Inquire not into the secrets of God, but
be content to learn thy duty according to the quality of thy person or
employment; that i plainly, if thou beest not concerned in the conduct of
others; but if thou beest a teacher, learn it so as may best enable thee to
discharge thy office. God's commandments were proclaimed to all the world; but
God's counsels are to himself and to his secret ones, when they are admitted
within the veil.
2. Inquire not into the things which are too hard
for thee, but learn modestly to know thy infirmities and abilities; and raise
not thy mind up to inquire into mysteries of state, or the secrets of
government, or difficulties theological, if thy employment really be, or thy
understanding be judged to be, of a lower rank.
3. Let us not inquire into the affairs of others
that concern us not, but be busied within ourselves and our own spheres; ever
remembering that to pry into the actions or interests of other men not under
our charge, may minister to pride, to tyranny, to uncharitableness, to trouble,
but can never consist with modesty, unless where duty or the mere intentions of
charity and relation do warrant it.
4. Never listen at the doors or windows:[125] for, besides that it contains in it
danger and a snare, it is also an invading thy neighbour's privacy, and a
laying that open which he therefore enclosed, that it might not be open. Never
ask what he carried covered s o curiously; for it is enough that it is covered
curiously. Hither also is reducible that we never open letters without public
authority, or reasonably presumed leave, or great necessity, or charity.
Every man hath in his own life sins enough, in
his own mind trouble enough, in his own fortune evils enough, and in
performance of his offices failings more than enough, to entertain his own
inquiry; so that curiosity after the affairs of others cannot be without envy,
and an evil mind. What is it to me, if my neighbour's grandfather were a
Syrian, or his grandmother illegitimate; or that another is indebted five
thousand pounds, or whether his wife be expensive? But commonly curious
persons, or (as the apostle's phrase is) `busybodies,' are not solicitous or
inquisitive into the beauty and order of a well-governed family, or after the
virtues of an excellent person; but if there be anything for which men keep
locks and bars, and porters, things that blush to see the light, and either are
shameful in manners, or private in nature, these things are their care and
their business. But if great things will satisfy our inquiry, the course of the
sun and moon, the spots in their faces, the firmament of heaven, and the
supposed orbs, the ebbing and flowing of the sea, are work enough for us; or if
this be not, let him tell me whether the number of the stars be even or odd,
and when they began to be so, since some ages have discovered new stars which
the former knew not, but might have seen if they had been where now they are
fixed. If these be too troublesome search lower, and tell me why this turf this
year brings forth a daisy, and the next year a plantain; why the apple bears
his seed in his heart, and wheat bears it in his head: let him tell why a
graft, taking nourishment from a crab-stock, shall have a fruit more noble than
its nurse and parent: let him say why the best of oil is at the top, the best
of wine in the middle, and the best of honey at the bottom, otherwise than it
is in some liquors that are thinner, and in some that are thicker. But these
things are to such as please busybodies; they must feed upon tragedies, and
stories of misfortunes and crimes: and yet tell them ancient stories of the
ravishment of chaste maidens, or the debauchment of nations, or the extreme
poverty of learned persons, or the persecutions of the old saints, or the
changes of government, and sad accidents happening in royal families amongst
the Arsacidae, the Caesars, the Ptolemies, these were enough to scratch the
itch of knowing sad stories; but unless you stem them something sad and new,
something that is done within the bounds of their own knowledge or relation, it
seems tedious and unsatisfying; which shows plainly, it is an evil spirit; envy
and idleness married together, and begot curiosity. Therefore Plutarch rarely
well compares curious and inquisitive ears to the execrable gates of cities,
out of which only malefactors and hangmen and tragedies pass - nothing that is
chaste or holy. If a physician should go from house to house unsent for, and
inquire what woman hath a cancer in her bowels, or what man hath a fisula in
his colic-gut, though he could pretend to cure it, he would be almost as
unwelcome as the disease itself; and therefore it is inhuman to inquire after
crimes and disasters without pretence of amending them, but only to discover
them. We are not angry with searchers and publicans, when they look only on
public merchandise; but when they break open trunks, and pierce vessels, and
unrip packs, and open sealed letters.
Curiosity is the direct incontinency of the
spirit: and adultery itself in its principle is many times nothing but a
curious inquisition after, and envying of, another man's enclosed pleasures;
and there have been many who refused fairer objects that they might ravish an
enclosed woman from her retirement and single possessor. But these inquisitions
are seldom without danger, never with our baseness; they are neither just, nor
honest, nor delightful, and very often useless to the curious inquirer. For men
stand upon their guards against them, as they secure their meat against harpies
and cats, laying all their counsels and secrets out of their way; or as men
clap their garments close about them, when the searching and saucy winds would
discover their nakedness; as knowing that what men willingly hear they do
willingly speak of. Knock, therefore, at the door before you enter upon your
neighbour's privacy; and remember, that there is no difference between entering
into his house, and looking into it.
[126]
1. Let us always bear about us such
impressions of reverence and fear of God as to tremble at his voice, to express
our apprehensions of his greatness in all great accidents, in popular
judgments, loud thunders, tempests, earthquakes; not only for fear of being
smitten ourselves, or that we are concerned in the accident, but also that we
may humble ourselves before his Almightiness, and express that infinite
distance between his infiniteness and our weaknesses, at such times especially
when he gives such visible arguments of it. He that is merry and airy at shore
when he sees a sad and a loud tempest on the sea, or dances briskly when God
thunders from heaven, regards not when God speaks to all the world, but is
possessed with a firm immodesty.
2. Be reverent, modest, and reserved, in the
presence of thy betters, giving to all, according to their equality, their
titles of honour, keeping distance, speaking little, answering pertinently, not
interposing without leave or reason, not answering to a question propounded to
another; and even present to thy superiors the fairest side of thy discourse,
of thy temper, of thy ceremony, as being ashamed to serve excellent persons
with unhandsome intercourse.
3. Never lie before a king or a great person, nor
stand in a lie when thou art accused, nor offer to justify what is indeed a
fault; but modestly be ashamed of it, ask pardon, and make amends.[127]
4. Never boast of thy sin, but at least lay a
veil upon thy nakedness and shame, and python hand before thine eyes, that thou
mayest have this beginning of repentance, to believe thy sin to be thy shame.
For he that blushes not at his crime, but adds shamelessness to his shame, hath
no instrument left to restore him to the hopes of virtue.
5. Be not confident and affirmative in an
uncertain matter, but report things modestly and temperately, according to the
degree of that persuasion, which is, or ought to be, begotten in thee by the
efficacy of the authority, or the reason inducing thee.
6. Pretend not to more knowledge than thou hast,
but be content to seem ignorant where thou art so, lest thou beest either
brought to shame, or retirest into shamelessness.
1. In your prayers, in churches and places of
religion, use reverent postures, great attention, grave ceremony, the lowest
gestures of humility, remembering that we speak to God, in our reverence to
whom we cannot possibly exceed; but that the expression of this reverence be
according to law or custom, and the example of the most prudent and pious
persons; that is, let it be the best in its kind to the best of essences.
2. In all public meetings, private addresses, in
discourse, in journeys, use those forms of salutation, reverence, and decency,
which the custom prescribes, and is usual amongst the most sober persons,
giving honour to whom honour belongeth, taking place of none of thy betters,
and in all cases of question concerning civil precedency giving it to any one
that will take it, if it be only thy own right that is in question.
3. Observe the proportion of affections in all
meetings, and to all persons: be not merry at a funeral, nor sad upon a
festival' but rejoice with them that rejoice, and weep with them that weep.
4. Abstain from wanton and dissolute laughter,
petulant and uncomely jests, loud talking, jeering, and all such actions, which
in civil account are called indecencies and incivilities.
5. Towards your parents use all modesty of duty
and humble carriage; towards them and all your kindred, be severe in the
modesties of chastity, ever fearing, lest the freedoms of natural kindness
should enlarge into any neighbourhood of unhandsomeness. For all incestuous
mixtures, and all circumstances and degrees towards it, are the highest
violations of modesty in the world; for therefore incest is grown to be so high
a crime, especially in the last periods of the world, because it breaks that
reverence which the consent of all nations and the severity of human laws hath
enjoined towards our parents and nearest kindred, in imitation of that law
which God gave to the Jews in prosecution of modesty in this instance.
6. Be a curious observer of all those things
which are of good report, and are parts of public honesty.[128] For public fame, and the sentence of prudent and public
persons is the measure of good and evil in things indifferent, and charity
requires us to comply with those fancies and affections which are agreeable to
nature, or the analogy of virtue, or public laws, or old customs. It is against
modesty for a woman to marry a second husband as long as she bears a burden by
the first; or to admit a second love while her funeral tears are not wiped from
her cheeks. It is against public honesty to do some lawful actions of privacy
in public theatres, and therefore in such cases retirement is a duty of
modesty.[129]
7. Be grave, decent, and modest, in thy clothing
and ornament; never let it be above thy condition not always equal to it; never
light or amorous discovering a nakedness through a thin veil which thou
pretendest to hide; never to lay a snare for a soul; but remember what becomes
a Christian, professing holiness, chastity, and the discipline of the holy
Jesus: and the first effect of this let your servants feel by your gentleness
and aptness to be pleased with their usual diligence, and ordinary conduct.[130] For the man or woman that is dressed with
anger and impatience wears pride under their robes, and immodesty above.
8. Hither also is to be reduced singular and
affected walking, proud, nice, and ridiculous gestures of body, painting and
lascivious dressings; all of which together God reproves by the prophet: `The
Lord saith, Because the daughters of Sion are haughty, and walk with
stretched-forth necks and wanton eyes, walking and mincing as they go, and make
a tinkling with their feet; therefore the Lord will smite her with a scab of
the crown of the head, and will take away the bravery of their tinkling
ornaments.'[131] And this duty of modesty,
in this instance, is expressly enjoined to all Christian women by St. Paul:
`That women adorn themselves in modest apparel, with shamefacedness and
sobriety, not with broidered hair, or gold, or pearl, or costly array, but
(which becometh women professing godliness) with good works.[132]
9. As those meats are to be avoided which tempt
our stomachs beyond our hunger, so, also, should prudent persons decline all
such spectacles, relations, theatres, loud noises and outcries, which concern
us not, and are besides our natural or moral interest. Our senses should not,
like petulant and wanton girls, wander into markets and theatres without just
employment; but when they are sent abroad by reason, return quickly with their
errand, and remain modestly at home under their guide, till they be sent
again.[133]
10. Let all persons be curious in observing
modesty towards themselves, in the handsome treating their own body, and such
as are in their power, whether living or dead. Against this rule they offend
who expose to others their own, or pry into others' nakedness beyond the limits
of necessity, or where a leave is not made holy by a permission from God. It is
also said, that God was pleased to work a miracle about the body of Epiphanius
to reprove the immodest curiosity of an unconcerned person who pried too near,
when charitable people were composing it to the grave. In all these cases and
particulars, although they seem little, yet our duty and concernment is not
little. Concerning which I use the words of the son of Sirach, "He that
despiseth little things shall perish by little and little."
Virtues and discourses are, like friends,
necessary in all fortunes; but those are the best, which are friends in our
sadnesses, and support us in our sorrows and sad accidents: and in this sense,
no man that is virtuous can be friendless; nor hath any man reason to complain
of the Divine Providence, or accuse the public disorder of things, or his own
infelicity, since God hath appointed one remedy for all the evils in the world,
and that is a contented spirit: for this alone makes a man pass through fire,
and not be scorched; through seas, and not be drowned; through hunger and
nakedness, and want nothing. For since all the evil in the world consists in
the disagreeing between the object and the appetite, as when a man hath what he
desires not, or desires what he hath not, or desires amiss; he that composes
his spirit to the present accident, hath variety of instances for his virtues,
but none to trouble him, because his desires enlarge not beyond his present
fortune; and a wise man is placed in the variety of chances, like the nave or
centre of a wheel, in the midst of all the circumvolutions and changes of
posture, without violence or change save that it turns gently in compliance
with its changed parts, and is indifferent which part is up, and which id down;
for there is some virtue or other to be exercised, whatever happens, either
patience or thanksgiving, love or fear, moderation or humility, charity or
contentedness, and they are every one of them equally in order to his great end
and immortal felicity: and beauty is not made by white or red, by black eyes
and a round face, by a straight body and a smooth skin; but by a proportion to
the fancy. No rules can make amiability; our minds and apprehensions make that;
and so is our felicity; and we may be reconciled to poverty and a low fortune,
if we suffer contentedness and the grace of God to make the proportions. For no
man is poor that does not think himself so: but if, in a full fortune, with
impatience he desires more, he proclaims his wants and his beggarly
condition.[134] But because this grace of
contentedness was the sum of all the old moral philosophy, and a great duty in
Christianity, and of most universal use in the whole course of our lives, and
the only instrument to ease the burdens of the world and the enmities of sad
changes, it will not be amiss to press it by the proper arguments by which God
hath bound it upon our spirits; it being fastened by reason and religion, by
duty and interest, by necessity and conveniency, by example, and by the
proposition of excellent rewards, no less than peace and felicity.
1. Contentedness in all estates is a duty of
religion; it is the great reasonableness of complying with the Divine
Providence, which governs all the world, and hath so ordered us in the
administration of his great family. He were a strange fool that should be angry
because dogs and sheep need no shoes, and yet himself is full of care to get
some. God hath supplied those needs to them by natural provisions, and to thee
by an artificial: for he hath given the reason to learn a trade, or some means
to make or buy them, so that it only differs in the manner of our provision:
and which had you rather want, shoes or reason? Any my patron, that hath given
me a farm, is freer to me than if he gives a loaf ready baked. But, however,
all these gifts come from him, and therefore it is fit he should dispense them
as he pleases; and if we murmur here, we may, at the next melancholy fit, be
troubled that God did not make us to be angels or stars. For if that which we
are or have do not content us, we may be troubled for everything in the world
which is besides our being or our possessions.
God is the master of the scenes; we must not
choose which part we shall act; it concerns us only to be careful that we do it
well, always saying, `If this please God, let it be as it is;' and we, who pray
that God's will may be done in earth as it is in heaven, must remember that the
angels do whatsoever is commanded them, and go wherever they are sent, and
refuse no circumstances; and if their employment be crossed by a higher degree,
they sit down in peace, and rejoice in the event; and when the angel of Judea
could not prevail in behalf of the people committed to his charge, because the
angel of Persia opposed it, he only told the story at the command of God, and
was as content, and worshipped with as great an ecstasy in his proportion, as
the prevailing spirit. Do thou so likewise: keep the station where God hath
placed you, and you shall never long for things without, but sit at home,
feasting upon the Divine Providence and thy own reason, by which we are taught
that it is necessary and reasonable to submit to God.
For is not all the world God's family? Are not we
his creatures? Are we not as clay in the hand of the potter? Do we not live
upon his meat, and move by his strength, and do our work by his light? Are we
anything but what we are from him? And shall there be a mutiny among the flocks
and herds, because their lord or their shepherd chooses their pastures, and
suffers them not to wander into the deserts and unknown ways? If we choose, we
do it so foolishly that we cannot like it long, and most commonly not at all:
but God, who can do what he pleases, is wise to choose safely for us,
affectionate to comply with our needs, and powerful to execute all his wise
decrees. Here, therefore, is the wisdom of the contented man, to let God choose
for him; for when we have given up our wills to him, and stand in that station
of the battle where our great general hath placed us, our spirits must needs
rest while our conditions have for their security the power, the wisdom, and
the charity of God.
2. Contentedness in all accidents brings great
peace of spirit, and is the great and only instrument of temporal felicity. It
removes the sting from the accident, and makes a man not to depend upon chance
and the uncertain dispositions of men for his well-being, but only on God and
his own spirit. We ourselves make our fortunes good or bad; and when God lets
loose a tyrant upon us, or a sickness, or scorn, or a lessened fortune, if we
fear to die, or know not to be patient, or are proud, or covetous, then the
calamity sits heavy on us. But if we know how to manage a noble principle, and
fear not death so much as a dishonest action, and think impatience a worse evil
than a fever, and pride to be the biggest disgrace, and poverty to be
infinitely desirable before the torments of covetousness; then we who now think
vice to be so easy, and make it so familiar, and think the cure so impossible,
shall quickly be of another mind, and reckon these accidents amongst things
eligible.
But no man can be happy that hath great hopes and
great fears of things without, and events depending upon other men, or upon the
chances of fortune. The rewards of virtue are certain, and our provisions for
our natural support are certain; or if we want meat till we die, then we die of
that disease - and there are many whores than to die of an atrophy or
consumption, or unapt and courser nourishment. But he that suffers a
transporting passion concerning things within the power of others, is free from
sorrow and amazement no longer than his enemy shall give him leave; and it is
ten to one but he shall be smitten then and there where it shall most trouble
him; for so the adder teaches us where to strike, by her curious and fearful
defending of her head. The old Stoics, when you told them of a sad story, would
still answer, "Yes, for the tyrant hath sentenced you also to prison. Well,
what is that? he will put a chain upon my leg; but he cannot bind my soul. No,
but he will kill you. Then I will die. If presently, let me go, that I may
presently be freer than himself; but if not till anon or tomorrow, I will dine
first, or sleep, or do what reason or nature calls for, as at other times."
This, in Gentile philosophy, is the same with the discourse of St. Paul,[135] "I have learned in whatsoever state I am,
therewith to be content. I know both how to be abased, and I know how to
abound: everywhere and in all things I am instructed, both to be full and to be
hungry; both to abound and suffer need."[136]
We are in the world like men playing at tables,
the chance is not in our power, but to play it is; and when it is fallen we
must manage it as we can; and let nothing trouble us, but when we do a base
action, or speak like a fool, or think wickedly - these things God hath put
into our powers; but concerning those things which are wholly in the choice of
another, they cannot fall under our deliberation, and therefore neither are
they fit for our passions. My fear may make me miserable, but it cannot prevent
what another hath in his power and purpose; and prosperities can only be
enjoyed by them who fear not at all to lose them; since the amazement and
passion concerning the future takes off all the pleasure of the present
possession. Therefore, if thou hast lost thy land, do not also lose thy
constancy; and if thou must die a little sooner, yet do not die impatiently.
For no chance is evil to him that is content; and to a man nothing is miserable
unless it be unreasonable. No man can make another man to be his slave unless
be hath first enslaved himself to life and death, to pleasure or pain, to hope
or fear: command these passions, and you are freer than the Parthian kings.
Upon the strength of these premises, we may
reduce this virtue to practice by its proper instruments first, and then by
some more special considerations or arguments of content.
1. When anything happens to our displeasure, let
us endeavour to take off its trouble by turning it into spiritual or artificial
advantage, and handle it on that side in which it may be useful to the designs
of reason; for there is nothing but hath a double handle, or at least we have
two hands to apprehend it. When an enemy reproaches us, let us look on him as
an impartial relater of our faults, for he will tell thee truer than thy
fondest friend will; and thou mayest call them precious balms, though they
break thy head, and forgive his anger, while thou makest use of the plainness
of his declamation. The ox, when he is weary, treads surest; and if there be
nothing else in the disgrace, but that it makes us to walk warily, and tread
sure for fear of our enemies, that is better than to be flattered into pride
and carelessness. This is the charity of Christian philosophy, which expounds
the sense of the Divine Providence fairly, and reconciles us to it by a
charitable construction; and we may as well refuse all physic, if we consider
it only as unpleasant in the taste; and we may find fault with the rich valleys
of Thasus, because they are circled by sharp mountains; but so also we may be
in charity with every unpleasant accident, because, though it taste bitter, it
is intended for health and medicine.
If, therefore, thou fallest from thy employment
in public, take sanctuary in an honest, retirement, being indifferent to thy
gain abroad, or thy safety at home. If thou art out of favour with thy prince,
secure the favour of the King of kings, and then there is no harm come to thee.
And when Zeno Citiensis lost all his goods in a storm, he retired to the
studies of philosophy, to his short cloak and a severe life, and gave thanks to
fortune for his prosperous mischance. When the north wind blows hard, and it
rains sadly none but fools sit down in it and cry; wise people defend
themselves against it with a warm garment, or a good fire and a dry roof. When
a storm of a sad mischance beats upon our spirits, turn it into some advantage
by observing where it can serve another end, either of religion or prudence, of
more safety or less envy: it will turn into something that is good, if we list
to make it so; at least it may make us weary of the world's vanity, and take
off our confidence from uncertain riches, and make our spirits to dwell in
those regions where content dwells essentially. If it does any good to our
souls, it hath made more than sufficient recompense for all the temporal
affliction. He that threw a stone at a dog, and hit his cruel step-mother,
said, that although he intended it otherwise, yet the stone was not quite lost;
and if we fail in the first design, if we bring it home to another equally to
content us, or more to profit us, then we have put our conditions past the
power of chance; and this was called, in the old Greek comedy, "a being
revenged on fortune by becoming philosophers," and turning the chance into
reason or religion: for so a wise man shall overrule his stars, and have a
greater influence upon his own content than all the constellations and planets
of the firmament.
2. Never compare thy condition with those above
thee; but, to secure thy content, look upon those thousands with whom thou
wouldest net, for any interest, change thy fortune and condition. A soldier
must not think himself unprosperous if he be not as successful as the son of
Philip, or cannot grasp a fortune as big as the Roman empire. Be content that
thou art not lessened as was Pyrrhus, or, if thou beest, that thou art not
routed like Crassus; and when that comes to thee, it is a great prosperity that
thou art not caged and made a spectacle like Bajazet, or thy eyes were not
pulled out like Zedekiah's, or that thou wert not flayed alive like
Valentinian. If thou admirest the greatness of Xerxes, look also on those that
digged the mountain Atho, or whose ears and noses were cut off because the
Hellespont carried away the bridge. It is a fine thing (thou thinkest) to be
carried on men's shoulders; but give God thanks that thou art not forced to
carry a rich fool upon thy shoulders, as those poor men do whom thou beholdest.
There are but a few kings in mankind; but many thousands who are very miserable
if compared to thee. However, it is a huge folly rather to grieve for the good
of others than to rejoice for that good which God hath given us of our own.
And yet there is no wise or good man that would
change persons or conditions entirely with any man in the world. It may be, he
would have one man's health added to himself, or the power of a second, or the
learning of a third; but still he would receive these into his own person,
because he loves that best, and therefore esteems it best, and therefore
overvalues all that which he is, before all that which any other man in the
world can be. Would any man be Dives to have his wealth, or Judas for his
office, or Saul for his kingdom, or Absalom for his bounty, or Achitophel for
his policy? It is likely he would wish all these, and yet he would be the same
person still. For every man hath desires of his own, and objects just fitted o
them, without which he cannot be, unless he were not himself. And let every man
that loves himself so well auto love himself before all the world, consider if
he have not something for which in the whole he values himself far more than he
can value any man else. There is therefore no reason to take the finest
feathers from all the winged nation to deck that bird that thinks already she
is more valuable than any of the inhabitants of the air. Either change all or
none. Cease to love yourself best, or be content with that portion of being and
blessing for which you can love yourself so well.
3. It conduces much to our content, if we pass by
those things which happen to our trouble, and consider that which is pleasing
and prosperous - that, by the representation of the butter, the worse may be
blotted out; and, at the worst, you have enough to keep you alive, and to keep
up and to improve your hopes of heaven. If I be overthrown in my suit at law,
yet my house is left me still and my land; or I have a virtuous wife, or
hopeful children, or kind friends, or good hopes. If I have lost one child, it
may be I have two or three still left me. Or else reckon the blessings which
already you have received, and therefore be pleased, in the change and variety
of affairs, to receive evil from the hand of God as well as good Antipater, of
Tarsus, used this art to support his sorrows on his death-bed, and reckoned the
good things of his past life, not forgetting to recount it as a blessing, an
argument that God took care of him, that he had a prosperous journey from
Cilicia to Athens. Or else please thyself with hopes of the future;[137] for we were born with this sadness upon
us, and it was a change that brought us into it, and a change may bring us out
again. Harvest will come, and then every farmer is rich, at least for a month
or two. It may be thou art entered into the cloud which will bring a gentle
shower to refresh thy sorrows.
Now suppose thyself in as great a sadness as ever
did load thy spirit, wouldest thou not bear it cheerfully and nobly if thou
wert sure that within a certain space some strange excellent fortune would
relieve thee, and enrich thee, and recompense thee, so as to overflow all thy
hopes and thy desires and capacities? Now then, when a sadness lies heavy upon
thee, remember that thou art a Christian designed to the inheritance of Jesus;
and what dost thou think concerning thy great fortune, thy lot and portion of
eternity? Dost thou think thou shalt be saved or damned? Indeed if thou
thinkest thou shalt perish, I cannot blame thee to be sad, till thy
heart-strings crack; but then why art thou troubled at the loss of thy money?
What should a damned man do with money, which in so great a sadness it is
impossible for him to enjoy? Did ever any man upon the rack afflict himself
because he had received a cross answer from his mistress? or call for the
particulars of a purchase upon the gallows? If thou dost really believe thou
shalt be damned, I do not say it will cure the sadness of thy poverty, but it
will swallow it up. But if thou believest thou shalt be saved, consider how
great is that joy, how infinite is that change, how unspeakable is that glory,
how excellent is the recompense, for all the sufferings in the world, if they
were all laden upon thy spirit! So that let thy condition be what it will, if
thou considerest thy own present condition, and comparest it to thy future
possibility, thou canst not feel the present smart of a cross fortune to any
great degree, either because thou hast a far bigger sorrow, or a far bigger
joy. Here thou art but a stranger, travelling to the country where the glories
of a kingdom are prepared for thee; it is, therefore, a huge folly to be much
afflicted because thou hast a less convenient inn to lodge in by the way.
But these arts of looking forwards and backwards
are more than enough to support the spirit of a Christian: there is no man but
hath blessings enough in present possession to outweigh the evils of a great
affliction. Tell the joints of thy body, and do not accuse the universal
Providence for a lame leg, or the want of a finger, when all the rest is
perfect, and you have a noble soul, a particle of divinity, the image of God
himself; and by the want of a finger you may the better know how to estimate
the remaining parts, and to account for every degree of the surviving
blessings. Aristippus, in a great suit at law, lost a farm, and to a gentleman,
who in civility pitied and deplored his loss; he answered, "I have two farms
left still, and that is more than I have lost, and more than you have by one."
If you miss an office for which you stood candidate, then, besides that you are
quit of the cares and the envy of it, you still have all those excellences
which rendered you capable to receive it, and they are better than the best
office in the commonwealth. If your estate be lessened, you need the less to
care who governs the province, whether he be rude or gentle. I am crossed in my
journey, and yet I escaped robbers; and I consider, that if I had been set upon
by villains, I would have redeemed that evil by this which I now suffer, and
have counted it a deliverance; or if I did fall into the hands of thieves, yet
they did not steal my land. Or, I am fallen into the hands of publicans and
sequestrators, and they have taken all from me: what now? let me look about me.
They have left me the sun and moon, fire and water, a loving wife, and many
friends to pity me, and some to relieve me, and I can still discourse; and,
unless I list, they have not taken away my merry countenance, and my cheerful
spirit, and a good conscience; they still have left me the providence of God,
and all the promises of the gospel, and my religion, and my hopes of heaven,
and my charity to them too; and still I sleep and digest, I eat and drink, I
read and meditate; I can walk in my neighbour's pleasant fields, and see the
variety of natural beauties, and delight in all that in which God delights-
that is, in virtue and wisdom, in the whole creation, and in God himself. And
he that hath so many causes of joy, and so great, is very much in love with
sorrow and peevishness, who loses all these pleasures, and chooses to sit down
upon his little handful of thorns. Such a person is fit to bear Nero company in
his funeral sorrow for the loss of one of Poppea's hairs, or help to mourn for
Lesbia's sparrow; and because he loves it, he deserves to starve in the midst
of plenty, and to want comfort while he is encircled with blessings.
4. Enjoy the present, whatsoever it be, and be
not solicitous for the future; for if you take your foot from the present
standing, and thrust it forward towards tomorrow's event, you are in a restless
condition: it is like refusing to quench your present thirst by fearing you
shall want drink the next day. If it be well to-day, it is madness to make the
present miserable by fearing it may be ill to-morrow - when your belly is full
of to-day's dinner, to fear you shall want the next day's supper; for it may be
you shall not, and then to what purpose was this day's affliction? But if
to-morrow you shall want, your sorrow will come time enough, though you do not
hasten it: let your trouble tarry till its own day comes. But if it chance to
be ill to-day, do not increase it by the care of to-morrow. He, therefore, that
enjoys the present if it be good, enjoys as much as is possible; and if only
that day's trouble leans upon him, it is singular and finite. `Sufficient to
the day (said Christ) is the evil thereof': sufficient but not intolerable. But
if we look abroad, and bring into one day's thoughts the evil of many, certain
and uncertain, what will be, and what will never be, our load will be as
intolerable as it is unreasonable. To reprove this instrument of discontent,
the ancients feigned that in hell stood a man twisting a rope of hay; and still
he twisted on, suffering an ass to eat up all that was finished - so miserable
is he who thrusts his passions forwards towards future events, and suffers all
that he may enjoy to be lost and devoured by folly and inconsideration,
thinking nothing fits to be enjoyed but that which is not or cannot be had.
Just so, many young persons are loath to die, and therefore desire to live to
old age, and when they are come thither, are troubled that they are come to
that state of life, to which before they were come they were hugely afraid they
should never come.
5. Let us prepare our minds against changes,
always expecting them, that we be not surprised when they come; for nothing is
so great an enemy to tranquillity and a contented spirit as the amazement and
confusions of unreadiness and inconsideration; and when our fortunes are
violently changed our spirits are unchanged, if they always stood in the
suburbs and expectations of sorrows. `O death, how bitter art thou to a man
that is at rest in his possessions!' And to the rich man who had promised to
himself ease and fulness for many years, it was a sad arrest that his soul was
surprised the first night; but the apostles, who every day knocked at the gate
of death, and looked upon it continually, went to their martyrdom in peace and
evenness.
6. Let us often frame to ourselves, and represent
to our considerations, the images of those blessings we have, just as we
usually understand them when we want them. Consider how desirable health is to
a sick man, or liberty to a prisoner; and if but a fit of the toothache seizes
us with violence, all those troubles which in our health afflicted us disband
instantly, and seem inconsiderable. He that in his health is troubled that he
is in debt, and spends sleepless nights, and refuses meat because of his
infelicity, let him fall into a fit of the stone or a high fever, he despises
the arrest of all his first troubles, and is as a man unconcerned. Remember
then that God hath given thee a blessing, the want of which is infinitely more
trouble than thy present debt, or poverty, or loss; and therefore is now more
to be valued in the possession, and ought to outweigh thy trouble. The very
privative blessings, the blessings of immunity, safeguard, liberty, and
integrity, which we commonly enjoy, deserve the thanksgiving of a whole life.
If God should send a cancer upon thy face, or a wolf into thy side, if he
should spread a crust of leprosy upon thy skin, what wouldest thou give to be
but as now thou art? Wouldest thou not, on that condition, be as poor as I am,
or as the meanest of thy brethren? Would you not choose your present loss or
affliction as a thing extremely eligible, and a redemption to thee, if thou
mightest exchange the other for this? Thou art quit from a thousand calamities,
every one of which, if it were upon thee, would make thee insensible of thy
present sorrow: and therefore let thy joy (which should be as great for thy
freedom from them, as is thy sadness when thou feelest any of them) do the same
cure upon thy discontent. For if we be not extremely foolish or vain, thankless
or senseless, a great joy is more apt to cure sorrow and discontent than a
great trouble is. I have known an affectionate wife, when she hath been in fear
of parting with her beloved husband, heartily desire of God his life or society
upon any conditions that were not sinful; and choose to beg with him rather
than to feast without him; and the same person hath, upon that consideration,
borne poverty nobly, when God hath heard her prayer in the other matter. What
wise man in the world is there who does not prefer a small fortune with peace
before a great one with contention and war and violence? And then he is no
longer wise if he alters his opinion when he hath his wish.
7. If you will secure a contented spirit, you
must measure your desires by your fortune and condition, not your fortunes by
your desire - that is, be governed by your needs, not by your fancy; by nature,
not by evil customs and ambitious principles.[138] He that would shoot an arrow out of a plough, or hunt a
hare with an elephant, is not unfortunate for missing the mark or prey; but he
is foolish for choosing such unapt instruments: and so is he that runs after
his content with appetites not springing from natural needs, but from
artificial, fantastical, and violent necessities. These are not to be
satisfied; or if they were, a man hath chosen an evil instrument towards his
content: nature did not intend rest to a man by filling of such desires. Is
that beast better that hath two or three mountains to graze on, than a little
bee that feeds on dew or manna, and lives upon what falls every morning from
the storehouse of heaven, clouds and providence? Can a man quench his thirst
better out of a river than a full urn, or drink better from the fountain which
is finely paved with marble than when it swells over the green turf?[139] Pride and artificial gluttonies do but
adulterate nature, making our diet healthless, our appetites impatient and
unsatisfiable, and the taste mixed, fantastical, and meretricious. But that
which we miscall poverty is indeed nature; and its proportions are the just
measures of a man and the best instruments of content. But when we create needs
that God or nature never made, we have erected to ourselves an infinite stock
of trouble that can have no period. Sempronius complained of want of clothes,
and was much troubled for a new suit, being ashamed to appear in the theatre
with his gown a little threadbare; but when he got it, and gave his old clothes
to Codrus, the poor man was ravished with joy, and went and gave God thanks for
his new purchase; and Codrus was made richly fine and cheerfully warm by that
which Sempronius was ashamed to wear; and yet their natural needs were both
alike, the difference only was that Sempronius had some artificial and
fantastical necessities superinduced, which Codrus had not, and was harder to
be relieved, and could not have joy at so cheap a rate, because he only lived
according to nature, the other by pride and ill customs, and measures taken by
other men's eyes and tongues, and artificial needs. He that propounds to his
fancy things greater than himself or his needs, and is discontent and troubled
when he wails of such purchases, ought not to accuse Providence, or blame his
fortune, but his folly. God and nature made no more needs than they mean to
satisfy; and he that will make more must look for satisfaction where he can.
8. In all troubles and sadder accidents, let us
take sanctuary in religion, and by innocence cast out anchors for our souls to
keep them from shipwreck, though they be not kept from storm. For what
philosophy shall comfort a villain that is haled to the rack for murdering his
prince, or that is broken upon the wheel for sacrilege? His cup is full of pure
and unmingled sorrow: his body is rent with torment, his name with ignominy,
his soul with shame and sorrow, which are to last eternally. But when a man
suffers in a good cause, or is afflicted, and yet walks not perversely with his
God, then "Anytus and Melitus may kill me, but they cannot hurt me;" then St.
Paul's character is engraved in the forehead of our fortune; `We are troubled
on every side, but not distressed; perplexed, but not in despair; persecuted,
but not forsaken; cast down, but not destroyed. And who is he that will harm
you, if ye be followers of that which is good?' For indeed everything in the
world is indifferent but sin, and all the scorchings of the sun are very
tolerable in respect of the burnings of a fever or a calenture. The greatest
evils are from within us, and from ourselves also we must look for our greatest
good; for God is the fountain of it, but reaches it to us by our own hands; and
when all things look sadly round about us, then only we shall find how
excellent a fortune it is to have God to our friend; and of all friendships,
that only is created to support us in our needs; for it is sin that turns an
ague into a fever, and a fever to the plague, fear into despair, anger into
rage, and loss into madness, and sorrow to amazement and confusion. But if
either we were innocent, or else by the sadness are made penitent, we are put
to school, or into the theatre, either to learn how, or else actually to combat
for a crown; the accident may serve an end of mercy, but is not a messenger of
wrath.
Let us not, therefore, be governed by external,
and present, and seeming things; not let us make the same judgment of things
that common and weak understandings do; nor make other men, and they not the
wisest, to be judges of our felicity, so that we be happy or miserable as they
please to think us: but let reason, and experience, and religion, and hope,
relying upon the divine promises, be the measure of our judgment. No wise man
did ever describe felicity without virtue,[140] and no good man did ever think virtue could depend upon
the variety of a good or bad fortune. It is no evil to be poor, but to be
vicious and impatient.
To these exercises and spiritual instruments
if we add the following considerations concerning the nature and circumstance
of human chance, we may better secure our peace. For as to children, who are
afraid of vain images, we use to persuade confidence by making them to handle
and look nearer such things that when, in such a familiarity, they perceive
them innocent they may overcome their fears: so must timorous, fantastical,
sad, and discontented persons be treated; they must be made to consider and on
all sides to look upon the accident, and to take all its dimensions, and
consider its consequences, and to behold the purpose of God, and the common
mistakes of men, and their evil sentences they usually pass upon them. For then
we shall perceive, that, like colts or unmanaged horses, we start at dead bones
and lifeless blocks, things that are inactive as they are innocent. But if we
secure our hopes and our fears, and make them moderate and within government,
we may the sooner overcome the evil of the accident; for nothing that we feel
is so bad as what we fear.
1. Consider that the universal providence of God
hath so ordered it, that the good things of nature and fortune are divided,
that we may know how to bear our own and relieve each other's wants and
imperfections. It is not for a man, but for a God to have all excellencies and
all felicities.[141] He supports my poverty
with his wealth, I counsel and instruct him with my learning and experience. He
hath many friends, I many children; he hath no heir, I have no inheritance; and
any one great blessing, together with the common portions of nature and
necessity, is a fair fortune, if it be but health or strength, or the swiftness
of Ahimanz. For it is an unreasonable discontent to be troubled that I have not
so good cocks, or dogs, or horses, as my neighbor, being more troubled that I
want one thing that I need not, than thankful for having received all that I
need. Nero had this disease, that he was not content with the fortune of his
whole empire, but put the fiddlers to death for being more skilful in the trade
than he was; and Dionysius the elder was so angry at Philoxenus for singing,
and with Plato for disputing better than he did, that he sold Plato a slave
into Egina, and condemned the other to the quarries.
This consideration is to be enlarged by adding to
it, that there are some instances of fortune and a fair condition that cannot
stand with some others; but if you desire this, you must lose that, and unless
you be content with one, you must lose the comfort of both. If you covet
learning, you must have leisure and a retired life; if to be a politician, you
must go abroad and get experience, and do all businesses, and keep all company,
and have no leisure at all; if you will be rich, you must be frugal; if you
will be popular, you must be bountiful; if a philosopher, you must despise
riches. The Greek that designed to make the most exquisite picture that could
be imagined, fancied the eye of Chioue, and the hair of Paegnium, and Tarsia's
lip, Philenitum's chin, and the forehead of Delphia, and set all these upon
Milphidippa's neck, and thought that he should outdo both art and nature. But
when he came to view the proportions, he found, that what was excellent in
Tarsia did not agree with the other excellency of Philenium; and although
singly they were rare pieces, yet in the whole they made a most ugly face. The
dispersed excellencies and blessings of many men, if given to one, would not
make a handsome, but a monstrous fortune. Use, therefore, that faculty which
nature hath given thee, and thy education hath made actual, and thy calling
hath made a duty. But if thou desirest to be a saint, refuse not his
persecution; if thou wouldest be famous as Epaminondas or Fabricius, accept
also of their poverty, for that added lustre to their persons, and envy to
their fortune, and their virtue without it could not have been so excellent.
Let Euphorion sleep quietly with his old rich wife, and let medius drink on
with Alexander, and remember thou canst not have the riches of the first,
unless you have the old wife too; nor the favour which the second had with his
prince, unless you buy it at his price, that is, lay thy sobriety down at
first, and thy health a little after, and then their condition, though it look
splendidly, yet, when you handle it on all sides, it will prick your
fingers.
2. Consider how many excellent personages in all
ages have suffered as great or greater calamities than this which now tempts
thee to impatience. Agis was the most noble of the Greeks, and yet his wife
bore a child by Alcibiades; and Philip was prince of Ituraea, and yet his wife
ran away with his brother Herod into Galilee; and certainly, in a great
fortune, that was a great calamity. But these are but single instances. Almost
all the ages of the world have noted that their most eminent scholars were most
eminently poor, some by choice, but most by chance, and an inevitable decree of
Providence; and in the whole sex of women God hath decreed the sharpest pains
of childbirth, to show that there is no state exempt from sorrow, and et that
the weakest persons have strength more than enough to bear the greatest evil;
and the greatest queens, and the mothers of saints and apostles, have no
charter of exemption from this sad sentence. But the Lord of men and angels was
also the King of sufferings; and if thy coarse robe trouble thee, remember the
swaddling-clothes of Jesus; if thy bed be uneasy, yet it is not worse than his
manger; and it is no sadness to have a thin table if thou callest to mind that
the King of heaven and earth was fed with a little breast-milk; and yet besides
this, he suffered all the sorrows which we deserved. We therefore have great
reason to sit down upon our own hearths, and warm ourselves at our own fires,
and feed upon content at home; for it were a strange pride to expect to be more
gently treated by the Divine Providence than the best and wisest men, than
apostles and saints, nay, the Son of the eternal God, the heir of both the
worlds.
This consideration may be enlarged by surveying
all the states and families of the world: and he that at once saw Egina and
Megara, Pyraus and Corinth, lie gasping in their ruins, and almost buried in
their own heaps, had reason to blame Cicero for mourning impatiently the death
of one woman. In the most beauteous and splendid fortune there are many cares
and proper interruptions and allays: in the fortune of a prince there is not
the coarse robe of beggary, but there are infinite cares; and the judge sits
upon the tribunal with great ceremony and ostentation of fortune,[142] and yet, at his house or in his breast
there is something that causes him to sigh deeply. Pittacus was a wise and
valiant man, but his wife overthrew the table when he had invited his friends;
upon which the good man, to excuse her incivility and his own misfortune said,
"that every man had one evil, and he was most happy that had but that alone."
And if nothing else happens, yet sicknesses so often do embitter the fortune
and content of a family, that a physician in a few years, and with the practice
upon a very few families, gets experience enough to administer to almost all
diseases. And when thy little misfortune troubles thee, remember that thou hast
known the best of kings and the best of men put to death publicly by his own
subjects.
3. There are many accidents which are esteemed
great calamities, and yet we have reason enough to bear them well and
unconcernedly; for they neither touch our bodies nor our soul - or health and
our virtue remain entire, our life and our reputation. It may be I am slighted,
or I have received ill language; but my head aches not for it, neither hath it
broken my thigh, nor taken away my virtue, unless I lose my charity or my
patience. Inquire, therefore, what you are the worse, either in your soul or in
your body, for what hath happened; for upon this very stock many evils will
disappear, since the body and the soul make up the whole man. And when the
daughter of Stilpo proved a wanton, he said it was none of his sin, and
therefore there was no reason it should be his misery. And if an enemy hath
taken all that from a prince whereby he was a king, he may refresh himself by
considering all that is left him whereby he is a man.
4. Consider that sad accidents and a state of
affliction is a school of virtue; it reduces our spirits to soberness, and our
counsels to moderation; it corrects levity, and interrupts the confidence of
sinning. `It is good for me (said David) that I have been afflicted, for
thereby I have learned thy law.' And `I know (O Lord) that thou of very
faithfulness hast caused me to be troubled.' For God, who in mercy and wisdom
governs the world, would never have suffered so many sadnesses, and have sent
them especially to the most virtuous and the wisest men, but that he intends
they should be the seminary of comfort, the nursery of virtue, the exercise of
wisdom, the trial of patience, the venturing for a crown, and the gate of
glory.
5. Consider that afflictions are oftentimes the
occasions of great temporal advantages; and we must not look upon them as they
sit down heavily upon us, but as they serve some of God's ends, and the
purposes of universal Providence. And when a prince fights justly, and yet
unprosperously, if he could see all those reasons for which God hath so ordered
it, he would think it the most reasonable thing in the world, and that it would
be very ill to have it otherwise. If a man could have opened one of the pages
of the Divine counsel, and could have seen the event of Joseph's being sold to
the merchants of Amalek, he might, with much reason, have dried up the young
man's tears: and when God's purposes are opened in the events of things, as it
was in the case of Joseph, when he sustained his father's family and became
lord of Egypt, then we see what ill judgment we made of things, and that we
were passionate as children, and transported with sense and mistaken interest.
The case of Themistocles was almost like that of Joseph, for being banished
into Egypt, he also grew in favour with the king, and told his wife "he had
been undone, unless he had been undone". For God esteems it one of his glories,
that he brings good out of evil; and therefore it were but reason we should
trust God to govern his own world as he pleases; and that we should patiently
wait till the change cometh or the reason be discovered.
And this consideration is also of great use to
them who envy the prosperity of the wicked, and the success of persecutors, and
the baits of fishes, and the bread of dogs. God fails not to sow blessings in
the long furrows which the ploughers plough upon the back of the church; and
this success which troubles us will be a great glory to God, and a great
benefit to his saints and servants, and a great ruin to the persecutors, who
shall have but the fortune of Theramenes, one of the thirty tyrants of Athens,
who escaped when his house fell upon him, and was shortly after put to death
with torments by his colleagues in the country.
To which also may be added, that the great evils
which happen to the best and wisest men are one of the great arguments upon the
strength of which we can expect felicity to our souls and the joys of tolerable
and eligible, when with so great advantages they minister to the faith and hope
of a Christian. But if we consider what unspeakable tortures are provided for
the wicked to all eternity, we should not be troubled to see them prosperous
here, but rather wonder that their portion in this life is not bigger, and that
ever they should be sick, or corssed, or affronted, or troubled with the
contradiction and disease of their own vices, since, if they were fortunate
beyond their own ambition, it could not make them recompense for one hour's
torment in hell, which yet they shall have for their eternal portion.
After all these considerations deriving from
sense and experience, grace and reason, there are two remedies still remaining,
and they are necessity and time.
6. For it is but reasonable to bear that accident
patiently which God sends, since impatience does but entangle us, like the
fluttering of a bird in a net, but cannot at all ease our trouble, or prevent
the accident: it must be run through, and therefore it were better we compose
ourselves to a patient than to a troubled and miserable suffering.
7. But, however, if you will not otherwise be
cured, time at last will do it alone; and then consider, do you mean to mourn
always, or but for a time? If always, you are miserable and foolish. If for a
time, then why will you not apply those reasons to your grief at first with
which you will cure it at last? or if you will not cure it with reason, see how
little of a man there is in you, that you suffer time to do more with you than
reason or religion! You suffer yourself to be cured, just as a beast or a tree
is; let it alone, and the thing will heal itself: but this is neither
honourable to thy person, nor to reputation to thy religion. However, be
content to bear thy calamity, because thou art sure, in a little time, it will
sit down gentle and easy, for to a moral man no evil is immortal. And here let
the worst thing happen that can, it will end in death, and we commonly think
that to be near enough.
8. Lastly, of those things which are reckoned
amongst evils, some are better than their contraries; and to a good man the
very worst is tolerable.
1. Poverty is better than riches, and a mean
fortune to be chosen before a great and splendid one. It is indeed despised,
and makes men contemptible; it exposes a man to the insolence of evil persons,
and leaves a man to the insolence of evil persons, and leaves a man
defenceless; it is always suspected; its stories are accounted lies, and all
its counsels follies; it puts a man from all employment; it makes a man,s
discourses tedious, and his society troublesome. This is the worst of it; and
yet all this, and far worse than this, the apostles suffered for being
Christians; and Christianity itself may be esteemed an affliction as well as
poverty, if this be all that can be said against it; for the apostles and the
most eminent Christians were really poor, and were used contemptuously; and
yet, that poverty is despised may be an argument to commend it, if it be
despised by none but persons vicious and ignorant.[143] However, certain it is that a great fortune is a great
vanity, and riches are nothing but danger, trouble, and temptation; like a
garment that is too long, and bears a train; not so useful to one, but it is
troublesome to two - to him that bears the one part upon his shoulders, and to
him that bears the other part in his hand. But poverty is the sister of a good
mind, the parent of sober counsels, and the nurse of all virtue.
For what is it that you admire in the fortune of
a great king? Is it that he always goes in a great company? You may thrust
yourself into the same crowd, or go often to church, and then you have as great
a company as he hath; and that may upon as good grounds please you as him, that
is, justly neither: for so impertinent and useless pomp, and the other
circumstances of his distance, are not made for him, but for his subjects, that
they may learn to separate him from common usages, and be taught to be
governed.[144] But if you look upon them as
fine things in themselves, you may quickly alter your opinion when you shall
consider that they cannot cure the toothache, nor make one wise, or fill the
belly, or give one night's sleep - (though they help to break many,) - not
satisfying any appetite of nature, or reason or religion; but they are states
of greatness which only make it possible for a man to be made extremely
miserable. And it was long ago observed by the Greek tragedians, and from them
by Arrianus,[145] saying, "that all our
tragedies are of kings and princes, and rich or ambitious personages; but you
never see a poor man have a part, unless it be as a chorus, or to fill up the
scenes, to dance or to be derided; but the kings and the great generals. First,
says he, they begin with joy, crown the houses, but about the third or fourth
act they cry out, O Citheron! why didst thou spare my life to reserve me for
this more sad calamity?" And this is really true in the great accidents of the
world; for a great estate hath great crosses, and a mean fortune hath but small
ones. It may be the poor man loses a cow; or if his child dies he is quit of
his biggest care; but such an accident in a rich and splendid family doubles
upon the spirits of the parents. Or, it may be the poor man is troubled to pay
his rent, and that is his biggest trouble; but is is a bigger care to secure a
great fortune in a troubled estate, or with equal greatness, or with the
circumstances of honour and the niceness of reputation, to defend a lawsuit;
and that which will secure a common man's whole estate is not enough to defend
a great man's honour.
And therefore it was not without mystery observed
among the ancients, that they who made gods of gold and silver, of hope and
fear, peace and fortune, garlic and onions, beasts and serpents, and a quartan
ague, yet never deified money; meaning that however wealth was admired by
common or abused understandings, yet from riches, that is from that proportion
of good things which is beyond the necessities of nature, no moment could be
added to a man's real content or happiness. Corn from Sardinia, herds from
Calabrian cattle, meadows through which pleasant Liris glides, silks from
Tyrus, and golden chalices to drown my health in, are nothing but instruments
of vanity or sin; and suppose a disease in the soul of him that longs for them
or admires them. And this I have otherwhere represented more largely; to which
I here add, that riches have very great dangers to their souls not only to them
who covet them, but to all that have them. For if a great personage undertakes
an action passionately and upon great interest, let him manage it indiscreetly,
let the whole design be unjust, let it be acted with all the malice and
impotency in the world, he shall have enough to flatter him, but not enough to
reprove him. He had need be a bold man that shall tell his patron he is going
to hell; and that prince had need be a good man that shall suffer such a
monitor; and though it be a strange kind of civility, and an evil dutifulness
in friends and relatives to suffer him to perish without reproof or medicine,
rather than to seem unmannerly to a great sinner, yet it is none of their least
infelicities that their wealth and greatness shall put them into sin, and yet
put them past reproof. I need not instance in the habitual intemperance of rich
tables, nor the evil accidents and effects of fulness, pride and lust,
wantonness and softness of disposition, huge talking and an imperious spirit,
despite of religion, and contempt of poor persons; at the best, it is a great
temptation for a man to have in his power whatsoever he can have in his sensual
desires;[146] and therefore riches is a
blessing like to a present made of a whole vintage to a man in a hectic fever;
he will be much tempted to drink of it, and if he does, he is inflamed, and may
chance to die with the kindness.
Now besides what hath been already noted in the
state of poverty, there is nothing to be accounted for but the fear of wanting
necessaries; of which, if a man could be secured that he might live free from
care, all the other parts of it might be reckoned amongst the advantages of
wise and sober persons, rather than objections against that state of
fortune.
But concerning this, I consider that there must
needs be great security to all Christians, since Christ not only made express
promises that we should have sufficient for this life, but took great pains and
used many arguments to create confidence in us; and such they were, which by
their own strength were sufficient, though you abate the authority of the
speaker. The Son of God told us, his Father takes care of us: he that knew all
his Father's counsels, and his whole kindness towards mankind, told us so. How
great is that truth, how certain, how necessary, which Christ himself proved by
arguments! The excellent words and most comfortable sentences which are our
bills of exchange, upon the credit of which we lay our cares down and receive
provisions for our need, are these, `Take no thought for your life, what ye
shall eat, or what ye shall drink, nor yet for your body, what ye shall put on.
Is not the life more than meat, and the body than raiment? Behold the fowls of
the air, for they sow not, neither do they reap, nor gather into barns, yet
your heavenly Father feedeth them! Are ye not much better than they? Which of
you, by taking thought, can add one cubit to his stature? and why take ye
thought for raiment? Consider the lilies of the field, how they grow - they
toil not, neither do they spin; and yet I say unto you, that even Solomon in
all his glory was not arrayed like one of these. Therefore, if God so clothe
the grass of the field which to-day is, and to-morrow is cast into the oven,
shall he not much more clothe you, O ye of little faith? Therefore take no
thought, saying, What shall we eat, or what shall we drink, or wherewithal
shall we be clothes? (for after all these things do the gentiles seek); for
your heavenly Father knoweth that ye have need of all these things. But seek ye
first the kingdom of God and his righteousness, and all these things shall be
added unto you. Take therefore no thought for the morrow, for the morrow shall
take thought for the things of itself: sufficient to the day is the evil
thereof." The same discourse is repeated by St. Luke;[147] and accordingly our duty is urged, and our confidence
abetted, by the disciples of our Lord, in divers places of Holy Scripture. So
St. Paul - `Be careful for nothing; but in everything by prayer and
supplication with thanksgiving, let your requests be made known unto God." And
again, "Charge them that are rich in this world that they be not high-minded,
nor trust in uncertain riches, but in the living God, who giveth us richly all
things to enjoy. And yet again, "Let your conversation be without covetousness,
and be content with such things as ye have; for he hath said, I will never
leave thee, nor forsake thee: so that we may boldly say, The Lord is my
helper."[148] And all this is by St. Peter
summed up in our duty thus: "Cast all your care upon him, for he careth for
you." Which words he seems to have borrowed out of the fifty-fifth Psalm, ver.
23, where David saith the same thing almost in the same words; to which I only
add the observation made by him, and the argument of experience: `I have been
young, and now am old, and yet saw I never the righteous forsaken, nor his seed
begging their bread.' And now after all this, a fearless confidence in God,
concerning a provision of necessaries, is so reasonable, that it is become a
duty; and he is scarce a Christian whose faith is so little as to be jealous of
God and suspicious concerning meat and clothes - that man hath nothing in him
of the nobleness or confidence of charity.
Does not God provide for all the birds and beasts
and fishes? Do not the sparrows fly from their bush, and every morning find
meat where they laid it not? Do not the young ravens call to God, and he feeds
them? And were it reasonable that the sons of the family should fear the father
would give meat to the chickens and the servants, his sheep and his dogs, but
give none to them? He were a very ill father that should do so; or he were a
very foolish son that should think so of a good father. But besides the
reasonableness of this faith and this hope, we have infinite experience of it.
How innocent, how careless, how secure, is infancy! and yet how certainly
provided for! We have lived at God's charges all the days of our life, and have
(as the Italian proverb says) set down to meat at the sound of a bell; and
hitherto he hath not failed us: we have no reason to suspect him for the
future; we do not use to serve men so; and less time of trial creates great
confidences in us towards them, who for twenty years together never broke their
word with us: and God hath so ordered it, that a man shall have had the
experience of many years' provision before he shall understand how to doubt;
that he may be provided for an answer against the temptation shall come, and
the mercies felt in his childhood may make him fearless when he is a man. Add
to this, that God hath given us his Holy Spirit; he hath promised heaven to us;
he hath given us his Son; and we are taught from Scripture to make this
inference from hence, `How should not he with him give us all things else?'
We have a title to be provided for, as we are
God's creatures, another title as we are his children, another because God hath
promised - and every of our children hath the same title; and therefore it is a
huge folly and infidelity to be troubled and full of care because we have many
children. Every child we have to feed is a new revenue, a new title to God's
care and providence; so that many children are a great wealth; and if it be
said they are chargeable, it is no more than all wealth and great revenues are.
For what difference is it? Titus keeps ten ploughs, Cornelia hath ten children:
he hath land enough to employ and feed all his hinds; she, blessings and
promises, and the provisions and the truth of God to maintain all her children.
His hinds and horses eat up all his corn, and her children are sufficiently
maintained with her little. They bring in and eat up, and she indeed eats up,
but they also bring in from the store-houses of heaven, and the granaries of
God; and my children are not so much mine as they are God's - he feeds them in
the womb, by ways secret and insensible, and would not work a perpetual miracle
to bring them forth, and then to starve them.
But some men are highly tempted, and are
brought to a strait, that without a miracle, they cannot be relieved - what
shall they do? It may be their pride or vanity hath brought the necessity upon
them, and it is not a need of God's making: and if it be not, they must cure it
themselves, by lessening their desires and moderating their appetites: and yet
if it be innocent, though unnecessary, God does usually relieve such
necessities; and he does not only upon our prayers grant us more than he
promised of temporal things, but also he gives many times more than we ask.
This is no object for our faith, but ground enough for a temporal and prudent
hope; and if we fail in the particular, God will turn it to a bigger mercy if
we submit to his dispensation and adore him in the denial. But if it be a
matter of necessity, let not any man, by way of impatience, cry out that God
will not work a miracle; for God, by miracle, did give meat and drink to his
people in the wilderness, of which he made no particular promise in any
covenant; and if all natural means fail, it is certain that God will rather
work a miracle than break his word; he can do that - he cannot do this. Only we
must remember that our portion of temporal things is but food and raiment. God
hath not promised us coaches and horses, rich houses and jewels, Tyrian silks
and Persian carpets; neither hath he promised to minister to our needs in such
circumstances as we shall appoint, but such as himself shall choose. God will
enable thee either to pay thy debt (if thou beggest it of him), or else he will
pay it for thee; that is, take thy desire as a discharge of thy duty, and pay
it to thy creditor in blessings, or in some secret of his providence. It may be
he hath laid up the corn that shall feed thee in the granary of thy brother, or
will clothe thee with his wool. He enabled St. Peter to pay his gabel by the
ministry of a fish, and Elias to be waited on by a crow, who was both his
minister and his steward for provisions; and his holy Son rode in triumph upon
an ass that grazed in another man's pastures. And if God gives to him the
domination, and reserves the use to thee, thou hast the better half of the two;
but the charitable man serves God and serves thy need, and both join to provide
for thee, and God blesses both. But if he takes away the flesh-pots from thee,
he can also alter the appetite, and he hath given thee power and commandment to
restrain it; and if he lessens the revenue, he will also shrink the necessity;
or if he gives but a very little, he will make it go a great way; or if he
sends thee but a course diet, he will bless it and make it healthful, and can
cure all the anguish of thy poverty by giving thee patience and the grace of
contentedness. For the grace of God feeds and supports the spirit in the want
of provisions; and if a thin table be apt to enfeeble the spirits of one used
to feed better, yet the cheerfulness of a spirit that is blessed will make a
thin table become a delicacy, if the man was as well taught as he was fed, and
learned his duty when he received the blessing. Poverty, therefore, is in some
senses eligible, and to be preferred before riches; but in all senses it is
very tolerable.
There are some persons, who have been noted
excellent in their lives and passions, rarely innocent, and yet hugely penitent
for indiscretions and harmless infirmities; such as was Paulina, one of the
ghostly children of St. Jerome; and yet, when any of her children died, she was
arrested with a sorrow so great as brought her to the margin of her grave. And
the more tender our spirits are made by religion, the more easy we are to let
in grief, if the cause be innocent, and be but in any sense twisted with piety
and due affections; to cure which we may consider that all the world must die,
and therefore to be impatient at the death of a person concerning whom it was
certain and known that he must die, is to mourn because thy friend or child was
not born an angel; and when thou hast awhile made thyself miserable by an
importunate and useless grief, it may be thou shalt die thyself, and leave
others to their choice whether they will mourn for thee or no; but by that time
it will appear how impertinent that grief was which served no end of life, and
ended in thy own funeral. But what great matter is it if sparks fly upward, or
a stone falls into a pit; if that which was combustible be burned, or that
which was liquid be melted, or that which is mortal to die? It is no more than
a man does every day; for every night death hath gotten possession of that
day,and we shall never live that day over again; and when the last day is come,
there are no more days left for us to die. And what is sleeping and waking, but
living and dying? what is spring and autumn, youth and old age, morning and
evening, but real images of life and death, and really the same to many
considerable effects and changes?
But it is not mere dying that is pretended by
some as the cause of their impatient mourning: but that the child died young,
before he knew good and evil, his right hand from his left, and so lost all his
portion of this world, and they know not of what excellency his portion in the
next shall be. If he died young, he lost but little, for he understood but
little, and had not capacities of great pleasures or great cares; but yet he
died innocent and before the sweetness of his soul was deflowered and ravished
from him by the flames and follies of a forward age; he went out from the
dining-room before he had fallen into error by the intemperance of his meat, or
the deluge of drink; and he hath obtained this favor of God, that his soul hath
suffered a less imprisonment, and her load was sooner taken off, that he might,
with lesser delays, go and converse with immortal spirits - and the babe is
taken into paradise before he knows good and evil (for that knowledge threw our
great father out, and this ignorance returns the child thither). But (as
concerning thy own particular) remove thy thoughts back to those days in which
thy child was not born, and you are now but as then you was, and there is no
difference, but that you had a son born; and if you reckon that for evil, you
are unthankful for the blessing; if it be good, it is better that you had the
blessing for awhile, than not at all; and yet, if he had never been born, this
sorrow had not been at all.[149] But be no
more displeased at God for giving you a blessing for awhile, than you would
have been if he had not given it at all; and reckon that intervening blessing
for a gain, but account it not an evil; and if it be a good, turn it not into
sorrow and sadness. But if we have great reason to complain of the calamities
and evils of our life, then we have the less reason to grieve that those whom
we loved have so small a portion of evil assigned to them. And it is no small
advantage that our children dying young receive; for their condition of a
blessed immortality is rendered to them secure by being snatched from the
dangers of an evil choice, and carried to their little cells of felicity, where
they can weep no more. And this the wisest of the Gentiles understood well,
when they forbade any offerings of libations to be made for dead infants, as
was usual for their other dead; as believing they were entered into a secure
possession, to which they went with no other condition but that they passed
into it through the way of mortality, and, for a few months, wore an uneasy
garment. And let weeping parents say if they do not think that the evils their
little babes have suffered are sufficient. If they be, why are they troubled
that they were taken from those many and greater which in succeeding years are
great enough to try all the reason and religion which art, and nature, and the
grace of God have produced in us, to enable us for such sad contentions? And,
possibly, we may doubt concerning men and women, but we cannot suspect that to
infants death can be such an evil, but that it brings to them much more good
than it takes from them in this life.
But others can well bear the death of
infants; but when they have spent some years of childhood or youth, and are
entered into arts and society, when they are hopeful and provided for, when the
parents are to reap the comfort of all their fears and cares, then it breaks
the spirit to lose them. This is true in many; but this is not love to the
dead, but to themselves; for they miss what they had flattered themselves into
by hope and opinion; and if it were kindness to the dead, they may consider,
that since we hope he is gone to God and to rest, it is an ill expression of
our love to them that we weep for their good fortune. For that life is not best
which is longest: and when they are descended into the grave it shall not be
inquired how long they have lived, but how well: and yet this shortening of
their days is an evil wholly depending upon opinions.[150] For if men did naturally live but twenty years, then we
should be satisfied if they died about sixteen or eighteen; and yet eighteen
years now are as long as eighteen years would be then: and if a man were but a
day's life, it is well if he lasts till even song, and then says his compline
an hour before the time - and we are pleased, and call not that death immature,
if he lives till seventy; and yet this age is as short of the old periods
before and since the flood, as this youth's age (for whom you mourn) is of the
present fulness. Suppose, therefore, a decree passed upon this person, (as
there have been many upon all mankind,) and God hath set him a shorter period;
and then we may as well bear the immature death of the young man as the death
of the oldest men; for they also are immature and unseasonable in respect of
the old periods of many generations. And why are we troubled that he had arts
and sciences before he died? or are we troubled that he does not live to make
use of them? The first is cause of joy, for they are excellent in order to
certain ends; and the second cannot be cause of sorrow, because he hath no need
to use them, as the case now stands, being provided for with the provisions of
an angel and the manner of eternity. However, the sons and the parents, friends
and relatives, are in the world like hours and minutes to a day. The hour
comes, and must pass; and some stay by minutes, and they also pass, and shall
never return again. But let it be considered, that from the time in which a man
is conceived, from that time forward to eternity he shall never cease to be;
and let him die young or old, still he hath an immortal soul, and hath laid
down his body only for a time, as that which was the instrument of his trouble
and sorrows and the scene of sicknesses and disease. But he is in a more noble
manner of being after death than he can be here; and the child may with more
reason be allowed to cry for leaving his mother's womb for this world, than a
man can for changing this world for another.
Others are yet troubled at the manner of
their child's or friends death. He was drowned, or lost his head, or died of
the plague; and this is a new spring of sorrow. But no man can give a sensible
account how it shall be worse for a child to die with drowning in half an-hour,
than to endure a fever of one-and-twenty days. And if my friend lost his head,
so he did not lose his constancy and his religion, he died with huge advantage.
But by this means I am left without an heir.
Well, suppose that: thou hast no heir, and I have no inheritance; and there are
many kings and emperors that have died childless, many royal lines are
extinguished; and Augustus Caesar was forced to adopt his wife's son to inherit
all the Roman greatness. And there are many wise persons that never married;
and we read nowhere that any of the children of the apostles did survive their
fathers; and all that inherit anything of Christ's kingdom come to it by
adoption, not by natural inheritance: and to die without a natural heir is no
intolerable evil, since it was sanctified in the person of Jesus, who died a
virgin.
And by this means we are exposed to the
greater sorrow of having a fool, a swine, or a goat, to rule after us in our
families; and yet even this condition admits of comfort. For all the wild
Americans are supposed to be the sons of Dodoniam; and the sons of Jacob are
now the most scattered and despised people in the whole world. The son of
Solomon was but a silly weak man; and the son of Hezakiah was wicked: and all
the fools and barbarous people, all the thieves and pirates, all the slaves and
miserable men and women of the world, are the sons and daughters of Noah; and
we must not look to be exempted from that portion of sorrow which God gave to
Noah, and Adam, to Abraham, to Isaac, and to Jacob: I pray God send us into the
lot of Abraham. But if anything happens worse to us, it is enough for us that
we bear it evenly.
And how, if you were to die yourself? You
know you must. Only be ready for it by the preparations of a good life; and
then it is the greatest good that ever happened to thee; else there is nothing
that can comfort you. But if you have served God in a holy life, send away the
women and the weepers; tell them it is as much intemperance to weep too much as
to laugh too much; and when thou art alone, or with fitting company, die as
thou shouldest, but do not die impatiently, and like a fox catched in a trap.
For if you fear death, you shall never the more avoid it, but you make it
miserable. Fannius, that killed himself for fear of death, died as certainly as
Portia, that ate burning coals, or Cato, that cut his own throat. To die is
necessary and natural, and it may be honourable; but to die poorly, and basely,
and sinfully, that alone is it that can make a man unfortunate. No man can be a
slave, but he that fears pain, or fears to die. To such a man nothing but
chance and peaceable times can secure his duty, and he depends upon things
without for his felicity; and so is well but during the pleasure of his enemy,
or a thief, or a tyrant or it may be of a dog or a wild bull.
A Prayer against Sensuality.
O eternal Father, thou that sittest in heaven invested with essential glories
and divine perfections, fill my soul with so deep a sense of the excellences of
spiritual and heavenly things, that, my affections being weaned from the
pleasures of the world and the false allurements of sin, I may, with great
severity, and the prudence of a holy discipline and strict desires, with clear
resolutions and a free spirit, have my conversations in heaven and heavenly
employments; that being, in affections as in my condition, a pilgrim and a
stranger here, I may covet after and labour for an abiding city, and at last
may enter into and for ever dwell in the celestial Jerusalem, which is the
mother of us all, through Jesus Christ our Lord. Amen.
For Temperance.
O Almighty God and gracious Father of men and angels, who openest thy hand and
fillest all things with plenty, and hast provided for thy servant sufficient to
satisfy all my needs; teach me to use thy creatures soberly and temperately,
that I may not, with loads of meat or drink, make the temptations of my enemy
to prevail upon me, or my spirit unapt for the performance of my duty, or my
body healthless, or my affections sensual and unholy. O my God, never suffer
that the blessings which thou givest me may either minister to sin or sickness,
but to health and holiness and thanksgiving; that in the strength of thy
provisions I may cheerfully and actively and diligently serve thee; that I may
worthily feast at thy table here, and be accounted worthy, through thy grace,
to be admitted to thy table hereafter, at the eternal supper of the Lamb, to
sing an hallelujah to God the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost, for ever and
ever. Amen.
For Chastity: to be said especially by Unmarried Persons.
Almighty God, our most holy and eternal Father, who art of pure eyes, and canst
behold no uncleanness; let thy gracious and holy Spirit descend upon thy
servant, and reprove the spirit of fornication and uncleanness, and cast him
out; that my body may be a holy temple, and my soul a sanctuary to entertain
the Prince of purities, the holy and eternal Spirit of God. O, let no impure
thoughts pollute that tongue which God hath commanded to be an organ of his
praises; no unholy and unchaste action rend the veil of that temple where the
holy Jesus hath been pleased to enter, and hath chosen for his habitation: but
seal up all my senses from all vain objects, and let them be entirely possessed
with religion, and fortified with prudence, watchfulness, and mortification;
that I, possessing my vessel in holiness, may lay it down with a holy hope, and
receive it again in a joyful resurrection, through Jesus Christ our Lord. Amen.
A Prayer for the Love of God, to be said by Virgins, and Widows, professed or
resolved so to live: and may be used by any one.
Oh holy and purest Jesus, who wert pleased to espouse every holy soul, and join
it to thee with a holy union and mysterious instruments of religious society
and communications; O, fill my soul with religion, and desires holy as the
thoughts of cherubim, passionate beyond the love of women; that I may love thee
as much as ever any creature loved thee, even with all my soul and all my
faculties, and all the degrees of every faculty; let me know no loves but those
of duty and charity, obedience and devotion; that I may for ever run after
thee, who art the King of virgins, and with whom whole kingdoms are in love,
and for whose sake queens have died, and at whose feet kings with joy have laid
their crowns and sceptres. My soul is thing, O dearest Jesus; thou art my Lord,
and hast bound up my eyes and heart from all stranger affections; give me for
my dowry purity and humility, modesty and devotion, charity and patience, and
at last bring me into the bride-chamber to partake of the felicities, and to
lie in the bosom of the Bridegroom to eternal ages, O holy and sweetest Saviour
Jesus. Amen.
A Prayer to be said by Married Persons in behalf of themselves and each
other.
O eternal and gracious Father, who hast consecrated the holy estate of marriage
to become mysterious, and to represent the union of Christ and his church, let
thy Holy Spirit so guide me in the doing the duties of this state, that it may
not become a sin unto me; nor that liberty, which thou hast hallowed by the
holy Jesus, become an occasion of licentiousness by my own weakness and
sensuality; and do thou forgive all those irregularities and too sensual
applications which may have, in any degree, discomposed my spirit and the
severity of a Christian. Let me, in all accidents and circumstances, be severe
in my duty towards thee, affectionate and dear to my wife, (or husband,) a
guide and good example to my family, and in all quietness, sobriety, prudence,
and peace, a follower of those holy pairs who have served thee with godliness
and a good testimony. And the blessings of the eternal God, blessings of the
right hand and of the left, be upon the body and soul of thy servant, my wife,
(or husband,) and abide upon her (or him) till the end of a holy and happy
life; and grant that both of us may live together for ever in the embraces of
the holy and eternal Jesus, our Lord and Saviour. Amen.
A Prayer for the Grace of Humility.
O holy and most gracious Master and Saviour Jesus, who by thy example and by
thy precept, by the practice of a whole life and frequent discourses, didst
command us to be meek and humble, in imitation of thy incomparable sweetness
and great humility, be pleased to give me the grace, as thou hast given me the
commandment: enable me to do whatsoever thou commandest, and command whatsoever
thou pleasest. O mortify in me all proud thoughts and vain opinions of myself;
let me return to thee the acknowledgment and the fruits of all those good
things thou hast given me, that, by confessing I am wholly in debt to thee for
them, I may not boast myself for what I have received, and for what I am highly
accountable; and for what is my own teach me to be ashamed and humbled, it
being nothing but sin and misery, weakness and uncleanness. Let me go before my
brethren in nothing but in striving to do them honour and thee glory, never to
seek my own praise, never to delight in it when it is offered: that, despising
myself, I may be accepted by thee in the honours with which thou shalt crown
thy humble and despised servants, for Jesus' sake, in the kingdom of eternal
glory. Amen.
Acts of Humility and Modesty by way of Prayer and Meditation.
I.
Lord, I know that my spirit is light and thorny, my body is brutish and exposed
to sickness; I am constant to folly, and inconstant in holy purposes. My
labours are vain and fruitless; my fortune full of change and trouble, seldom
pleasing, never perfect; my wisdom is folly; being ignorant even of the parts
and passions of my own body; and what am I, O Lord, before thee, but a
miserable person, hugely in debt, not able to pay?
II.
Lord, I am nothing, and I have nothing of myself: I am less than the least of
all thy mercies.
III.
What was I before birth? First, nothing, and then uncleanness. What during my
childhood? Weakness and folly. What in my youth? Folly still, and passion,
lust, and wildness. What in my whole life? A great sinner, a deceived, and an
abused person. Lord, pity me; for it is thy goodness that I am kept form
confusion and amazement, when I consider the misery and shame of my person, and
the defilements of my nature.
IV.
Lord, what am I? And, Lord, what art thou? "What is man, that thou art mindful
of him? and the son of man, that thou so regardest him?"
V.
How can man be justified with God? Or how can he be clean that is born of a
woman? Behold, even to the moon, and it shineth not; yea, the stars are not
pure in his sight. How much less man that is a worm, and the son of man which
is a worm! Job, xxxv.4, etc.
A Prayer for a contented Spirit, and the Grace of Moderation and Patience.
O Almighty God, Father and Lord of all the creatures, who hast disposed all
things and all chances so as may best glorify thy wisdom, and serve the ends of
thy justice, and magnify thy mercy by secret and indiscernible ways, bringing
good out of evil; I most humbly beseech thee to give me wisdom from above, that
I may adore thee and admire thy ways and footsteps, which are in the great deep
and not to be searched out; teach me to submit to thy providence in all things,
to be content in all changes of person and conditions, to be temperate in
prosperity, and to read my duty in the lines of thy mercy; and in adversity to
be meek, patient, and resigned; and to look through the cloud, that I may wait
for the consolation of the Lord and the day of redemption; in the meantime
doing my duty with an unwearied diligence, and an undisturbed resolution,
having no fondness for my hopes in heaven and the rewards of holy living, and
being strengthened with the spirit of the inner man, through Jesus Christ our
Lord. Amen.
Justice is, by the Christian religion, enjoined in all its parts by these two
propositions in Scripture: "Whatsoever ye would that men should do to you, even
so do them." This is the measure of commutative justice, or of that justice
which supposes exchange of things profitable for things profitable: that as I
supply your need you may supply mine; as I do a benefit to you, I may receive
one by you. And because every man may be injured by another, therefore his
security shall depend upon mine: if he will not let me be safe, he shall not be
safe himself; (only the manner of his being punished is, upon great reason,
both by God and all the world, taken from particulars, and committed to a
public disinterested person, who will do justice, without passion, both to him
and to me;) if he refuses to do me advantage, he shall receive none when his
needs require it. And thus God gave necessities to man, that all men might
need; and several abilities to several persons, that each man might help to
supply the public needs, and, by joining to fill up all wants, they may be knit
together by justice, as the parts of the world are by nature. And he hath made
all obnoxious to injuries, and made every little thing strong enough to do us
hurt by some instrument or other; and hath given us all a sufficient stock of
self-love and desire of self-preservation, to be as the chain to tie together
all the parts of society, and to restrain us from doing violence lest we be
violently dealt withal ourselves.
The other part of justice is commonly called
distributive, and is commanded in this rule, "Render to all their dues: tribute
to whom tribute is due; custom to whom custom; fear to whom fear; honour to
whom honour. Owe no man any thing, but to love one another."[151] This justice is distinguished from the first; because
the obligation depends not upon contract or express bargain, but passes upon us
by virtue of some command of God or of our superior, by nature or by grace, by
piety or religion, by trust or by office, according to that commandment - `As
every man hath received the gift, so let him minister the same, one to another,
as good stewards of the manifold grace of God.'[152] And as the first considers an equality of persons in
respect of the contract or particular necessity, this supposed a difference of
persons, and no particular bargains, but such necessary intercourses as by the
laws of God or man are introduced. But I shall reduce all the particulars of
both kinds to these four heads: 1. Obedience; 2. Provision; 3. Negotiation; 4.
Restitution.
_______________________
Our superiors are set over us in affairs of
the world, or the affairs of the soul and things pertaining to religion, and
are called accordingly ecclesiastical or civil. Towards whom our duty is thus
generally described in the New Testament. For temporal or civil governors the
commands are these: "Render to Caesar the things that are Caesar's;" and, "Let
every soul be subject to the higher powers: for there is no power but of God,
the powers that be are ordained of God; whosoever, therefore, resisteth the
power resisteth the ordinance of God; and they that resist shall receive to
themselves damnation:"[153] and, `Put them
in mind to be subject to principalities and powers, and to obey magistrates:'[154] and, "Submit yourselves to every
ordinance of man, for the Lord's sake: whether it be to the king, as supreme,
or unto governors, as unto them that are sent by him for the punishment of evil
doers, and the praise of them that do well."[155]
For spiritual or ecclesiastical governors, thus
we are commanded: "Obey them that have the rule over you, and submit
yourselves; for they watch for your souls, as they that must give an
account:"[156] and, Hold such in reputation:
and, "To this end did I write,that I might know the proof of you, whether ye be
obedient in all things," said St. Paul to the church in Corinth. Our duty is
reducible to practice by the following rules.
1. We must obey all human laws appointed and
constituted by lawful authority, that is, of the supreme power, according to
the constitution of the place in which we live: all laws, I mean, which are not
against the law of God.
2. In obedience to human laws, we must observe
the letter of the law where we can, without doing violence to the reason of the
law and the intention of the lawgiver; but where they cross each other the
charity of the law is to be preferred before its discipline, and the reason of
it before the letter.
3. If the general reason of the law ceases in our
particular, and a contrary reason rises upon us, we are to procure
dispensation, or leave to omit the observation of it in such circumstances, if
there be any persons or office appointed for granting it; but if there be none,
or if it is not easily to be had, or not without an inconvenience greater than
the good of the observation of the law in our particular, we are dispensed
withal in the nature of the thing, without further process or trouble.
4. As long as the law is obligatory, so long our
obedience is due; and he that begins a contrary custom without reason, sins:
but he that breaks the law, when the custom is entered and fixed, is excused;
because it is supposed the legislative power consents, when, by not punishing,
it suffers disobedience to grow to a custom.
5. Obedience to human laws must be for conscience
sake; that is, because in such obedience public order, and charity, and
benefit, are concerned, and because the law of God commands us: therefore we
must make a conscience in keeping the just laws of superiors: and although the
matter before the making of the law was indifferent, yet now the obedience is
not indifferent; but, next to the laws of God, we are to obey the laws of all
our superiors, who the more public they are the first they are to be in the
order of obedience.
6. Submit to the punishment and censure of the
laws, and seek not to reverse their judgment by opposing, but by submitting, or
flying, or silence, to pass through it or by it, as we can; and although from
inferior judges we may appeal where the law permits us, yet we must sit down
and rest in the judgment of the supreme; and if we be wronged, let us complain
to God of the injury, not of the persons; and he will deliver thy soul from
unrighteous judges.
7. Do not believe thou hast kept the law, when
thou hast suffered the punishment. For although patiently to submit to the
power of the sword be a part of obedience, yet this is such a part as supposes
another left undone; and the law punishes, not because she is as well pleased
in taking vengeance as in being obeyed, but because she is pleased she uses
punishment as a means to secure obedience for the future, or in others.
Therefore, although in such cases the law is satisfied, and the injury and the
injustice are paid for, yet the sins of irreligion, and scandal, and
disobedience to God, must still be so accounted for, as to crave pardon and be
washed off by repentance.
8. Human laws are not to be broken with scandal,
nor at all without reason; for he that does it causelessly is a despiser of the
law, and undervalues the authority. For human laws differ from Divine laws
principally in this: 1. That the positive commands of a man may be broken upon
smaller and more reasons than the positive commands of God; we may, upon a
smaller reason omit to keep any of the fasting-days of the church than omit to
give alms to the poor; only this, the reason must bear weight according to the
gravity and concernment of the law; a law, in a small matter, may be omitted
for a small reason: in a great matter, not without a greater reason. and 2. The
negative precepts of men may cease by many instruments, by contrary customs, by
public disrelish, by long omission: but the negative precepts of God never can
cease, but when they are expressly abrogated by the same authority. But what
those reasons are that can dispense with the command of a man, a man may be his
own judge, and sometimes take his proportions from his own reason and
necessity, sometimes from public fame, and the practice of pious and severe
persons, and from popular customs; in which a man shall walk most safely when
he does not walk along, but a spiritual man takes him by the hand.
9. We must not be too forward in procuring
dispensations, nor use them any longer than the reason continues for which we
first procured them; for to be dispensed withal is an argument of natural
infirmity, if it be necessary; but, if it be not, it signifies an undisciplined
and unmortified spirit.
10. We must not be too busy in examining the
prudence and unreasonableness of human laws: for although we are not bound to
believe them all to be the wisest, yet if, by inquiring into the lawfulness of
them, or by any other instrument we find them to fail of that wisdom with which
some others are ordained, yet we must never make use of it to disparage the
person of the lawgiver, or to countenance any man's disobedience, much less our
own.
11. Pay that reverence to the person of thy
prince, of his ministers, of thy parents and spiritual guides, which, by the
customs of the place thou livest in, are usually paid to such persons in their
several degrees: that is, that the highest reverence be paid to the highest
persons, and so still in proportion; and that this reverence be expressed in
all the circumstances and manners of the city and nation.
12. Lift not up thy hand against thy prince or
parent, upon what pretence soever; but bear all personal affronts and
inconveniences at their hands, and seek no remedy but by patience and piety,
yielding and praying, or absenting thyself.
13. Speak not evil of the ruler of thy people,
neither curse thy father or mother, nor revile thy spiritual guides, nor
discover and lay naked their infirmities; but treat them with reverence and
religion, and preserve their authority sacred, by esteeming their persons
venerable.
14. Pay tribute and customs to princes according
to the laws, and maintenance to thy parents according to their necessity, and
honourable support to the clergy according to the dignity of the work and the
customs of the place.
15. Remember always, that duty to our superiors
is not an act of commutative justice, but of distributive; that is, although
kings and parents and spiritual guides are to pay a great duty to their
inferiors, the duty of their several charges and government, yet the good
government of a king and of parents are actions of religion, as they relate to
God, and of piety, as they relate to their people and families. And although we
usually all them just princes who administer their laws exactly to the people,
because the actions are in the manner of justice, yet in propriety of speech,
they are rather to be called pious and religious. For as he is not called a
just father that educates his children well, but pious; so that prince who
defends and well rules his people is religious, and does that duty for which
alone he is answerable to God: the consequence of which is this, so far as
concerns our duty - if the prince or parent fail of their duty, we must not
fail of ours; for we are answerable to them and to God too, as being
accountable to all our superiors, and so are they to theirs: they are above us,
and God is above them.
1. Consider, that all authority descends from
God, and our superiors bear the image of the Divine power, which God imprints
on them as on an image of clay, or a coin upon a less perfect metal, which
whoso defaces shall not be answerable for the loss or spoil of the materials,
but the defacing the king's image; and in the same measure will God require it
at our hands, if we despise his authority, upon whomsoever he hath imprinted
it.
He that despiseth you, despiseth me. And Dathan
and Abiram were said to be `gathered together against the Lord.' And this was
St. Paul's argument for our obedience: `The powers that be are ordained of
God.'
2. There is very great peace and immunity from
sin in resigning our wills up to the command of others; for provided that our
duty to God be secured, their commands are warrants to us in all things else;
and the case of conscience is determined, if the command be evident and
pressing: and it is certain, the action that is but indifferent and without
reward, if done only upon our own choice, is an act of duty and of religion,
and rewardable by the grace and favour of God, if done in obedience to the
command of our superiors. For since naturally we desire what is forbidden us,
(and sometimes there is no other evil in the thing but that it is forbidden
us,) God hath in grace enjoined and proportionably accepts obedience, as being
directly opposed to the former irregularity; and it is acceptable, although
there be no other good in the thing that is commanded us but that it is
commanded.
3. By obedience we are made a society and a
republic, and distinguished from herds of beasts, and heaps of flies, who do
what they list, and are incapable of laws, and obey none; and therefore are
killed and destroyed, though never punished, and they never can have a
reward.
4. By obedience we are rendered capable of all
the blessings of government, signified by St. Paul in these words: "He is the
minister of God to thee for good;"[157] and
by St. Peter in these: "Governors are sent by him for the punishment of evil
doers and for the praise of them that do well."[158] And he that ever felt, or saw or can understand, the
miseries of confusion in public affairs, or amazement in a heap off side,
tumultuous, and indefinite thoughts, may from thence judge of the admirable
effects of order, and the beauty of government. What health is to the body, and
peace is to the spirit, that is government to the societies of men; the
greatest blessing which they can reveive in that temporal capacity.
5. No man shall ever be fit to govern others that
knows not first how to obey. For if the spirit of a subject be rebellious, in a
prince it will be tyrannical and intolerable; and of so ill example, that as it
will encourage the disobedience of others, so it will render it unreasonable
for him to exact of others what in the like case he refuses to pay.
6. There is no sin in the world which God hath
punished with so great severity and high detestation as this of disobedience.
For the crime of idolatry God sent the sword amongst his people; but it was
never heard that the earth opened and swallowed up any but rebels against their
prince.
7. Obedience is better than the particular
actions of religion; and he serves God better that follows his prince in lawful
services than he that refuses his command upon pretence he must go say his
prayers. But rebellion is compared to that sin which of all sin seems the most
unnatural and damned impiety, - ` Rebellion is as the sin of witchcraft.'
8. Obedience is a complicated act of virtue, and
many graces are exercised in one act of obedience. It is an act of humility, of
mortification and self denial, of charity to God, of care of the public, of
order and charity to ourselves and all our society, and a great instance of a
victory over the most refractory and unruly passions.
9. To be a subject is a greater temporal felicity
than to be a king: for all eminent governors according to their height, have a
great burden, huge care, infinite business, little rest, innumerable fears; and
all that he enjoys above another is, that he does enjoy the things of the world
with others go at his single command, it is also certain he must suffer
inconveniences at the needs and disturbances of all his people; and the evils
of one man and of one family are not enough for him to bear, unless also he be
almost crushed with the evils of mankind. He, therefore, is an ungrateful
person that will press the scales down with a voluntary load, and, by
disobedience, put more thorns into the crown or mitre of his superior. Much
better is the advice of St. Paul; "Obey them that have the rule over you, as
they that must give an account for your souls, that they may do it with joy and
not with grief; for (besides that it is unpleasant to them) it is unprofitable
for you."
10. The angels are ministering spirits, and
perpetually execute the will and commandment of God: and all the wise men and
all the good men of the world are obedient to their governors; and the eternal
Son of God esteemed it his `meat and drink to do the will of his Father,' and
for his obedience alone obtained the greatest glory: and no man ever came to
perfection but by obedience; and thousands of saints have chosen such
institutions and manners of living, in which they might not choose their own
work, nor follow their own will, nor please themselves, but be accountable to
others, and subject to discipline, and obedient to command; as knowing this to
be the highway of the cross, the way that the King of sufferings and humility
did choose, and so became the King of glory.
11. No man ever perished who followed first the
will of God, and then the will of his superiors; but thousands have been damned
merely for following their own will, and relying upon their own judgments, and
choosing their own work, and doing their own fancies. For if we begin with
ourselves, whatsoever seems good in our eyes is most commonly displeasing in
the eyes of God.
12. The sin of rebellion, though it be a
spiritual sin, and imitable by devils, yet it is of that disorder,
unreasonableness, and impossibility, amongst intelligent spirits, that they
never murmured or mutinied in their lower stations against their superiors.
Nay, the good angels of an inferior order durst not revile a devil of a higher
order. This consideration, which I reckon to be most pressing in the discourses
of reason, and obliging next to the necessity of a Diving precept, we learn
from St. Jude, viii.9, `Likewise also these filthy dreamers despise dominion,
and speak evil of dignities. And yet Michael the archangel, when, contending
with the devil, he disputed about the body of Moses, durst not bring against
him a railing accusation.'
But because our superiors rule by their example,
by their word or law, and by the rod, therefore in proportion there are several
degrees and parts of obedience - several excellencies and degrees towards
perfection.
1. The first is the obedience of our outward
work: and this is all that human laws of themselves regard; for because man
cannot judge the heart, therefore it prescribes nothing to it: the public end
is served, not by good wishes, but by real and actual performances, and if a
man obeys against his will, he is not punishable by the laws.
2. The obedience of the will: and this is also
necessary in our obedience to human laws, not because man requires it for
himself, but because God commands it towards man; and if it, although man
cannot, yet God will demand an account. For we are to do it as to the Lord, and
not to men, and therefore we must do it willingly. But by this means our
obedience in private is secured against secret arts and subterfuges; and when
we can avoid the punishment, yet we shall not decline our duty, but serve man
for God's sake, that is, cheerfully, promptly, vigorously; for these are the
proper parts of willingness and choice.
3. The understanding must yield obedience in
general, though not in the particular instance, that is, we must be firmly
persuaded of the excellency of the obedience, though we be not bound, in all
cases, to think the particular law to be most prudent. But, in this, our rule
is plain enough. Our understanding ought to be inquisitive, whether the civil
constitution agree with our duty to God; but we are bound to inquire no
further: and therefore beyond this, although he who, having no obligation to
it, (as counsellors have,) inquires not at all into the wisdom or
reasonableness of the law, be not always the wisest man, yet he is ever the
best subject. For when he hath given up his understanding to his prince and
prelate, provided that his duty to God be secured by a precedent search, he
hath also, with the best and with all the instruments in the world, secured his
obedience to man.
_____________________
As God hath imprinted his authority in
several parts upon several estates of men, as princes, parents, spiritual
guides; so he hath also delegated and committed parts of his care and
providence unto them, that they may be instrumental in the conveying such
blessings which God knows we need, and which he intends should be the effects
of government. For since God governs all the world as a king, provides for us a
father, and is the great guide and conductor of our spirits as the head of the
church, and the great shepherd and the bishop of our souls, they who have
portions of these dignities have also their share of the administration: the
sum of all which is usually signified in these two words, governing and
feeding, and is particularly recited in these following rules:
1. Princes of the people, and all that have
legislative power, must provide useful and good laws for the defence of
property, for the encouragement of labour, for the safeguard of their persons,
for determining controversies, for reward of noble actions and excellent arts
and rare inventions, for promoting trade, and enriching their people.
2. In the making laws, princes must have regard
to the public dispositions, to the affections and disaffections of the people,
and must not introduce a law with public scandal and displeasure; but consider
the public benefit, and the present capacity of affairs, and general
inclinations of men's minds.[159] For he
that enforces a law upon a people against their first and public apprehensions,
tempts them to disobedience, and makes laws to become snares and hooks to catch
the people, and to enrich the treasury with the spoil and tears and cures of
the commonalty, and to multiply their mutiny and their sin.
3. Princes must provide, that the laws be duly
executed, for a good law without execution is like an unperformed promise: and
therefore they must be severe exactors of accounts from their delegates and
ministers of justice.
4. The severity of laws must be tempered with
dispensations, pardons, and remissions, according as the case shall alter, and
new necessities be introduced, or some singular accident shall happen, in which
the law would be unreasonable or intolerable, as to that particular. And thus
the people, with their importunity, prevailed against Saul in the case of
Jonathan, and obtained his pardon for breaking the law which his father made,
because his necessity forced him to taste honey; and his breaking the law, in
that case, did promote that service whose promotion was intended by the law.
5. Princes must be fathers of the people, and
provide such instances of gentleness, ease, wealth, and advantages, as may make
mutual confidence between them; and must fix their security under God in the
love of the people; which, therefore, they must, with all arts of sweetness,
remission, popularity, nobleness, and sincerity, endeavour to secure to
themselves.
6. Princes must not multiply public oaths without
great, eminent, and violent necessity; lest the security of the king become a
snare to the people, and they become false, when they see themselves suspected;
or impatient, when they are violently held fast: but the greater and more
useful caution is upon things than upon persons; and if security of kings can
be obtained otherwise, it is better that oaths should be the last refuge, and
when nothing else can be sufficient.
7. Let not the people be tempted with arguments
or disobey, by the imposition of great and unnecessary taxes: for that lost to
the son of Solomon the dominion of the ten tribes of Israel.
8. Princes must, in a special manner, be
guardians of pupils and widows, not suffering then persons to be oppressed, or
their estates imbeciled, or in any sense be exposed to the rapine of covetous
persons; but be provided for by just laws, and provident judges, and good
guardians, ever having an ear ready open to their just complaints, and a heart
full of pity, and one hand to support them, and the other to avenge them.
9. Princes must provide, that the laws may be so
administered that they be truly and really an ease to the people, not an
instrument of vexation: and therefore must be careful, that the shortest and
most equal ways of trials be appointed, fees moderated, and intricacies and
windings as much cut off as may be, lest injured persons be forced to perish
under the oppression, or under the law, in the injury, or in the suit. Laws are
like princes, those best and most beloved who are most easy of access.
10. Places of judicature ought, at no hand, to be
sold by pious princes, who remember themselves to be fathers of the people. For
they that buy the office will sell the act;[160] and they that, at any rate, will be judges, will not,
at any easy rate, do justice; and their bribery is less punishable, when
bribery opened the door by which they entered.
11. Ancient privileges, favours, customs, and
acts of grace, indulged by former kings to their people, must not, without high
reason and great necessities, be revoked by their successors, nor forfeitures
be exacted violently, nor penal laws urged rigorously, nor in light cases; nor
laws be multiplied without great need; nor vicious persons, which are publicly
and deservedly hated, be kept in defiance of popular desires; nor anything that
may unnecessarily make the yoke heavy and the affection light, that may
increase murmurs and lessen charity; always remembering, that the interest of
the prince and the people is so enfolded in a mutual embrace, that they cannot
be untwisted without pulling a limb off, or dissolving the bands and
conjunction of the whole body.
12. All princes must esteem themselves as much
bound by their word, by their grants, and by their promises, as the meanest of
their subjects are by the restraint and penalty of laws;[161] and although they are superior to the people, yet they
are not superior to their own voluntary concessions and engagements, their
promises and oaths, when once they are passed from them.
1. Princes in judgment and their delegate
judges must judge the causes of all persons uprightly and impartially, without
any personal consideration of the power of the mighty, or the bribe of the
rich, or the needs of the poor. For although the poor must fare no worse for
his poverty, yet, in justice, be must fare no better for it; and although the
rich must be no more regarded, yet he must not be less. And to this purpose the
tutor of Cyrus instructed him, when in a controversy, where a great boy would
have taken a large coat from a little boy, because his own was too little for
him, and the other's was too big, he adjudged the great coat to the great boy:
his tutor answered, "Sir, if you were made to judge of decency or fitness, you
had judged well in giving the biggest to the biggest; but when you are
appointed judge, not whom the coat did fit, but whose it was, you should have
considered the title and the possession, who did the violence, and who made it,
or who bought it." And so it must be in judgments between the rich and the
poor: it is not to be considered what the poor man needs, but what is his
own.
2. A prince may not, much less may inferior
judges, deny justice, when it is legally and competently demanded: and if the
prince will use his prerogative in pardoning an offender, against whom justice
is required, he must be careful to give satisfaction to the injured person, or
his relatives, by some other instrument; and be watchful to take away the
scandal, that is, lest such indulgence might make persons more bold to do
injury: and if he spares the life, let him change the punishment into that
which may make the offender, if not suffer justice, yet do justice, and more
real advantage to the injured person.
These rules concern princes and their delegates
in the making or administering laws, in the appointing rules of justice, and
doing acts of judgment. The duty of parents to their children and nephews is
briefly described by St. Paul.
1. `Fathers, provoke not your children to
wrath:'[162] that is, be tender-bowelled,
pitiful, and gentle, complying with all the infirmities of the children, and,
in their several ages, proportioning to them several usages, according to their
needs and their capacities.
2. `Bring them up in the nurture and admonition
of the Lord:' that is, secure their religion; season their younger years with
prudent and pious principles; make them in love with virtue; and make them
habitually so, before they come to choose or to discern good from evil, that
their choice or to discern good from evil, that their choice may be with less
difficulty and danger. For while they are under discipline, they suck in all
that they are first taught, and believe it infinitely. Provide for them wise,
learned, and virtuous tutors, and good company and discipline, seasonable
baptism, catechism, and confirmation.[163] For it is great folly to heap up much wealth
for our children, and not to take care concerning the children for whom we get
it: it is as if a man should take more care about his shoe than about his
foot.
3. Parents must show piety at home;[164] that is, they must give good example and
reverend deportment in the face of their children; and all those instances of
charity, which usually endear each other - sweetness of conversation,
affability, frequent admonitions, all significations of love and tenderness,
care and watchfulness - must be expressed towards children, that they may look
upon their parents as their friends and patrons, their defence and sanctuary,
their treasuer and their guide. Hither is to be reduced the nursing of
children, which is the first and most natural and necessary instance of piety
which mothers can show to their babes; a duty from which nothing will excuse,
but a disability, sickness, danger, or public necessity.
4. Parents must provide for their own, according
to their condition, education and employment: called by St. Paul, `a laying up
for the children;'[165] that is, an enabling
them, by competent portions, or good trades, arts, or learning, to defend
themselves against the chances of the world, that they may not be exposed to
temptation, to beggary, or unworthy arts. And although this must be done
without covetousness, without impatient and greedy desires of making them rich;
yet it must be done with much care and great affection, with all reasonable
provision, and according to our power: and if we can, without sin, improve our
estates for them, that also is part of the duty we owe to God for them. And
this rule is to extend to all that descend from us, although we have been
overtaken in a fault, and have unlawful issue; they also become part of our
care, yet so as not to injure the production of the lawful bed.
5. This duty is to extend to a provision of
conditions and an estate of life.[166]
Parents must, according to their power and reason, provide husbands or wives
for their children.[167] In which they must
secure piety and religion,[168] and the
affection and love of the interested persons; and after these let them make
what provisions they can for other conveniences or advantages; ever remembering
that they can do no injury more afflictive to the children than to join them
with cords of a disagreeing affection; it is like tying a wolf and a lamb, or
planting a vine in a garden of coleworts. Let them be persuaded with reasonable
inducements to make them willing, and to choose according to the parent's wish;
but at no hand let them be forced. Better to sit up all night than to go to bed
with a dragon.
1. Husbands must give to their wives love,[169] maintenance, duty, and the sweetnesses of
conversation; and wives must pay to them all they have or can, with the
interest of obedience and reverence: and they must be complicated in affections
and interest, that there must be no distinction between them of mine and thine.
And if the title be the man's or the woman's, yet the use is to be common; only
the wisdom of the man is a regulate all extravagances and indiscretions. In
other things no question is to be made; and their goods should be as their
children, not to be divided, but of one possession and provision: whatsoever is
otherwise is not marriage but merchandise. And upon this ground I suppose it
was, that St. Basil commended that woman who took part of her husband's good to
do good works withal:[170] for supposing him
to be unwilling, and that the work was his duty or here alone, or both theirs
in conjunction, or of great advantage to either of their souls, and no violence
to the support of their families, she had right to all that: and Abigail, of
her own right, made a costly present to David when her husband Nabal had
refused it. The husband must[171] rule over
his wife, as the soul does over the body, obnoxious to the same sufferings, and
bound by the same affections, and doing or suffering by the permissions and
interest of each other: that (as the old philosopher said) as the humours of
the body are mingled with each other in the whole substances, so marriage may
be a mixture of interests, of bodies, of minds, of friends, a conjunction[172] of the whole life, and the noblest of
friendships. But if, after all the fair deportments and innocent chaste
compliances, the husband be morose and ungentle, let the wife discourse thus:
"If while I do my duty, my husband neglects me, what will he do if I neglect
him?" And if she things to be separated by reason of her husband's unchaste
life, let her consider, that then the man will be incurable ruined, and her
rivals could wish nothing more than that they might possess him alone.
1. The same care is to extend to all of our
family, in their proportions, as to our children: for as, by St. Paul's
economy, the heir differs nothing from a servant, while he is in minority, so a
servant should differ nothing from a child, in the substantial part of the
care; and the difference is only in degrees. Servants and masters are of the
same kindred, of the same nature, and heirs of the same promises, and
therefore, 1. must be provided of necessaries, for their support and
maintenance. 2. They must be used with mercy. 3. Their work must be tolerable
and merciful. 4. Their restraints must be reasonable. 5. Their recreations
fitting and healthful. 6. Their religion and the interest of souls taken care
of. 7. And masters must correct their servants with gentleness, prudence, and
mercy; not for every slight fault, not always, not with upbraiding and
disgraceful language, but with such only as may express and reprove the fault,
and amend the person. But in all these things measures are to be taken by the
contract made, by the laws and customs of the place, by the sentence of prudent
and merciful men, and by the cautions and remembrances given us by God; such as
is that written by St. Paul, `as knowing that we also have a Master in heaven.'
The master must not be a lion in his house, lest his power be obeyed, and his
person hated; his eye be waited on, and his business be neglected in secret. No
servant will do his duty, unless he make a conscience, or love his master: if
he does it not for God's sake or his master's, he will not need to do it always
for his own.
Tutors and guardians are in the place of
parents; and what they are in fiction of law, they must remember as an argument
to engage them do do in reality of duty. They must do all the duty of parents,
excepting those obligations which are merely natural.
*The duty of ministers and spiritual guides to
the people is of so great burden, so various rules, so intricate and busy
caution, that it requires a distinct tractate by itself.
__________________________
This part of justice is such as depends upon
the laws of man directly, and upon the laws of God only by consequence and
indirect reason; and from civil laws or private agreements it is to take its
estimate and measures: and although our duty is plain and easy, requiring of us
honesty in contracts sincerity in affirming, simplicity in bargaining, and
faithfulness in performing, yet it may be helped by the addition of these
following rules and considerations.
1. In making contracts, use not many words;
for all the business of a bargain is summed up in few sentences: and he that
speaks least means fairest as having fewer opportunities or deceive.
2. Lie not at all, neither in a little thing nor
in a great, neither in the substance nor in the circumstance, neither in word
nor deed: that is, pretend not what is false, cover not what is true: and let
the measure of your affirmation or denial be the understanding of your
contractor; for he that deceives the buyer or the seller by speaking what is
true in a sense not intended or understood by the other, is a liar and a thief.
For in bargains you are to avoid not only what is false, but that also which
deceives.
3. In prices of bargaining concerning uncertain
merchandises, you may buy as cheap ordinarily, as you can; and sell as dear as
you can, so it be, 1. without violence; and, 2. when you contract on equal
terms with persons in all senses (as to the matter and skill of bargaining)
equal to yourself, that is, merchants with merchants, wise men with wise men,
rich with rich; and, 3. when there is no deceit, and no necessity and no
monopoly: for in these cases, viz. when the contractors are equal, and no
advantage on either side, both parties are voluntary, and therefore there can
be no injustive or wrong to either. But then add also this consideration, that
the public be not oppressed by unreasonable and unjust rates: for which the
following rules are the best measure.
4. Let your prices be according to that measure
of good and evil which is established in the fame and common accounts of the
wisest and most merciful men, skilled in that manufacture or commodity; and be
gain such which, without scandal, is allowed to persons in all the same
circumstances.
5. Let no prices be heightened by the necessity
or unskilfulness of the contractor: for the first is direct uncharitableness to
the person, and injustice in the thing; because the man's necessity could not
naturally enter into the consideration of the value of the commodity; and the
other is deceit and oppression: much less must any man make necessities; as by
engrossing a commodity, by monopoly, by detaining corn, or the like indirect
arts; for such persons are unjust to all single persons, with whom, in such
cases, they contract, and oppressors of the public.
6. In intercourse with others, do not do all
which you may lawfully do: but keep something within thy power: and, because
there is a latitude of gain in buying and selling, take not thou the utmost
penny that is lawful, or which thou thinkest so; for although it be lawful, yet
it is not safe; and he that gains all that he can gain lawfully this year,
possibly next year will be tempted to gain something unlawfully.
7. He that sells dearer, by reason he sells not
for ready money, must increase his price no higher than to make himself
recompense for the loss which, according to the rules of trade, he sustained by
his forbearance, according to common computation, reckoning in also the hazard,
which he is prudently, warily, and charitably to estimate. But although this be
the measure of his justice, yet because it happens either to their friends, or
to necessitous and poor persons, they are, in these cases to consider the rules
of friendship and neighbourhood, and the obligations of charity, lest justice
turn into unmercifulness.
8. No man is to be raised in his price or rents
in regard of any accident, advantage, or disadvantage of his person.[173] A prince must be used conscionably as
well as a common person, and a beggar be treated justly as well as a prince:
with this only difference, that, to poor persons, the utmost measure and extent
of justice is unmerciful, which, to a rich person, is innocent, because it is
just; and he needs not thy mercy and remission.
9. Let no man, for his own poverty, become more
oppressing and cruel in his bargain, but quietly, modestly, diligently, and
patiently, recommend his estate to God, and follow its interest and leave the
success to him: for such courses will more probably advance his trade; they
will certainly procure him a blessing and a recompense; and, if they cure not
his poverty, they will take away the evil of it: and there is nothing else in
it that can trouble him.
10. Detain not the wages of the hireling, for
every degree of detention of it beyond the time is injustice and
uncharitableness, and grinds his face, till tears and blood come out, but pay
him exactly according to covenant, or according to his needs.
11. Religiously keep all promises and covenants,
though made to your disadvantage, though afterwards you perceive you might have
done better; and let not any precedent act of yours be altered by any
after-accident. Let nothing make you break your promise, unless it be unlawful,
or impossible: that is, either out of your natural, or out of your civil power,
yourself being under the power of another; or that it be intolerably
inconvenient to yourself, and of no advantage to another; or that you have
leave expressed, or reasonably presumed.[174]
12. Let no man take wages or fees for a work that
he cannot do, or cannot with probability undertake, or in some sense
profitably, and with ease, or with advantage manage. Physicians must not meddle
with desperate diseases, and known to be incurable, without declaring their
sense before hand; that if the patient please, he may entertain him at
adventure, or to do him some little ease. Advocates must deal plainly with
their clients, and tell them the true state and danger of their case; and must
not pretend confidence in an evil cause: but when he hath so cleared his own
innocence, if the client will have collateral and legal advantages obtained by
his industry, he may engage his endeavour, provided he do no injury to the
right cause, or any man's person.
13. Let no man appropriate to his own use what
God, by a special mercy, or the republic, hath made common;[175] for that is both against justice and charity too; and
by miraculous accidents, God hath declared his displeasure against such
enclosure. When the kings of Naples enclosed the gardens of Cenotria, where the
best manna of Calabria descends, that no man might gather it without paying
tribute, the manna ceased till the tribute was taken off, and then it came
again; and so, when after the third trial, the princes found they could not
have that in proper which God made to be common, they left it as free as God
gave it. The like happened in Epire; when Lysimachus laid an impost upon the
Tragasaean salt, it vanished, till Lysimachus left it public.[176] And when the procurators of king Antigonus imposed a
rate upon the sick people that came to Edepsum to drink the waters which were
lately sprung, and were very healthful, instantly the waters dried up, and the
hope of gain perished.
The sum of all is in these words of St. Paul,
"let no man go beyond and defraud his brother, in any matter; because the Lord
is the avenger of all sueth.[177] And our
blessed Saviour, in enumerating the duties of justice, besides the commandment
of `Do not steal,' adds, [178] Defraud not,,
forbidding (as a distinct explication of the old law) the tacit and secret
theft of abusing our brother in civil contracts. And it needs no other
arguments to enforce this caution, but only that the Lord hath undertaken to
avenge all such persons. And as he always does it in the great day of
recompenses, so very often he does it here, by making the unclean portion of
injustice to be as a canker-worm eating up all the other increase: it procures
beggary, and a declining estate, or a caitiff cursed spirit, an ill name, the
curse of the injured and oppressed person, and a fool or a prodigal to be his
heir.
Restitution is that part of justice to which
a man is obliged by a precedent contract, or a foregoing fault, by his own act
or another man's, either with or without his will. He that borrows is bound to
pay, and much more he that steals or cheats.[179] For if he that borrows, and pays not when he is able,
be an unjust person and a robber, because he possesses another man's goods to
the right owner's prejudice, then he that took them at first without leave is
the same thing in every instant of his possession which the debtor is after the
time in which he should, and could, have made payment. For, in all sins, we are
to distinguish the transient or passing act from the remaining effect or evil.
The act of stealing was soon over, and cannot be undone; and for it the sinner
is only answerable to God, or his vicegerent; and he is, in a particular
manner, appointed to expiate it by suffering punishment, and repenting, and
asking pardon, and judging and condemning himself, doing acts of justice and
charity, in opposition and contradiction to that evil action. But because, in
the case of stealing, there is an injury done to our neighbour, and the evil
still remains after the action is past, therefore for this we are accountable
to our neighbour, and we are to take the evil off from him which we brought
upon him; or else he is an injured person and a sufferer all the while; and
that any man should be the worse for me, and my direct act, and by my
intention, is against the rule of equity, of justice, and of charity; [180] I do not that to others which I would
have done to myself, for I grow richer upon the ruins of his fortune. Upon this
ground it is a determined rule in divinity, "Our sin can never be pardoned till
we have restored what we unjustly took, or wrongfully detained:" restored it (I
mean) actually, or in purpose and desire, which we must really perform, when we
can. And this doctrine, besides its evident and apparent reasonableness, is
derived from the express words of Scripture, reckoning restitution to be a part
of repentance, necessary in order to the remission of our sins. `If the wicked
restore the pledge, give again that he had robbed, etc., he shall surely live,
he shall not die.'[181] The practice of this
part of justice is to be directed by the following rules:--
1. Whosoever is an effective real cause of
doing his neighbour wrong, by what instrument soever he does it, (whether by
commanding or encouraging it, by counselling or commending it,[182] by acting it, or not hindering it, when he might, and
ought, by concealing it, or receiving it,) is bound to make restitution to his
neighbour; if, without him, the injury had not been done, but, by him or his
assistance, it was. For, by the same reason that every one of these is guilty
of the sin, and is cause of the injury, by the same they are bound to make
reparation; because by him his neighbour is made worse, and therefore is to be
put into that state from whence he was forced. And suppose that thou hast
persuaded an injury to be done to thy neighbour, which, others would have
persuaded if thou hadst not, yet thou art still obliged, because thou really
didst cause the injury, just as they had been obliged, if they had done it; and
thou art not at all the less bound, by having persons as ill-inclined as thou
wert.
2. He that commanded the injury to be done is
first bound; then he that did it; and, after these they also are obliged who
did so assist, as without them the thing would not have been done. If
satisfaction be made by any of the former, the latter is tied to repentance,
but no restitution; but if the injured person be not righted, every one of them
is wholly guilty of the injustice, and therefore bound to restitution, singly
and entirely.
3. Whosoever intends a little injury to his
neighbour, and acts it, and by a greater evil accidentally comes, he is obliged
to make an entire reparation of all the injury of that which he intended, and
of that which he intended not, but yet acted by his own instrument going
further than he at first purposed it.[183]
He that set fire on a plane-tree to spite his neighbour, and the plane-tree set
fire on his neighbour's house, is bound to pay for all the loss, because it did
all rise from his own ill-intention. It is like murder committed by a drunken
person, involuntary in some of the effect, but voluntary in the other parts of
it, and in all the cause; and therefore the guilty person is answerable for all
of it. And when Ariarathes, the Cappadocian king, had but in wantonness stopped
the mouth of the river Melanus, although he intended no evil, yet Euphrates
being swelled by that means, and bearing away some of the strand of Cappadocia,
did great spoil to the Phrygians and Galatians; he, therefore, by the Roman
senate, was condemned in three hundred talents, towards the reparation of the
damage. Much rather, therefore, when the lesser part of the evil was directly
intended.
4. He that hinders a charitable person from
giving alms to a poor man is tied to restitution if he hindered him by fraud or
violence, because it was a right which the poor man had, when the good man had
designed and resolved it, and the fraud or violence hinders the effect but not
the purpose; and therefore he who used the deceit or the force is injurious,
and did damage to the poor man. But if the alms were hindered only by entreaty
the hinderer is not tied to restitution, because entreaty took not liberty away
from the giver, but left him still master of his own act, and he had power to
alter his purpose, and so long there was no injustice done.[184] The same is the case of a testator giving a legacy,
either by kindness, or by promise, and common right. He that hinders the
charitable legacy by fraud or violence, or the due legacy by entreaty, is
equally obliged to restitution. The reason of the latter part of this case is
because he that entreats or persuades to a sin, is as guilty as he that acts
it; and if, without his persuasion, the sin and the injury would not be acted,
he is in his kind the entire cause, and therefore obliged to repair the injury
as much as the person that does the wrong immediately.
5. He that refuses to do any part of his duty (to
which he is otherwise obliged) without a bribe, is bound to restore that money,
because he took it in his neighbour's wrong, and not as a salary for his
labour, or a reward for his wisdom, (for his stipend hath paid all that,) or he
hath obliged himself to do it by his voluntary undertaking.
6. He that takes anything from his neighbour
which was justly forfeited, but yet takes it not as a minister of justice, but
to satisfy his own revenge or avarice, is tied to repentance, but not to
restitution. For my neighbour is not the worse for my act, for thither the law
and his own demerits bore him; but because I took the forfeiture indirectly I
am answerable to God for my unhandsome, unjust, or uncharitable circumstances.
Thus Philip of Macedon was reproved by Aristides for destroying the Phoeenses,
because, although they deserved it, yet he did it not in prosecution of the law
of nations, but to enlarge his own dominions.
7. The heir of an obliged person is not bound to
make restitution if the obligation passed only by a personal act; but if it
passed from his person to his estate, then the estate passes with all its
burden. If the father, by persuading his neighbour to do injustice, be bound to
restore, the action is extinguished by the death of the father, because it was
only the father's sin that bound him, which cannot directly bind the son;
therefore the son is free. And this is so in all personal actions, unless where
the civil law interposes and alters the case.
*These rules concern the persons that are obliged
to make restitution; the other circumstances of it are thus described.
8. He that by fact, or word, or sign, either
fraudulently or violently, does hurt to his neighbour's body, life, goods, good
name, friends, or soul, is bound to make restitution in the several instances,
according as they are capable to be made. In all these instances we must
separate entreaty and enticements from deceit or violence. If I persuade my
neighbour to commit adultery, I still leave him or her in their own power, and
though I am answerable to God for my sin, yet not to my neighbour. For I made
her to be willing, yet she was willing,[185]
that is, the same at last as I was at first. But if I have used fraud, and made
her to believe a lie,[186] upon which
confidence she did the act, and without she would not, (as if I tell a woman
her husband id dead, or intended to kill her, or is himself an adulterous man,)
or if I use violence, that is, either force her or threaten her with death or a
grievous wound, or anything that takes her from the liberty of her choice, I am
bound to restitution; that is, to restore her to a right understanding of
things and to a full liberty, by taking from her the deceit or the violence.
9. An adulterous person is tied to restitution of
the injury, so far as it is reparable, and can be made to the wronged person;
that is, to make provision for the children begotten in unlawful embraces, that
they may do no injury to the legitimate by receiving a common portion; and if
the injured person do account of it, he must satisfy him with money for the
wrong done to his bed. He is not tied to offer this, because it is no proper
exchange, but he is bound to pay it if it be reasonably demanded; for every man
hath justice done when himself is satisfied, though by a word, or an action, or
a penny.
10. He that hath killed a man is bound to
restitution, by allowing such a maintenance to the children and near relatives
of the deceased as they have lost by his death, considering and allowing for
all circumstances of the man's age, and health, and probability of living. And
thus Hercules is said to have made expiation for the death of Iphitus, whom he
slew, by paying a lulct to his children.
11. He that hath really lessened the fame of his
neighbour by fraud or violence is bound to restore it by its proper
instruments; such as are confession of his fault, giving testimony of his
innocence or worth, doing him honour, or (if that will do it, and both parties
agree) by money, which answers all things.[187]
12. He that hath wounded his neighbour is tied to
the expenses of the surgeon and other incidences, and to repair whatever loss
he sustains by his disability to work or trade; and the same is in the case of
false imprisonment, in which cases only the real effect and remaining detriment
are to be mended and repaired, for the action itself is to be punished or
repented of, and enters not into the question of restitution. But in these and
all other cases, the injured person is to be restored to that perfect and good
condition from which he was removed by my fraud or violence, so far as is
possible. Thus a ravisher must repair the temporal detriment or injury done to
the maid, and give her a dowry, or marry her if she desire it. For this
restores her into that capacity of being a good wife, which by the injury was
lost, as far as it can be done.
13. He that robbeth his neighbour of his goods,
or detains anything violently or fraudulently, is bound not only to restore the
principal, but all its fruits and emoluments, which would have accrued to the
right owner during the time of their being detained. By proportion to these
rules we may judge of the obligation that lies upon all sorts of injurious
persons; the sacrilegious, the detainers of tithes, cheaters of men's
inheritances, unjust judges, false witnesses, and accusers; those that do
fraudulently or violently bring men to sin, that force men to drink, that laugh
at and disgrace virtue, that persuade servants to run away or commend such
purposes; violent persecutors of religion in any instance; and all of the same
nature.
14. He that hath wronged so many, or in that
manner (as in the way of daily trade) that he knows not in what measure he hath
done it, or who they are, must redeem his fault by alms and dargesses to the
poor, according to the value of his wrongful dealing, as near as he can
proportion it. Better it is to go begging to heaven, than to go to hell laden
with the spoils of rapine and injustice.
15. The order of paying the debts of contract or
restitution is, in some instances, set down by the civil laws of a kingdom, in
which cases their rule is to be observed. In destitution, or want of such
rules, we are, 1. to observe the necessity of the creditor; 2. then the time of
the delay; and, 3. the special obligations of friendship or kindness; and,
according to these, in their several degrees, make our restitution, if we be
not able to do all that we should; but, if we be, the best rule is to do it so
soon as we can, taking our accounts in this, as in our human actions, according
to prudence, and civil or natural conveniences or possibilities, only securing
these two things; 1. that the duty be not wholly omitted; and, 2. that it be
not deferred at all out of covetousness, or any other principle that is
vicious. Remember that the same day in which Zaccheus made restitution to all
whom he had injured, the same day Christ himself, pronounced that salvation was
come to his house.[188]
16. But besides the obligation arising from
contract or default, there is one of another sort which comes from kindness,
and the acts of charity and friendship.[189]
He that does me a favour hath bound me to make him a return of thankfulness.
The obligation comes not by covenant, not by his own express intention, but by
the nature of the thing, and is a duty springing up within the spirit of the
obliged person, to whom it is more natural to love his friend, and to do good
for good, than to return evil for evil, because a man may forgive an injury,
but he must never forget a good turn. For everything that is excellent, and
everything that is profitable, whatsoever is good in itself, or good to me,
cannot but be beloved; and what we love we naturally cherish and do good to.
He, therefore, that refuses to do good to them whom he is bound to love, or to
love that which did him good, is unnatural and monstrous in his affections, and
thinks all the world born to minister to him with a greediness worse than that
of the sea, which, although it receives all rivers into itself, yet it
furnishes the clouds and springs with a return of all they need.
Our duty to benefactors is to esteem and love
their persons, to make them proportionable returns of service, or duty, or
profit, according as we can, or as they need, or as opportunity presents
itself, and according to the greatness of their kindness, and to pray to God to
make them recompense for all the good they have done to us; which last office
is also requisite to be done for our creditors, who, in charity, have relieved
our wants.
PRAYERS
TO BE SAID IN RELATION TO THE SEVERAL OBLIGATIONS AND OFFICES OF JUSTICE.
O eternal God, great ruler of men and angels, who hast constituted all things
in a wonderful order, making all the creatures subject to man, and one man to
another, and all to thee, the last link of this admirable chain being fastened
to the foot of thy throne; teach me to obey all those whom thou hast set over
me, reverencing their persons, submitting indifferently to all their lawful
commands, cheerfully undergoing those burdens which the public wisdom and
necessity shall impose upon me, at no hand murmuring against government, lest
the spirit of pride and mutiny, of murmur and disorder, enter into me, and
consign me to the portion of the disobedient and rebellious, of the despisers
of dominion, and revilers of dignity. Grant this, O holy God, for his sake,
who, for his obedience to the Father, hath obtained the glorification of
eternal ages, our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ. Amen.
*Prayers for kings and all magistrates, for
our parents, spiritual and natural, are in the following litanies, at the end
of the fourth chapter.
I.
O eternal God, thou alone rulest in the kingdoms of men; thou art the great God
of battles and recompenses; and by thy glorious wisdom, by thy almighty power,
and by thy secret providence, dost determine the events of war, and the issues
of human counsels, and the returns of peace and victory: now at last be pleased
to let the light of thy countenance, and the effects of a glorious mercy and a
gracious pardon, return to this land. Thou seest how great evils we suffer
under the power and tyranny of war, and although we submit to and adore thy
justice in our sufferings, yet be pleased to pity our misery, to hear our
complaints, and to provide us of remedy against our present calamities; let not
the defenders of a righteous cause go away ashamed, nor our counsels be for
ever confounded, nor our parties defeated, nor religion suppressed, nor
learning discountenanced, and we be spoiled of all the exterior ornaments,
instruments, and advantages of piety, which thou hast been pleased formerly to
minister to our infirmities, for the interests of learning and religion. Amen.
II.
We confess, dear God, that we have deserved to be totally extinct and separate
from the communion of saints and the comforts of religion, to be made servants
of ignorant, unjust, and inferior persons, or to suffer any other calamity
which thou shalt allot us as the instrument of thy anger, whom we have so often
provoked to wrath and jealousy. Lord, we humbly lie down under the burden of
thy rod, begging of thee to remember our infirmities, and no more to remember
our sins, to support us with thy staff, to lift us up with thy hand, to refresh
us with thy gracious eye; and if a sad cloud of temporal infelicities must
still encircle us, open unto us the window of heaven, that, with an eye of
faith and hope, we may see beyond the cloud, looking upon those mercies which,
in thy secret providence and admirable wisdom, thou designest to all thy
servants from such unlikely and sad beginnings. Teach us diligently to do all
our duty, and cheerfully to submit to all thy will; and, at last, be gracious
to thy people that call upon thee, that put their trust in thee, that have laid
up all their hopes in the bosom of God, that, besides thee, have no helper.
Amen.
III.
Place a guard of angels about the person of the king, and immure him with the
defence of thy right hand, that no unhallowed arm may do violence to him.
Support him with aids from heaven in all his battles, trials, and dangers, that
he may, in every instant of his temptation, become dearer to thee; and do thou
return to him with mercy and deliverance. Give unto him the hearts of all his
people, and put into his hand a prevailing rod of iron, a sceptre of power, and
a sword of justice; and enable him to defend and comfort the churches under his
protection.
IV.
Bless all his friends, relatives, confederates, and lieges, direct their
counsels, unite their hearts, strengthen their hands, bless their actions. Give
unto them holiness of intention, that they may, with much candour and
ingenuity, pursue the cause of God and the king. Sanctify all the means and
instruments of their purposes, that they may not with cruelty, injustice, or
oppression, proceed towards the end of their just desires; and do thou crown
all their endeavours with a prosperous event, that all may co-operate to, and
actually produce, those great mercies which we bed of thee - honour and safety
to our sovereign, defence of his just rights, peace to his people,
establishment and promotion to religion, advantages and encouragement to
learning and holy living, deliverance to all the oppressed, and comfort to all
thy faithful people. Grant this, O King of kings, for his sake, by whom thou
hast consigned us to all thy mercies and promises, and to whom thou hast given
all power in heaven and earth, our Lord and Saviour Jesus Christ. Amen.
A Prayer to be said by Kings or Magistrates for themselves and their People.
O my God and King, thou rulest in the kingdoms of men; by thee kings reign, and
princes decree justice; thou hast appointed me under thyself (and under my
prince[190] ) to govern this
portion of thy church, according to the laws of religion and the commonwealth.
O Lord, I am but an infirm man, and know not how to decree certain sentences
without erring in judgment; but do thou give to thy servant an understanding
heart to judge this people, that I may discern between good and evil. Cause me
to walk, before thee and all the people, in truth and righteousness, and in
sincerity of heart, that I may not regard the person of the mighty, nor be
afraid of his terror, nor despise the person of the poor, and reject his
petition; but that, doing justice to all men, I and my people may receive mercy
of thee, peace and plenty in our days, and mutual love, duty, and
correspondence; that there be no leading into captivity, no complaining in our
streets, but we may see the church in prosperity all our days, and religion
established and increasing. Do thou establish the house of thy servant, and
bring me to a participation of the glories of thy kingdom, for his sake, who is
my Lord and King, the holy and ever blessed Saviour of the world, our Redeemer,
Jesus. Amen.
A Prayer to be said by Parents for their Children.
O almighty and most merciful Father, who hast promised children as a reward to
the righteous, and hast given them to me as a testimony of thy mercy, and an
engagement of my duty, be pleased to be a Father unto them, and give them
healthful bodies, understanding souls, and sanctified spirits, that they may be
thy servants and thy children all their days. Let a great mercy and providence
lead them through the dangers and temptations and ignorances of their youth,
that they may never run into folly and the evils of an unbridled appetite. So
order the accidents of their lives, that by good education, careful tutors,
holy example, innocent company, prudent counsel, and thy restraining grace,
their duty to thee may be secured in the midst of a crooked and untoward
generation; and if it seem good in thy eyes, let me be enabled to provide
conveniently for the support of their persons, that they may not be destitute
and miserable in my death; or if thou shalt call me off from this world by a
more timely summons, let their portion be, thy care, mercy, and providence over
their bodies and souls; and may they never live vicious lives, nor die violent
or untimely deaths; but let them glorify thee here with a free obedience, and
the duties of a whole life, that when they have served thee in their
generations, and have profited the Christian commonwealth, they may be coheirs
with Jesus in the glories of thy eternal kingdom, through the same our Lord
Jesus Christ. Amen.
A Prayer to be said by Masters of Families, Curates, Tutors, or other obliged
Persons, for their Charges.
O eternal God, thou fountain of justice, mercy, and benediction, who, by my
education and other effects of thy providence, hast called me to this
profession, that, by my industry, I may, in my small proportion, work together
for the good of myself and others, I humbly beg thy grace to guide me in my
intention, and in the transaction of my affairs, that I may be diligent, just,
and faithful; and give me thy favour, that this my labour may be accepted by
thee as a part of my necessary duty; and give me thy blessing to assist and
prosper me in my calling to such measures as thou shalt, in mercy, choose for
me; and be pleased to let thy Holy Spirit be for ever present with me, that I
may never be given to covetousness and sordid appetites, to lying and
falsehood, or any other base, indirect, and beggarly arts; but give me
prudence, honesty, and Christian sincerity, that my trade may be sanctified by
my religion, by labour, by my intention and thy blessing, that when I have done
my portion of work thou hast allotted me, and improved the talent thou hast
entrusted to me, and served the commonwealth in my capacity, I may receive the
mighty price of my high calling, which I expect and beg, in the portion and
inheritance of the ever-blessed Saviour and Redeemer, Jesus. Amen.
A Prayer to be said by Debtors, and all Persons obliged, whether by Crime or
Contract.
O almighty God, who art rich unto all, the treasury and fountain of all good,
of all justice, and all mercy, and all bounty, to whom we owe all that we are,
and all that we have, being thy debtors by reason of our sins, and by thy own
gracious contract made with us in Jesus Christ; teach me, in the first place to
perform all my obligations to thee, both of duty and thankfulness; and next,
enable me to pay my duty to all my friends, and my debts to all my creditors,
that none be made miserable or lessened in his estate by his kindness to me, or
traffic with me. Forgive me all those sins and irregular actions by which I
entered into debt further than my necessity required, or by which such
necessity was brought upon me; but let not them suffer by occasion of my sin.
Lord, reward all their kindness into their bosoms, and make them recompense
where I cannot, and make me very willing in all that I can, and able for all
that I am obliged to; or, if it seem good in thine eyes to afflict me by the
continuance of this condition, yet make it up by some means to them, that the
prayer of thy servant may obtain of thee, at least, to pay my debt in
blessings. Amen.
V.
Lord, sanctify and forgive all that I have tempted to evil by my discourse or
my example, instruct them in the right way whom I have led to error, and let me
never run further on the score of sin; but do thou blot out all the evils I
have done by the sponge of thy passion, and the blood of thy cross, and give me
a deep and an excellent repentance, and a free and a gracious pardon, that thou
mayest answer for me, O Lord, and enable me to stand upright in judgment; for
in thee, O Lord, have I trusted, let me never be confounded. Pity me and
instruct me, guide me and support me, pardon me and save me, for my sweet
Saviour Jesus Christ's sake. Amen.
A Prayer for Patron and Benefactors.
O mighty God, thou fountain of all good, of all excellency both to men and
angels, extend thine abundant favour and loving-kindness to my patron, to all
my friends and benefactors; reward them and make them plentiful recompense for
all the good which from thy merciful providence they have conveyed unto me. Let
the light of thy countenance shine upon them, and let them never come into any
affliction or sadness, but such as may be an instrument of thy glory and their
eternal comfort. Forgive them all their sins; let thy divinest Spirit preserve
them from all deeds of darkness; let thy ministering angels guard their persons
from the violence of the spirits of darkness. And thou who knowest every degree
of their necessity by thy infinite wisdom, give supply to all their needs by
thy glorious mercy, preserving their persons, sanctifying their hearts, and
leading them in the ways of righteousness, by the waters of comfort, to the
land of eternal rest and glory, through Jesus Christ our Lord. Amen.
OF CHRISTIAN RELIGION.
Religion, in a large sense, doth signify the whole duty of man, comprehending
in it justice, charity, and sobriety; because all these being commanded by God,
they become a part of that honour and worship which we are bound to pay to him.
And thus the word is used in St. James, `Pure religion and undefiled before God
and the Father in this, to visit the fatherless and widows in their affliction,
and to keep himself unspotted from the world.[191] But, in a more restrained sense, it is taken for that
part of duty which particularly relates to God in our worshippings and
adoration of him, in confessing his excellencies, loving his person, admiring
his goodness, believing his word, and doing all that which may, in a proper and
direct manner, do him honour. It contains the duties of the first table only,
and so it is called godliness,[192] and is
by St. Paul distinguished from justice and sobriety. In this sense I am now to
explicate the parts of it.
Those I call the internal actions of
religion, in which the soul only is employed, and ministers to God in the
special actions of faith, hope, and charity. Faith believes the revelations of
God, hope expects his promises, and charity loves his excellencies and mercies.
Faith gives us understanding to God, hope gives up all the passions and
affections to heaven and heavenly things, and charity gives the will to the
service of God. Faith is opposed to infidelity, hope to despair, charity to
enmity and hostility; and these three sanctify the whole man, and make our duty
to God and obedience to his commandments to be chosen, reasonable, and
delightful, and therefore to be entire, persevering, and universal.
_____________________
The Acts and Offices of Faith are,
1. To believe everything which God hath
revealed to us:[193] and, when once we are
convinced that God hath spoken it, to make no further inquiry, but humbly to
submit; ever remembering that there are some things which our understanding
cannot fathom, nor search out their depth.
2. To believe nothing concerning God but what is
honourable and excellent, as knowing that belief to be no honouring of God
which entertains of him any dishonourable thoughts. Faith is the parent of
charity, and whatsoever faith entertains must be apt to produce love to God;
but he that believes God to be cruel or unmerciful, or a rejoicer in the
unavoidable damnation of the greatest part of mankind, or that he speaks one
thing and privately means another, thinks evil thoughts concerning God, and
such as for which we should hate a man, and therefore are great enemies of
faith, being apt to destroy charity. Our faith concerning God must be as
himself hath revealed and described his own excellencies; and, in our
discourses; we must remove from him all imperfection, and attribute to him all
excellency.
3. To give ourselves wholly up to Christ, in
heart and desire, to become disciples of his doctrine with choice, (besides
conviction,) being in the presence of God but as idiots, that is, without any
principles of our own to hinder the truth of God; but sucking in greedily all
that God hath taught us, believing it infinitely, and loving to believe it. For
this is an act of love reflected upon faith, or an act of faith leaning upon
love.
4. To believe all God's promises, and that
whatsoever is promised in Scripture shall, on God's part, be as surely
performed as if we had it in possession. This act makes us to rely upon God
with the same confidence as we did on our parents when we were children, when
we made no doubt but whatsoever we needed we should have it, if it were in
their power.
5. To believe, also, the conditions of the
promise, or that part of the revelation which concerns our duty. Many are apt
to believe the article of remission of sins, but they believe it without the
condition of repentance, or the fruits of holy life; and that is to believe the
article otherwise than God intended it. For the covenant of the Gospel is the
great object of faith, and that supposes our duty to answer his grace; that God
will be our God, so long as we are his people. The other is not faith, but
flattery.
6. To profess publicly the doctrine of Jesus
Christ, openly owning whatsoever he hath revealed and commanded, not being
ashamed of the word of God, or of any practices enjoined by it; and this
without complying with any man's interest, not regarding favour, nor being
moved with good words, not fearing disgrace, or loss, or inconvenience, or
death itself.
7. To pray without doubting, without weariness,
without faintness; entertaining no jealousies or suspicions of God, but being
confident of God's hearing us, and of his returns to us, whatsoever the manner
or the instance be, that, if we do our duty, it will be gracious and
merciful.
These acts of faith are, in several degrees, in
the servants of Jesus; some have it but as a grain of mustard-seed; some grow
up to a plant; some have the fulness of faith; but the least faith that is must
be a persuasion so strong as to make us undertake the doing of all that duty
which Christ built upon the foundation of believing. But we shall best discern
the truth of our faith by these following signs. St. Jerome reckons three.[194]
1. An earnest and vehement prayer: for it is
impossible we should heartily believe the things of God and the glories of the
gospel, and not most importunately desire them. For everything is desired
according to our belief of its excellency and possibility.
2. To do nothing for vain-glory, but wholly for
the interests of religion and these articles we believe; valuing not at all the
rumours of men, but the praise of God, to whom, by faith, we have given up all
our intellectual faculties.
3. To be content with God for our judge, for our
patron, for our Lord, for our friend; desiring God to be all in all to us, as
we are, in our understanding and affections, wholly his.
Add to these:
4. To be a stranger upon earth in our
affections, and to have all our thoughts and principal desires fixed upon the
matters of faith, the things of heaven. For, if a man were adopted heir to
Caesar, he would (if he believed it real and affective) despise the present,
and wholly be at court in his father's eye; and his desires would outrun his
swiftest speed, and all his thoughts would spend themselves in creating ideas
and little fantastic images of his future condition. Now God hath made us heirs
of his kingdom, and co-heirs with Jesus: if we believed this, we should think,
and affect, and study accordingly. But he that rejoices in gain, and his heart
dwells in the world, and is espoused to a fair estate, and transported with a
light momentary joy, and is afflicted with losses, and amazed with temporal
persecutions, and esteems disgrace or poverty in a good cause to be intolerable
- this man either has no inheritance in heaven, or believes none; and believes
not that he is adopted to the son of God - the heir of eternal glory.
5. St. James's sign is the best: `Show me thy
faith by thy works.' Faith makes the merchant diligent and venturous, and that
makes him rich. Ferdinando of Arragon believed the story told him by Columbus,
and therefore he furnished him with ships, and got the West Indies by his faith
in the undertaker. But Henry the Seventh of England believed him not, and
therefore trusted him not with shipping, and lost all the purchase of that
faith. It is told us by Christ, `He that forgiveth shall be forgiven:' if we
believe this, it is certain we shall forgive our enemies; for none of us all
but need and desire to be forgiven. No man can possibly despise, or refuse to
desire such excellent glories as are revelaed to them that are servants of
Christ; and yet we do nothing that is commanded us as a condition to obtain
them. No man could work a day's labour without faith; but because he believes
he shall have his wages at the day's or week's end, he does his duty. But he
only believes who does that thing which other men, in like cases, do when they
do believe. He that believes money gotten with danger is better than poverty
with safety, will venture for it in unknown lands or seas; and so will he that
believes it better to get to heaven with labour, than to go to hell with
pleasure.
6. He that believes does not make haste, but
waits patiently till the times of refreshment come, and dares trust God for the
morrow, and is no more solicitous for the next year than he is for that which
is past; and it is certain that man wants faith who dares be more confident of
being supplied, when he hath money in his purse, than when he hath it only in
bills of exchange from God; or that relies more upon his own industry than upon
God's providence when his own industry fails him. If you dare trust to God when
the case, to human reason, seems impossible, and trust to God then also out of
choice, not because you have nothing else to trust to, but because he is the
only support of a just confidence, then you give a good testimony of your
faith.
7. True faith is confident, and will venture all
the world upon the strength of its persuasion. Will you lay your life on it,
your estate, your reputation, that the doctrine of Jesus Christ is true in
every article/ Then you have true faith. But he that fears men more than God,
believes men more than he believes in God.
8. Faith, if it be true, living, and justifying,
cannot be separated from a good life; it works miracles, makes a drunkard
become sober, a lascivious person become chaste, a covetous man become liberal;
`it overcomes the world-it works righteousness,'[195]
and makes us diligently to do, and cheerfully to
suffer, whatsoever God hath placed in our way to heaven.
1. A humble, willing, and docile mind, or
desire to be instructed in the way of God; for persuasion enters like a
sunbeam, gently and without violence and open but the window, and draw the
curtain and the Sun of righteousness will enlighten your darkness.
2. Remove all prejudice and love to everything,
which may be contradicted by faith. `How can ye believe (said Christ) that
receive praise one of another?' An unchaste man cannot easily be brought to
believe that, without purity, he shall never see God. He that loves riches can
hardly believe the doctrine of poverty and renunciation of the world; and alms
and martyrdom, and the doctrine of the cross, is folly to him that loves his
ease and pleasures. He that hath within him any principle contrary to the
doctrines of faith cannot easily become a disciple.
3. Prayer, which is instrumental to everything,
hath a particular promise in this thing. `He that lacks wisdom, let him ask it
of God:' and, `If you give good things to your children, how much more shall
your heavenly Father give his Spirit to them that ask him!'
4. The consideration of the divine omnipotence
and infinite wisdom, and our own ignorance, are great instruments of curing all
doubting and silencing the murmurs of infidelity.[196]
5. Avoid all curiosity of inquiry into
particulars and circumstances and mysteries, for true faith is full of
ingenuity and hearty simplicity, free from suspicion, wise and confident,
trusting upon generals, without watching and prying into unnecessary or
indiscernible particulars. No man carries his bed into his field, to watch how
his corn grows, but believes upon the general order of Providence and nature;
and at harvest finds himself not deceived.
6. In time of temptation be not busy to dispute,
but rely upon the conclusion, and throw yourself upon God; and contend not with
him but in prayer and in the presence, and with the help of a prudent untempted
guide; and be sure to esteem all changes of belief which offer themselves in
the time of your greatest weakness (contrary to be temptations, and reject them
accordingly.
7. It is a prudent course that, in our health and
best advantages, we lay up particular arguments and instruments of persuasion
and confidence, to be brought forth and used in the great day of expense; and
that especially in such things in which we use to be most tempted, and in which
we are least confident, and which are most necessary, and which commonly the
devil uses to assault us withal in the days of our visitation.
8. The wisdom of the church of God is very
remarkable in appointing festivals or holy days, whose solemnity and offices
have no other special business but to record the article of the day; such as
Trinity Sunday, Ascension, Easter, Christmas day; and to those persons who can
only believe, not prove or dispute, there is no better instrument to cause the
remembrance and plain notion, and to endear the affection and hearty assent to
the article than the proclaiming and recommending it by the festivity and joy
of a holy day.
Faith, differs from hope in the extension of
its object, and in the intention of degree. St. Austin thus accounts their
differences:[197] Faith is of all things
revealed, good and bad, rewards and punishments, of things past, present, and
to come, of things that concern us, of things that concern us not; but hope
hath for its object things only that are good, and fit to be hoped for, future,
and concerning ourselves; and because these things are offered to us upon
conditions of which we may so fail as we may change our will, therefore our
certainty is less than the adherences of faith; which (because faith relies
only upon one proposition, that is, the truth of the word of God,) cannot be
made uncertain in themselves, though the object of our hope may become
uncertain to us, and to our possession. For it is infallibly certain that there
is heaven for all the godly, and for me amongst them all, if I do my duty. But
that I shall enter into heaven is the object of my hope, not of my faith; and
is so sure as it is certain I shall persevere in the ways of God.
1. To rely upon God with a confident
expectation of his promises; ever esteeming that every promise of God is a
magazine of all that grace and relief which we can need in that instance for
which the promise is made. Every degree of hope is a degree of confidence.
2. To esteem all the danger of an action, and the
possibilities of miscarriage, and every cross accident that can intervene, to
be no defect on God's part, but either a mercy on his part, or a fault on ours;
for then we shall be sure to trust in God when we see him to be our confidence,
and ourselves the cause of all mischances. The hope of a Christian is prudent
and religious.
3. To rejoice in the midst of a misfortune, or
seeming sadness, knowing that this may work for good, and will, if we be not
wanting to our souls. This is a direct act of hope to look through the cloud,
and look for a beam of the light from God; and this is called in Scripture `
rejoicing in tribulation, when the God of hope fills us with all joy in
believing.' Every degree of hope brings a degree of joy.
4. To desire, to pray, and to long for the great
object of our hope, the mighty price of our high calling; and to desire the
other things of this life as they are promised, that is, so far as they are
made necessary and useful to us, in order to God's glory and the great end of
souls. Hope and fasting are said to be the two wings of prayer. Fasting is but
as the wing of a bird; but hope is like the wing of an angel, soaring up to
heaven, and bears our prayers to the throne of grace. Without hope, it is
impossible to pray, but hope makes our prayers reasonable, passionate, and
religious; for it relies upon God's promise, or experience, or providence, and
story. Prayer is always in proportion to our hope, zealous and affectionate.
5. Perseverance is the perfection of the duty of
hope, and its last act; and so long as our hope continues, so long we go on in
duty and diligence; but he that is to raise a castle in an hour, sits down and
does nothing towards it; and Herod, the sophister, left off to teach his son,
when he saw that twenty-four pages, appointed to wait on him, and called by the
several letters of the alphabet, could never make him to understand his letters
perfectly.
1. Let your hope be moderate; proportioned to
your state, person, and condition, whether it be or gifts or graces, or
temporal favours. It is an ambitious hope for persons, whose diligence is like
them that are least in the kingdom of heaven, to believe themselves endeared to
God as the greatest saints; or that they shall have a throne equal to St. Paul,
or the blessed Virgin Mary. A stammerer cannot, with moderation, hope for the
gift of tongues; or a peasant to become learned as Origen; or if a beggar
desires, or hopes, to become a king, or asks for a thousand pounds a year, we
call him impudent, not passionate, much less reasonable. Hope that God will
crown your endeavours with equal measures of that reward which he indeed freely
gives, but yet gives according to our proportions. Hope for good success
according to, or not much beyond, the efficacy of the causes and the
instrument; and let the husbandman hope for a good harvest, not for a rich
kingdom, or a victorious army.
2. Let your hope be well founded, relying upon
just confidences; that is, upon God, according to his revelations and promises.
For it is possible for a man to have a vain hope upon God; and, in matters of
religion, it is presumption to hope that God's mercies will be poured forth
upon lazy persons, that do nothing towards holy and strict walking, nothing (I
say) but trust and long for an event besides and against all disposition of the
means. Every false principle in religion is a reed of Egypt, false and
dangerous. Rely not in temporal things upon uncertain prophecies and astrology,
not upon our own wit or industry, not upon gold or friends, not upon armies and
princes; expect not health from physicians, that cannot cure their own breath,
much less their mortality: use all lawful instruments, but expect nothing from
them above their natural or ordinary efficacy, and, in the use of them, from
God expect a blessing. A hope that is easy and credulour is an arm of flesh, an
ill supporter without a bone.[198]
3. Let your hope be without vanity, or garishness
of spirit; but sober, grave, and silent, fixed in the heart, not borne upon the
lip, apt to support our spirits within, but not to provide envy abroad.
4. Let your hope be of things possible, safe, and
useful.[199]
He that hopes for an opportunity of acting his
revenge, or lust, or rapine, watches to do himself a mischief. All evils of
ourselves or brethren are objects of our fear, not hope; and, when it is truly
understood, things useless and unsafe can no more be wished for than things
impossible can be obtained.
5. Let your hope be patient, without tediousness
of spirit, or hastiness of prefixing time. Make no limits or prescriptions to
God; but let your prayers and endeavours go on still with a constant attendance
on the periods of God's providence. The men of Bethulia resolved to wait upon
God but five days longer; but deliverance stayed seven days, and yet came at
last. And take not every accident for an argument of despair; but go on still
in hoping; and begin again to work if any ill accident have interrupted you.
The means to cure despair, and to continue or
increase hope, are partly by consideration, partly by exercise.
1. Apply your mind to the cure of all the proper
causes of despair: and they are, weakness of spirit or violence of passion. He
that greedily covets is impatient of delay, and desperate in contrary
accidents; and he that is little of heart is also of little hope, and apt to
sorrow and suspicion.[200]
2. Despise the things of the world, and be
indifferent to all changes and events of Providence; and for the things of God,
the promises are certain to be performed in kind; and where there is less
variety of chance, there is less possibility of being mocked:[201] but he that creates to himself thousands of little
hopes, uncertain in the promise, fallible in the event, and depending upon ten
thousand circumstances, (as are all the things of this world,) shall often ail
in his expectations, and be used to arguments of distrust in such hopes.
3. So long as your hopes are regular and
reasonable, though in temporal affairs, such as are deliverance from enemies,
escaping a storm or shipwreck, recovery from a sickness, ability to pay your
debts, etc., remember that there are some things ordinary, and some things
extraordinary, to prevent despair. In ordinary, remember that the very hoping
in God is an endearment of him, and a means to obtain the blessing: `I will
deliver him, because he hath put his trust in me.' 2. There are in God all
those glorious attributes and excellences which in the nature of things can
possibly create or confirm hope. God is, 1. strong; 2. wise; 3. true; 4.
loving. There cannot be added another capacity to create a confidence; for upon
these premises we cannot fail of receiving what is fit for us. 3. God hath
obliged himself by promise that we shall have the good of everything we desire;
for even losses and denials shall work for the good of them that fear God. And,
if we will trust the truth of God for performance of the general, we may well
trust his wisdom to choose for us the particular. But the extraordinaries of
God are apt to supply the defect of all natural and human possibilities. 1. God
hath, in many instances, given extraordinary virtue to the active causes and
instruments - to a jaw-bone, to kill a multitude; to three hundred men, to
destroy a great army; to Jonathan and his armour-bearer, to route a whole
garrison. 2. He hath given excellent sufferance and vigorousness to the
sufferers, arming them with strange courage, heroical fortitude, invincible
resolution, and glorious patience: and thus he lays no more upon us than we are
able to bear; for when he increases our sufferings, he lessens them by
increasing our patience. 3. His providence is extra-regular, and produces
strange things beyond common rules; and he that led Israel through a sea, and
made a rock pour forth waters, and the heavens to give them bread and flesh,
and whole armies to be destroyed with fantastic noises, and the fortune of all
France to be recovered and entirely revolved by the arms and conduct of a girl,
against the torrent of the English fortune and chivalry, can do what he please,
and still retain the same affections to his people, and the same providence
over mankind as ever. And it is impossible for that man to despair who
remembers that his helper is omnipotent, and can do what he please[202] Let us rest there a while - he can if he
please: and he is infinitely loving, willing enough; and he is infinitely wise,
choosing better for us than we can do for ourselves. This, in all ages and
chances, hath supported the afflicted people of God, and carried them on dry
ground through a Red Sea. God invites and cherishes the hopes of men by all the
variety of his providence.
4. If your ease be brought to the last extremity,
and that you are at the pit's brink, even the very margin of the grave, yet
then despair not; at least put it off a little longer: and remember that
whatsoever final accident takes away all hope from you, if you stay a little
longer, and, in the meanwhile, bear it sweetly, it will also take away all
despair too. For when you enter into the regions of death you rest from all
your labours and your fears.
5. Let them who are tempted to despair of their
salvation, consider how much Christ suffered to redeem us from sin and its
eternal punishment; and he that considers this must needs believe that the
desires which God had to save us were not less than infinite, and therefore not
easily to be satisfied without it.
6. Let no man despair of God's mercies to forgive
him, unless he be sure that his sins are greater than God's mercies. If they be
not, we have much reason to hope that the stronger ingredient will prevail, so
long as we are in the time and state of repentance, and within the
possibilities and latitude of the covenant; and as long as any promise can but
reflect upon him with an oblique beam of comfort. Possibly the man may err in
his judgment of circumstances; and therefore let him fear: but, because it is
not certain he is mistaken, let him not despair.
7. Consider that God, who knows all the events of
men, and what their final condition shall be, who shall be saved, and who will
perish; yet he treateth them as his own, calls them to be his own, offers fair
conditions as to his own, gives them blessings, arguments of mercy, and
instances of fear, to call them off from death, and to call them home to life;
and, in all this, shows no despair of happiness to them; and therefore much
less should any man despair for himself, since he never was able to read the
scrolls of the eternal predestination.
8. Remember that despair belongs only to
passionate fools or villains, such as were Achitophel and Judas, or else to
devils and damned persons; and as the hope of salvation is a good disposition
towards it, so is despair a certain consignation to eternal ruin. A man may be
damned for despairing to be saved. Despair is the proper passion of damnation.
"God hath placed truth and felicity in heaven, curiosity and repentance upon
earth, but misery and despair are the portions of hell."[203]
9. Gather together into your spirit and its
treasure-house, the memory, not only all the promises of God, but also the
remembrances of experience and the former senses of the divine favours, that
from thence you may argue from times past to the present, and enlarge to the
future and to greater blessings. For although the conjectures and expectations
of hope are not like the conclusions of faith, yet they are a helmet against
the scorching of despair in temporal things, and an anchor of the soul, sure
and steadfast, against the fluctuations of the spirit in matters of the soul.
St. Bernard reckons divers principles of hope, by enumerating the instances of
the divine mercy; and we may be them reduce this rule to practice, in the
following manner: 1. God hath preserved me from many sins; his mercies are
infinite: I hope he will still preserve me from more, and for ever. 2. I have
sinned, and God smote me not; his mercies are still over the penitent: I hope
he will deliver me from all the evils I have deserved. He hath forgiven me many
sins of malice, and therefore surely he will pity my infirmities. 3. God
visited my heart and changed it; he loves the work of his own hands, and so my
heart is now become; I hope he will love this too. 4. When I repented, he
received me graciously; and therefore I hope, if I do my endeavour, he will
totally forgive me. 5. He helped my slow and beginning endeavours; and
therefore I hope he will lead me to perfection. 6. When he had given me
something first, then he gave me more; I hope, therefore, he will keep me from
falling, and give me the grace of perseverance. 7. He hath chosen me to be a
disciple of Christ's in situation; he hath elected me to his kingdom of grace;
and therefore I hope also to the kingdom of his glory. 8. He died for me when I
was his enemy; and therefore I hope he will save me when he hath reconciled me
to him and is become my friend. 9. `God hath given us his Son: how should not
he with him give us all things else?' All these St. Bernard reduces to these
three heads, as the instruments of all our hopes: 1. The charity of God
adopting us; 2. The truth of his promises; 3. The power of his performance:
which, if any truly weighs, no infirmity or accident can break his hopes into
indiscernible fragments, but some good planks will remain after the greatest
storm and shipwreck. This was St. Paul's instrument: `Experience begets hope,
and hope maketh not ashamed.'
10. Do thou take care only of thy duty, of the
means and proper instruments of thy purpose, and leave the end to God - lay
that up with him, and he will take care of all that is entrusted to him; and
this, being an act of confidence in God, is also a means of security to
thee.
11. By special arts of spiritual prudence and
arguments secure the confident belief of the resurrection; and thou canst not
but hope for everything else which you may reasonably expect or lawfully desire
upon the stock of the divine mercies and promises.
12. If a despair seizes you in a particular
temporal instance, let it not defile thy spirit with impure mixture, or mingle
in spiritual considerations; but rather let it make thee fortify thy soul in
matters of religion, that, by being thrown out of your earthly dwelling and
confidence, you may retire into the strengths of grace, and hope the more
strongly in that by how much you are the more defeated in this,that despair of
a fortune or a success may become the necessity of all virtue.
________________________
Love is the greatest thing that God can
give us; for himself is love; and it is the greatest thing we can give to God;
for it will also give ourselves and carry with it all that is ours. The apostle
calls it the band of perfection; it is the old, and it is the new, and it is
the great commandment, and it is all the commandments; for it is the fulfilling
of the law. It does the work of all other graces without any instrument but its
own immediate virtue. For as the love to sin makes a man sin against all his
own reason, and all the discourses of wisdom, and all the advices of his
friends, and without temptation, and without opportunity, so does the love of
God; it makes a man chaste without the laborious arts of fasting and exterior
disciplines, temperate in the midst of feasts, and is active enough to choose
it without any intermedial appetites, and reaches at glory through the very
heart of grace without any other arms but those of love. It is a grace that
loves God for himself, and our neighbours for God. The consideration of God's
goodness and bounty, the experience of those profitable and excellent
emanations from him, may be, and most commonly are, the first motive of our
love; but when we are once entered, and have tasted the goodness of God, we
love the spring for its own excellency, passing from passion to reason, from
thanking to adoring, from sense to spirit, from considering ourselves to an
union with God: and this is the image and little representation of heaven; it
is beatitude in picture, or rather the infancy and beginnings of glory.
We need no incentives by way of special
enumeration to move us to the love of God, for we cannot love anything for any
reason real or imaginary, but that excellence is infinitely more eminent in
God. There can but two things create love - perfection and usefulness: to which
answer on our part, 1. Admiration; and 2. Desire; and both these are centered
in love. For the entertainment of the first, there is in God an infinite
nature, immensity or vastness without extension or limit, immutability,
eternity, omnipotence, omniscience, holiness, dominion, providence, bounty,
mercy, justice, perfection in himself, and the end to which all things and all
actions must be directed, and will, at last, arrive. The consideration of which
may be heightened, if we consider our distance from all these glories, our
smallness and limited nature, our nothing, our inconstancy, our age like a
span, our weakness and ignorance, our poverty, our inadvertency and
inconsideration, our disabilities and disaffections to do good, our harsh
natures and unmerciful inclinations, our universal iniquity, and our
necessities and dependencies, not only on God originally and essentially, but
even our need of the meanest of God's creatures, and our being obnoxious to the
weakest and most contemptible. But for the entertainment of the second, we may
consider that in him is a torrent of pleasure for the voluptuous; he is the
fountain of honour for the ambitious; an inexhaustible treasure for the
covetous. Our vices are in love with fantastic pleasures and images of
perfection, which are truly and really to be found nowhere but in God. And
therefore our virtues have such proper objects that it is but reasonable they
should all turn into love; for certain it is that this love will turn all into
virtue. For in the scrutinies for righteousness and judgment, when it is
inquired whether such a person be a good man or no, the meaning is not, What
does he believe? or what does he hope? but what he loves.[204]
1. Love does all things which may please the
beloved person; it performs all his commandments: and this is one of the
greatest instances and arguments of our love that God requires of us - this is
love, `That we keep his commandments.' Love is obedient.
2. It does all the intimations and secret
significations of his pleasure whom we love; and this is an argument of a great
degree of it. The first instance is, it makes the love accepted; but this gives
a greatness and singularity to it. The first is the least, and less than it
cannot do our duty; but without this second we cannot come to perfection. Great
love is also pliant and inquisitive in the instances of its expression.
3. Love gives away all things, that so he may
advance the interest of the beloved person: it relieves all that he would have
relieved, and spends itself in such real significations as it is enabled
withal. He never loved God that will quit anything of his religion to save his
money. Love is always liberal and communicative.
4. It suffers all things that are imposed by its
beloved, or that can happen for his sake, or that intervene in his service,
cheerfully, sweetly, willingly expecting that God should turn them into good,
and instruments of felicity. `Charity hopeth all things, endureth all
things.'[205] Love is patient and content
with anything, so it be together with its beloved.
5. Love is also impatient of anything that may
displease the beloved person, hating all sin as the enemy of its friend; for
love contracts all the same relations, and marries the same friendships and the
same hatreds; and all affection to a sin is perfectly inconsistent with the
love of God. Love is not divided between God and God's enemy: we must love God
with all our heart; that is, give him a whole and undivided affection, having
love for nothing else but such things which he allows, and which he commands or
loves himself.
6. Love endeavours for ever to be present, to
converse with, to enjoy, to be united with its object; loves to be talking of
him, reciting his praises, telling his stories, repeating his words, imitating
his gestures, transcribing his copy in everything; and every degree of love;
and it can endure anything but the displeasure and the absence of its beloved.
For we are not to use God and religion as men use perfumes, with which they are
delighted when they have them, but can very well be without them. True charity
is restless till it enjoys God in such instances in which it wants him; it is
like hunger and thirst, it must be fed, or it cannot be answered:[206] and nothing can supply the presence, or
make recompense for the absence of God, or of the effects of his favour and the
light of his countenance.
7. True love in all accidents looks upon the
beloved person, and observes his countenance, and how he approves or
disapproves, and accordingly looks sad or cheerful. He that loves God is not
displeased at those accidents which God chooses, nor murmurs at those changes
which he makes in his family, nor envies at those gifts he bestows; but chooses
as he likes; and is ruled by his judgment, and is perfectly of his persuasion,
loving to learn where God is the teacher, and being content to be ignorant or
silent where he is not pleased to open himself.
8. Love is curious of little things, of
circumstances and measures, and little accidents, not allowing to itself any
infirmity which it strives not to master, aiming at what it cannot yet reach,
desiring to be of an angelical purity, and of a perfect innocence, and a
seraphical fervour, and fears every image of offence; is as much afflicted at
an idle word as some at an act of adultery, and will not allow to itself so
much anger as will disturb a child, nor endure the impurity of a dream.[207] And this is the curiosity and niceness of
divine love: this is the fear of God, and is the daughter and production of Love.
But because this passion is pure as the
brightest and smoothest mirror, and, therefore, is apt to be sullied with every
impurer breath, we must be careful that our love to God be governed by these
measures:
1. That our love to God be sweet, even, and full
of tranquillity, having in it no violences or transportations, but going on in
a course of holy actions and duties, which are proportionable to our condition
and present state; not to satisfy all the desire, but all the probabilities and
measures of our strength. A new beginner in religion hath passionate and
violent desires; but they must not be the measure of his actions; but he must
consider his strength, his late sickness and state of death, the proper
temptations of his condition, and stand at first upon defence; not go to storm
a strong fort, or attack a potent enemy, or do heroical actions, and fitter for
giants in religion. Indiscreet violences and untimely forwardness are the rocks
of religion against which tender spirits often suffer shipwreck.
2. Let our love be prudent and without illusion,
that is, that it express itself in such instances which God hath chosen or
which we choose ourselves by proportion to his rules and measures. Love turns
into doating when religion turns into superstition. No degree of love can be
imprudent, but the expressions may: we cannot love God too much, but we may
proclaim it in indecent manners.
3. Let our love be firm, constant, and
inseparable; not coming and returning like the tide, but descending like a
never-failing river, ever running into the ocean of divine excellency, passing
on in the channels of duty and a constant obedience, and never ceasing to be
what it is till it be turned into sea and vastness, even the immensity of a
blessed eternity.
Although the consideration of the divine
excellencies and mercies be infinitely sufficient to produce in us love to God
(who is invisible, and yet not distant from us, but we feel him in his
blessings, he dwells in our hearts by faith, we feed on him in the sacrament,
and are made all one with him in the incarnation and glorifications of Jesus:
yet, that we may the better enkindle and increase our love to God, the
following advices are not useless:
1. Cut off all earthly and sensual
loves, for they pollute and unhallow the pure and spiritual love. Every degree
of inordinate affection to the things of this world, and every act of love to a
sin, is a perfect enemy to the love of God; and it is a great shame to take any
part of our affection from the eternal God, to bestow it upon his creature in
defiance of the Creator, or to give it to the devil, our open enemy, in
disparagement of him, who is the fountain of all excellences and celestial
amities.
2. Lay fetters and restraints upon the
imaginative and fantastic part; because our fancy, being an imperfect and
higher faculty, is usually pleased with the entertainment of shadows and gauds;
and because the things of the world fill it with such beauties and fantastic
imagery, the fancy, presents such objects as are amiable to the affections and
elective powers. Persons of fancy such as are women and children, have always
the most violent loves; but, therefore, if we be careful with what
representments we fill our fancy, we may the sooner rectify our love. To this
purpose it is good that we transplant the instruments of fancy into religion,
and for this reason music was brought into churches, and ornaments, and
perfumes, and comely garments, and solemnities, and decent ceremonies, that the
busy and less discerning fancy, being bribed with its proper objects, may be
instrumental to a more celestial and spiritual love.
3. Remove solicitude or worldly cares, and
multitudes of secular businesses, for if these take up the intention and actual
application of our thoughts and our employments, they will also possess our
passions, which, if they be filled with one object, though ignoble, cannot
attend another, though more excellent. We always contract a friendship and
relation with those with whom we converse; our very country is dear to us for
our being in it; and the neighbours of the same village, and those that buy and
sell with us, have seized upon some portions of our love; and, therefore, if we
dwell in the affairs of the world we shall also grow in love with them; and all
our love or all our hatred, all our hopes or all our fears, which the eternal
God would willingly secure to himself, and esteem amongst his treasures and
precious things, shall be spent upon trifles and vanities.
4. Do not only choose the things of God, but
secure your inclinations and aptnesses for God and for religion; for it will be
a hard thing for a man to do such a personal violence to his first desires as
to choose whatsoever he hath no mind to. A man will many times satisfy the
importunity and daily solicitations of his first longings; and, therefore,
there is nothing can secure our loves to God but stopping the natural
fountains, and making religion to grow near the first desires of the soul.
5. Converse with God by frequent prayer. In
particular, desire that your desires may be right and love to have your
affections regular and holy. To which purpose make very frequent addresses to
God by ejaculations and communions, and an assiduous daily devotion; discover
to him all your wants, complain to him of all your affronts; do as Hezekiah
did, lay your misfortunes and your ill news before him, spread them before the
Lord, call to him for health, run to him for counsel, beg of him for pardon;
and it is as natural to love him to whom we make such addresses, and on whom we
have such dependencies, as it is for children to love their parents.
6. Consider the immensity and vastness of the
divine love to us, expressed in all the emanations of his providence; 1. In his
creation; 2. In his conservation of us. For it is not my prince, or my patron,
or my friend, that supports me, or relieves my needs; but God who made the corn
that my friend sends me; who created the grapes, and supported him, who hath as
many dependencies, and as many natural necessities, and as perfect
disabilities, as myself. God, indeed, made him the instrument of his providence
to me, as he hath made his own land or his own cattle to him, with this only
difference, that God, by his ministration to me, intends to do him a favour and
a reward which to natural instruments he does not; 3. In giving his Son; 4. In
forgiving our sins; 5. In adopting us to glory; and ten thousand times ten
thousand little addicents and instances happening in the doing every of these -
and it is not possible but for so great love we should give love again; for
God, we should give man; for felicity, we should part with our misery. Nay, so
great is the love of the holy Jesus, God incarnate, that he would leave all his
triumphant glories, and die once more for man, if it were necessary for
procuring felicity to him.[208]
In the use of these instruments, love will grow
in several knots and steps, like the sugar-canes of India, according to a
thousand varieties in the persons loving; and it will be great or less in
several persons, and in the same, according to his growth in Christianity. But
in general discoursing there are but two states of love; and those are labour
of love, and the zeal of love: the first is duty; the second if perfection.
The least love that is must be obedient,
pure, simple, and communicative; that is, it must exclude all affection to sin,
and all inordinate affection to the world, and must be expressive, according to
our power, in the instances of duty, and must be love for love's sake; and for
this love, martyrdom is the highest instance - that is, a readiness of mind
rather to suffer any evil than to do any. Of this our blessed Saviour affirmed
that no man had greater love than this; that is, this is the highest point of
duty, the greatest love, that God requires of man. And yet he that is the most
imperfect must have this love also in preparation of mind, and must differ from
another in nothing, except in the degrees of promptness and alacrity. And in
this sense, he that loves God truly, (though but with a beginning and tender
love,) yet he loves God with all his heart, that is, with that degree of love
which is the highest point of our duty and of God's charge upon us; and he that
loves God with all his heart may yet increase with the increase of God; just as
there are degrees of love to God among the saints, and yet each of them love
him with all their powers and capacities.
2. But the greater state of love is the zeal of
love, which runs out into excrescences and suckers, like a fruitful and
pleasant tree; or bursting into gums, and producing fruits, not of a monstrous
but of an extraordinary and heroical, greatness. Concerning which these
cautions are to be observed:
1. If zeal be in the beginnings of our
spiritual birth, or be short, sudden, and transient, or be a consequent of a
man's natural temper, or come upon any cause but after a long growth of a
temperate and well-regulated love - it is to be suspected for passion and
forwardness, rather than the vertical point of love.[209]
2.That zeal only is good which in a fervent love,
hath temperate expressions. For let the affection boil as high as it can, yet
if it boil over into irregular and strange actions, it will have but few, but
will need many excuses. Elijah was zealous for the Lord of Hosts, and yet he
was so transported with it, that he could not receive answer from God till by
music he was recomposed and tamed; and Moses broke both the tables of the law
by being passionately zealous against them that broke the first.
3. Zeal must spend its greatest heat principally
in those things that concern ourselves; but with great care and restraint in
those that concern others.
4. Remember that zeal, being an excrescence of
divine love, must in no sense contradict any action of love. Love to God
includes love[210] to our neighbour; and
therefore no pretence of zeal for God's glory must make us uncharitable to our
brother; for that is just so pleasing to God as hatred is an act of love.
5. That zeal that concerns others can spend
itself in nothing but arts and actions and charitable instruments, for their
good; and when it concerns the good of many that one should suffer, it must be
done by persons of a competent authority, and in great necessity, in seldom
instances, according to the law of God or man; but never by private right, or
for trifling accidents, or in mistaken propositions. The Zealots, in the old
law, had authority to transfix and stab some certain persons, but God gave them
warrant; it was in the case of idolatry, or such notorious huge crimes, the
danger of which was insupportable, and the cognizance of which was infallible;
and yet that warrant expired with the synagogue.
6. Zeal may be let loose in the instances of
internal, personal, and spiritual actions, that are matters of direct duty, as
in prayers, and acts of adoration, and thanksgiving, and frequent addresses,
provided that no indirect act pass upon them to defile them, such as
complacency and opinions of sanctity, censuring others, scruples and opinions
of necessity, unnecessary fears, superstitious numberings of times and hours;
but let the zeal be as forward as it will, as devout as it will, as seraphical
as it will, in the direct address and intercourse with God there is no danger,
no transgression. Do all the parts of your duty as earnestly as if the
salvation of all the world, and the whole glory of God, and the confusion of
all devils, all that you hope or desire, did depend upon every one action.[211]
8. Let zeal be seated in the will and choice, and
regulated with prudence and a sober understanding, not in the fancies and
affections;[212] for those that will
make it deep and smooth, material and devout.
The sum is this; that zeal is not a direct duty,
nowhere commanded for itself, and is nothing but a forwardness and circumstance
of another duty, and therefore is then only acceptable when it advances the
love of God and our neighbours, whose circumstance it is.[213] That zeal is only safe, only acceptable, which
increases charity directly; and because love to our neighbour and obedience to
God are the two great portions of charity, we must never account our zeal to be
good but as it advances both these, if it be in a matter that relates to both;
or severally if it relates severally. St. Paul's zeal was expressed in
preaching without any offerings or stipend, in travelling, in spending and
being spent for his flock, in suffering, in being willing to be accursed for
love of the people of God and his countrymen. Let our zeal be as great as his
was, so it be in affections to others, but not al all in angers against them:
in the first there is no danger - in the second there is no safety. In brief,
let your zeal (if it must be expressed in anger) be always more severe against
thyself than against others.[214]
*The other part of love to God is love to our
neighbour, for which I have reserved the paragraph of alms.
Religion teaches us to present to God our
bodies as well as our souls, for God is the Lord of both; and if the body
serves the soul in actions natural and civil and intellectual, it must not be
eased in the only offices of religion, unless the body shall expect no portion
of the rewards of religion, such as are resurrection, reunion, and
glorification. Our bodies are to God a living sacrifice; and to present them to
God is holy and acceptable.[215]
The actions of the body, as it serves to
religion, and as it is distinguished from sobriety and justice, either relate
to the word of God, or to prayer, or to repentance, and make these kinds of
external actions of religion: 1. Reading and hearing the word of God; 2.
Fasting and corporal austerities, called by St. Paul bodily exercise; 3.
Feasting, or keeping days of public joy and thanksgiving.
Reading and hearing the word of God are
but the several circumstances of the same duty: instrumental especially to
faith, but consequently to all other graces of the spirit. It is all one to us
whether by the eye or by the ear the Spirit conveys his precepts to us. If we
hear St. Paul saying to us, that `whore mongers and adulterers God will judge,'
or read it in one of his epistles, in either of them we are equally and
sufficiently instructed.
The Scriptures read are the same thing to us
which the same doctrine was when it was preached by the disciples of our
blessed Lord, and we are to learn of either with the same dispositions. There
are many that cannot read the word, and they must take it in by the ear, and
they that can read find the same word of God by the eye. It is necessary that
all men learn it in some way or other, and it is sufficient in order to their
practice that they learn it any way. The word of God is all those commandments
and revelations, those promises and threatenings, the stories and sermons
recorded in the Bible; nothing else is the word of God that we know of by any
certain instrument. The good books and spiritual discourses, the sermons or
homilies written or spoken by men, are but the words of men, or rather
explications of, and exhortations according to, the word of God; but of
themselves they are not the word of God. In a sermon, the text only is, in a
proper sense, to be called God's word; and yet good sermons are of great use
and convenience for the advantages of religion. He that preaches an hour
together against drunkenness, with the tongue of men or angels, hath spoke no
other word of God but this, `Be not drunk with wine, wherein is excess;' and he
that writes that sermon in a book, and publishes that book, hath preached to
all that read it a louder sermon than could be spoken in a church. This I say
to this purpose, that we may separate truth from error, popular opinions from
substantial truths. For God preaches to us in the Scripture, and by his secret
assistances and spiritual thoughts and holy motions: good men preach to us when
they, by popular arguments and human arts and compliances, expound and press
any of those doctrines which God hath preached unto us in his holy word.
But,
1. The Holy Ghost is certainly the best preacher
in the world, and the words of Scripture the best sermons.
2. All the doctrine of salvation is plainly set
down there, that the most unlearned person, by hearing it read, may understand
all his duty. What can be plainer spoken than this, `Thou shalt not kill; Be
not drunk with wine; Husbands, love your wives; Whatsoever ye would that men
should do to you, do ye so to them.' The wit of man cannot more plainly tell us
our duty, or more fully, than the Holy Ghost hath done already.
3. Good sermons and good books are of excellent
use; but yet they can serve no other end but that we practice the plain
doctrines of Scripture.
4. What Abraham, in the parable, said concerning
the brethren of the rich man, is here very proper; `They have Moses and the
prophets, let them hear them; but if they refuse to hear these neither will
they believe though one should arise from the dead to preach unto them.'[216]
5. Reading the holy Scriptures is a duty
expressly commanded us,[217] and is called
in Scripture `preaching:' all other preaching is the effect of human skill and
industry; and although of great benefit, yet it is but an ecclesiastical
ordinance; the law of God concerning preaching being expressed in the matter of
reading the Scriptures, and hearing that word of God which is, and as it is,
there described.
But this duty is reduced to practice in the
following rules:
1. Set apart some portion of thy time,
according to the opportunities of thy calling and necessary employment, for the
reading of Holy Scriptures; and, if it be possible, every day read or hear some
of it read: you are sure that book teaches all truth, commands all holiness,
and promises all happiness.
2. When it is in your power to choose, accustom
yourself to such portions which are most plain and certain duty, and which
contain the story of the life and death of our blessed Saviour. Read the
gospels, the Psalms of David, and especially those portions of Scripture which,
by the wisdom of the church, are appointed to be publicly read upon Sundays and
holy days, viz. the epistles and gospels. In the choice of any other portions,
you may advise with a spiritual guide, that you may spend your time with most
profit.
3. Fail not diligently to attend to the reading
of Holy Scriptures upon those days wherein it is most publicly and solemnly
read in churches, for at such times, besides the learning our duty, we obtain a
blessing along with it, it becoming to us, upon those days a part of the solemn
divine worship.
4. When the word of God is read or preached to
you, be sure you be of a ready heart and mind, free from worldly cares and
thoughts, diligent to hear, careful to mark, studious to remember, and desirous
to practise all that is commanded, and to live according to it; do not hear for
any other end but to become better in our life, and to be instructed in every
good work, and to increase in the love and service of God.
5. Beg of God, by prayer, that he would give you
the spirit of obedience and profit, and that he would, by his Spirit, write the
word in your heart, and that you describe it in your life: to which purpose
serve yourself of some affectionate ejaculations to that purpose before and
after this duty.
6. Let not a prejudice to any man's person
hinder thee from receiving good by his doctrine, if it be according to
godliness; but (if occasion offer it, or especially to godliness; but (if
occasion offer it, or especially if duty present it to thee- that is if it be
preached in that assembly where thou art bound to be present) accept the word
preached as a message from God, and the minister as his angel in that
ministration.
7. Consider and remark the doctrine that is
represented to thee in any discourse; and if the preacher adds accidental
advantages, anything to comply with thy weakness, or to put thy spirit into
action or holy resolution, remember it and make use of it. But if the preacher
be a weak person, yet the text is the doctrine, thou art to remember, that
contains all thy duty; it is worth they attendance to hear that spoken often
and renewed upon thy thoughts; and though thou beest a learned man, yet the
same things which thou knowest already, if spoken by another, may be made
active by that application. I can better be comforted by my own considerations
if another hand applies them than if I do it myself; because the word of God
does not work as a natural agent, but as a divine instrument; it does not
prevail by the force of deduction and artificial discoursings only, but chiefly
by way of blessing in the ordinance and in the ministry of an appointed person.
At least obey the public order, and reverence the constitution, and give good
example of humility, charity, and obedience.
8. When Scriptures are read, you are only to
inquire, with diligence and modesty, into the meaning of the Spirit; but if
homilies or sermons be made upon the words of Scripture, you are to consider,
whether all that be spoken be conforming to the Scriptures; for although you
may practise for human reasons and human arguments ministered from the
preacher's art, yet you must practise nothing but the command of God, nothing
but the doctrine of Scripture; that is, the text.
9. Use the advice of some spiritual or other
prudent man for the choice of such spiritual books, which may be of use and
benefit for the edification of thy spirit in the ways of holy living; and
esteem that time well accounted for that is prudently and affectionately
employed in hearing or reading good books and pious discourses; ever
remembering, that God, by hearing us speak to him in prayer, obliges us to hear
him speak to us in his word, by what instrument soever it be conveyed.
Fasting, if it be considered in itself,
without relation to spiritual ends, is a duty nowhere enjoined or counselled.
But Christianity hath to do with it as it may be made an instrument of the
Spirit, by subduing the lusts of the flesh, or removing any hinderances of
religion. And it hath been practised by all ages of the church, and advised in
order to three ministries; 1. To prayer; 2. To mortification of bodily lusts;
3. To repentance: and it is to be practised according to the following measures:
1. Fasting, in order to prayer, is to be
measured by the proportions of the times of prayer; that is, it ought to be a
total fast from all things, during the solemnity, unless a palpable necessity
intervene. Thus the Jews ate nothing upon the Sabbath-days till their great
offices were performed; that is, about the sixth hour: and St. Peter used it as
an argument, that the apostles in Pentecost were not drunk, because it was but
the third hour of the day; of such a day in which it was not lawful to eat or
drink till the sixth hour: and the Jews were offended at the disciples for
plucking the ears of corn on the Sabbath, early in the morning, because it was
before the time in which, by their customs, they esteemed it lawful to break
their fast. In imitation of this custom, and in prosecution of the reason of
it, the Christian church hath religiously observed fasting, before the holy
communion; and the more devout persons (though without any obligation at all)
refused to eat or drink till they had finished their morning devotions: and
further yet, upon days of public humiliation, which are designed to be spent
wholly in devotion, and for the averting God's judgments, (if they were
imminent,) fasting is commanded together with prayer: commanded (I say) by the
church to this end - that the spirit might be clearer and more angelical, when
it is quitted in some proportions from the loads of flesh.
2. Fasting, when it is in order to prayer, must
be a total abstinence from all meat, or else an abatement of the quantity; for
the help which fasting does to prayer cannot be served by changing flesh into
fish, or milk-meats into dry diet; but by turning much into little, or little
into none at all, during the time of solemn and extraordinary prayer.
3. Fasting, as it is instrumental to prayer, must
be attended with other aids of the like virtue and efficacy; such as are
removing for the time all worldly cares and secular business; and therefore our
blessed Saviour enfolds these parts within the same caution, `take heed, lest
your hearts be overcharged with surfeiting and drunkenness and the cares of
this world, and that day overtake you unawares.' To which add alms; for upon
the wings of fasting and alms holy prayer infallibly mounts up to heaven.[218]
4. When fasting is intended to serve the duty or
repentance, it is then best chosen when it is short, sharp, and afflictive;
that is, either a total abstinence from all nourishment, according as we shall
appoint or be appointed, during such a time as is separate for the solemnity
and attendance upon the employment: or, if we shall extend our severity beyond
the solemn days, and keep our anger against our sin, as we are to keep our
sorrow, that is, always in a readiness, and often to be called upon; then, to
refuse a pleasant morsel, to abstain from the bread of our desires, and only to
take wholesome and less pleasing nourishment, vexing our appetite by refusing a
lawful satisfaction, since, in its petulancy and luxury, it prayed upon an
unlawful.
5. Fasting designed for repentance must be ever
joined with an extreme care that we fast from sin; for there is no greater
folly or indecency in the world than to commit that for which I am now judging
and condemning myself. This is the best fast; and the other may serve to
promote the interest of this, by increasing the disaffection to it, and
multiplying arguments against it.
6. He that fasts for repentance must, during that
solemnity, abstain from all bodily delights, and the sensuality of all his
senses and his appetites; for a man must not, when he mourns in his fast, be
merry in his sport; weep at dinner, and laugh all day after; have a silence in
his kitchen, and music in his chamber; judge the stomach, and feast the other
senses. I deny not but a man may, in a single instance, punish a particular sin
with a propalate, he may choose to fast only; if he have sinned in softness and
in his touch, he may choose to lie hard, or work hard, and use sharp
inflictions; but although this discipline be proper and particular, yet because
the sorrow is of the whole man, no sense must rejoice, or be with any study or
purpose feasted and entertained softly. This rule is intended to relate to the
solemn days appointed for repentance publicly or privately; besides which, in
the whole course of our life, even in the midst of our most festival and freer
joys, we may sprinkle some single instances and acts of self-condemning, or
punishing; as to refuse a pleasant morsel or a delicious draught with a tacit
remembrance of the sin that now returns to displease my spirit. And, though
these actions be single, there is no indecency in them; because a man may abate
of his ordinary liberty and hold freedom with great prudence, so he does it
without singularity in himself or trouble to others; but he may not abate of
his solemn sorrow: that may be caution; but this would be softness, effeminacy,
and indecency.
7. When fasting is an act of mortification, that
is, is intended to subdue a bodily lust, as the spirit of fornication, or the
fondness of strong and impatient appetites, it must not be a sudden, sharp, and
violent fast, but a state of fasting, a diet of fasting, a daily lessening our
portion of meat and drink, and a choosing such a course diet,[219] which may make the least preparation for the lusts of
the body. He that fasts three days without food will weaken other parts more
than the ministers of fornication; and when the meals return as usually, they
also will be served as soon as any. In the meantime, they will be supplied and
made active by the accidental heat that comes with such violent fastings: for
this is a kind of aerial devil 0 the prince that rules in the air is the devil
of fornication; and he will be as tempting with the windiness of a violent fast
as with the flesh of an ordinary meal.[220]
But a daily subtraction of the nourishment will introduce a less busy habit of
body; and that will prove the more effectual remedy.
8. Fasting alone will not cure this devil, though
it helps much towards it; but it must not therefore be neglected, but assisted
by all the proper instruments of remedy against this unclean spirit; and what
it is unable to do alone, in company with other instruments, and God's blessing
upon them, it may effect.
9. All fasting, for whatever end it be
undertaken, must be done without any opinion of the necessity of the thing
itself, without censuring others, with all humility, in order to the proper
end; and just as a man takes physic, of which no man hath reason to be proud,
and no man things it necessary, but because he is in sickness, or in danger and
disposition to it.
10. All fasts ordained by lawful authority are to
be observed in order to the same purposes to which they are enjoined, and to be
accompanied with actions of the same nature, just as it is in private fasts;
for there is no other difference, but that in public our superiors choose for
us what in private we do for ourselves.
11. Fasts ordained by lawful authority are not to
be neglected; because alone they can do the thing in order to which they were
enjoined. It may be, one day of humiliation will not obtain the blessing, or
alone kill the lust; yet it must not be despised if it can do anything towards
it. And act of fasting is an act of self-denial; and, though it do not produce
the habit, yet it is a good act.
12. When the principal end why a fast is publicly
prescribed is obtain by some other instrument, in a particular person - as if
the spirit of fornication be cured by the rite of marriage, or by a gift of
chastity - yet that person so eased is not freed from the fasts of the church
by that alone, if those fasts can prudently serve any other end of religion, as
that of prayer, or repentance, or mortification of some other appetite; for
when it is instrumental to any end of the Spirit, it is freed from
superstition, and then we must have some other reason to quit us from the
obligation, or that alone will not do it.
13. When the fast publicly commanded by reason of
some indisposition in the particular person cannot operate to the end of the
commandment, yet the avoiding offence, and the complying with public order, is
reason enough to make the obedience to be necessary. For he that is otherwise
disobliged, as when the reason of the law ceases as to his particular, yet
remains still obliged if he cannot do otherwise without scandal; but this is an
obligation of charity, not of justice.
14. All fasting is to be used with prudence and
charity; for there is no end to which fasting serves but may be obtained by
other instruments; and, therefore, it must at no hand be made an instrument of
scruple; or become an enemy to our health; or be imposed upon persons that are
sick or aged, or to whom it is, in any sense, uncharitable, such as are wearied
travellers; or to whom, in the whole kind of it, it is useless such as are
women with child, poor people, and little children. But in these cases the
church hath made provision and inserted caution into her laws; and they are to
be reduced to practice according to custom, and the sentence of prudent
persons, with great latitude, and without niceness and curiosity, having this
in our first care, that we secure our virtue; and, next, that we secure our
health, that we may the better exercise the labours of virtue, lest, out of too
much austerity, we bring ourselves to that condition that it be necessary to be
indulgent to softness, ease, and extreme tenderness.[221]
15. Let not intemperance be the prologue or the
epilogue to your fast, lest the fast be so far from taking off anything of the
sin, that it be an occasion to increase it; and, therefore, when the fast is
done, be careful that no supervening act of gluttony or excessive drinking
unhallow the religion of the past day; but eat temperately, according to the
proportion of other meals, lest gluttony keep either of the gates to
abstinence.[222]
He that undertakes to enumerate the benefits
of fasting may, in the next page, also reckon all the benefits of physic, for
fasting is not to be commended as a duty, but as an instrument; and in that
sense no man can reprove it, or undervalue it, but he that knows neither
spiritual arts nor spiritual necessities. But by the doctors of the church it
is called the nourishment of prayer, the restraint of lust, the wings of the
souls, the diet of angels, the instrument of humility and self-denial, the
purification of the spirit; and the paleness and meagerness of visage, which is
consequent to the daily fast of great mortifiers, is, by St. Basil, said to be
the mark in the forehead which the angel observed when he signed the saints in
the forehead to escape the wrath of God. "The soul that is greatly vexed, which
goeth stooping and feeble, and the eyes that fail, and the hungry soul, shall
give thee praise and righteousness, O Lord!"[223]
True natural religion, that which was common
to all nations and ages, did principally rely upon four great propositions; 1.
That there is one God; 2. That God is nothing of those things which we see; 3.
That God takes care of all things below, and governs all the world; 4. That he
is the great Creator of all things, without himself: and according to these
were framed the four first precepts of the decalogue. In the first, the unity
of the Godhead is expressly affirmed; in the second, his invisibility and
immateriality; in the third is affirmed God's government and providence, by
avenging them that swear falsely by his name, by which also his omniscience is
declared; in the fourth commandment, he proclaims himself the maker of heaven
and earth; for, in memory of God's rest from the work of six days, the seventh
was hallowed into a Sabbath, and the keeping it was confessing God to be the
great maker of heaven and earth; and consequently to this, it also was a
confession of his goodness, his omnipotence, and his wisdom, all which were
written with a sunbeam in the great book of the creature.
So long as the law of the Sabbath was bound upon
God's people, so long God would have that to be the solemn manner of confessing
these attributes; but when the priesthood being changed, there was a change
also of the law, the great duty remained unalterable in changed circumstances.
We are eternally bound to confess God Almighty to be the maker of heaven and
earth; but the manner of confessing it is changed from a rest, or a doing
nothing, to a speaking something, from a day to a symbol; from a ceremony to a
substance; from a Jewish rite to a Christian duty; we profess it in our creed,
we confess it in our lives; we describe it by every line of our life, by every
action of duty, by faith and trust and obedience: and we do also, upon great
reason, comply with the Jewish manner of confessing the creation, so far as it
is instrumental to a real duty. We keep one day in seven, and so confess the
manner and circumstance of the creation; and we rest also, that we may tend
holy duties; so imitating God's rest better than the Jew in Synesius, who lay
upon his face from evening to evening, and could not, by stripes or wounds, be
raised up to steer the ship in a great storm. God's rest was not a natural
cessation; he who could not labour could not be said to rest; but God's rest is
to be understood to be a beholding and a rejoicing in his work finished, and
therefore we truly represent God's rest when we confess and rejoice in God's
works and God's glory.
This the Christian church does upon every day,
but especially upon the Lord's day, which she hath set apart for this and all
other offices of religion, being determined to this day by the resurrection of
her dearest Lord, it being the first day of joy the church ever had. And now,
upon the Lord's day, we are not tied to the rest of the Sabbath, but to all the
work of the Sabbath; and we are to abstain from bodily labour, not because it
is a direct duty to us, as it was to the Jews; but because it is necessary, in
order to our duty, that we attend to the offices of religion.
The observation of the Lord's day differs nothing
from the observation of the Sabbath in the matter of religion, but in the
manner. They differ in the ceremony and external rite: rest, with them, was the
principal; with us, it is the accessory. They differ in the office or forms of
worship; for they were then to worship God as a creator and a gentle father; we
are to add to that, our Redeemer, and all his other excellences and mercies.
And, though we have more natural and proper reason to keep the Lord's day than
the Sabbath, yet the Jews had a divine commandment for their day, which we have
not for ours; but we have many commandments to do all that honour to God which
was intended in the fourth commandment; and the apostles appointed the first
day of the week for doing it in solemn assemblies. And the manner of
worshipping God, and doing him solemn honour and service upon this day, we may
best observe in the following measures:
1. When you go about to distinguish festival
days from common, do it not by lessening the devotion of ordinary days, that
the common devotion may seem bigger upon festivals; but, on every day, keep
your ordinary devotions entire, and enlarge upon the holy day.
2. Upon the Lord's day we must abstain from all
servile and laborious works, except such which are matters of necessity, of
common life, or of great charity; for these are permitted by that authority
which hath separated the day for holy uses. The Sabbath of the Jews, though
consisting principally in rest, and established by God, did yield to these. The
labour of love and the labours of religion were not against the reason and the
spirit of the commandment, for which the letter was decreed, and to which it
ought to minister. And, therefore, much more is it so on the Lord's day, where
the letter is wholly turned into spirit, and there is no commandment of God but
of spiritual and holy actions. The priests might kill their beasts, and dress
them for sacrifice; and Christ, though born under the law, might heal a sick
man; and the sick man might carry his bed to witness his recovery, and confess
the mercy, and leap and dance to God for joy; and an ox might be led to water,
and as ass be haled out of a ditch; and a man may take physic, and he may eat
meat, and therefore there were of necessity some to prepare and minister it;
and the performing these labours did not consist in minutes and just
determining stages; but they had, even then, a reasonable latitude; so only as
to exclude unnecessary labour, or such as did not minister to charity or
religion. And, therefore, this is to be enlarged in the gospel, whose Sabbath
or rest is but a circumstance, and accessory to the principal and spiritual
duties. Upon the Christian Sabbath necessity is to be served first, then
charity, and then religion; for this is to give place to charity, in great
instances, and the second to the first, in all, and in all cases God is to be
worshipped in spirit and in truth.
3. The Lord's day, being the remembrance of a
great blessing, must be a day of joy, festivity, spiritual rejoicing, and
thanksgiving; and therefore it is a proper work of the day to let your
devotions spend themselves in singing or reading psalms; in recounting the
great works of God; in remembering his mercies; in worshipping his excellences;
in celebrating his attributes; in admiring his person; in sending portions of
pleasant meat to them for whom nothing is provided; and in all the arts and
instruments of advancing God's glory, and the reputation of religion: in which
it were a great decency that a memorial of the resurrection should be inserted,
that the particular religion of the day be not swallowed up in the general. And
of this we may the more easily serve ourselves, by rising seasonably in the
morning to private devotion, and by retiring at the leisures and spaces of the
day not employed in public offices.
4.Fail not to be present at the public hours and
places of prayer, entering early and cheerfully, attending reverently and
devoutly, abiding patiently during the whole office, piously assisting at the
prayers, and gladly also hearing the sermon: and at no hand omitting to receive
the holy communion when it is offered, (unless some great reason excuse it,)
this being the great solemnity of thanksgiving, and a proper work of the
day.
5. After the solemnities are past, and in the
intervals between the morning and evening devotion, (as you shall find
opportunity,) visit sick persons, reconcile differences, do offices of
neighbourhood, inquire into the needs of the poor, especially housekeepers,
relieve them, as they shall need, and as you are able; for then we truly
rejoice in God, when we make our neighbours, the poor members of Christ,
rejoice together with us.
6. Whatsoever you are to do yourself, as
necessary, you are to take care that others also, who are under your charge, do
in their station and manner. Let your servants be called to church, and all
your family that can be spared from necessary and great household ministries;
those that cannot, let them go by turns, and be supplied otherwise, as well as
they may; and provide, on these days especially, that they be instructed in the
articles of faith and necessary parts of their duty.
7. Those who labour hard in the week must be
eased upon the Lord's day, such ease being a great charity and alms; but at no
hand must they be permitted to use any unlawful games, anything forbidden by
the laws, anything that is scandalous, or anything that is dangerous and apt to
mingle sin with it; no games prompting to wantonness, to drunkenness, to
quarrelling, to ridiculous and superstitions customs; but let their
refreshments be innocent and charitable and of good report, and not exclusive
of the duties of religion.
8. Beyond these bounds, because neither God nor
man hath passed any obligation upon us, we must preserve our Christian liberty,
and not suffer ourselves to be entangled with a yoke of bondage; for even a
good action may become a snare to us, if we make it an occasion of scruple by a
pretence of necessity, binding loads upon the conscience, not with the bands of
God, but of men, and of fancy, or of opinion, or of tyranny. Whatsoever is laid
upon us by the hands of man must be acted and accounted of by the measures of a
man; but our best measure is this: he keeps the Lord's day best, that keeps it
with most religion and with most charity.
9. What the church hath done in the article of
the resurrection, she hath in some measure done in the other articles of the
nativity, of the ascension, and of the descent of the Holy Ghost at Pentecost -
and so great blessings deserve an anniversary solemnity, since he is a very
unthankful person that does not often record them in the whole year, and esteem
them the ground of his hopes, the object of his faith, the comfort of his
troubles, and the great effluxes of the divine mercy, greater than all the
victories over our temporal enemies, for which all glad persons usually give
thanks. And if, with great reason, the memory of the resurrection does return
solemnly every week, it is but reason the other should return once a year. To
which I add, that the commemoration of the articles of our Creed, in solemn
days and offices, is a very excellent instrument to convey and imprint the
sense and memory of it upon the spirits of the most ignorant person. For as a
picture may with more fancy convey a story to a man than a plain narrative
either in word or writing, so a real reprentment and an office of remembrance,
and a day to declare it, is far more impressive than a picture, or any other
art of making and fixing imagery.
10. The memories of the saints are precious to
God, and therefore they ought also to be so to us; and such persons who serve
God by holy living, industrious preaching, and religious dying, ought to have
their names preserved in honour, and God be glorified in them, and their holy
doctrines and lives published and imitated; and we, by so doing, give testimony
to the article of the communion of saints. But in these cases, as every church
is to be sparing in the number of days, so also should she be temperate in her
injunctions, not imposing them but upon voluntary and unbusied persons, without
snare or burden. But the holy day is best kept by giving God thanks for the
excellent persons, apostles, or martyrs, we then remember, and by imitating
their lives - this all may do; and they that can also keep the solemnity must
do that too, when it is publicly enjoined.
The mixed Actions of Religion are, 1. Prayer;
2. Alms; 3. Repentance; 4. Receiving the blessed Sacrament.
There is no greater argument in the world of
our spiritual danger and unwillingness to religion, than the backwardness which
most men have always, and all men have sometimes, to say their prayers - so
weary of their length, so glad when they are done, so witty to excuse and
frustrate an opportunity: and yet all is nothing but a desiring of God to give
us the greatest and the best things we can need, and which can make us happy -
it is a work so easy, so honourable, and to so great purpose, that in all the
instances of religion and providence (except only the incarnation of his Son)
God hath not given us a greater argument of his willingness to have us saved,
and of our unwillingness to accept it, his goodness and our gracelessness, his
infinite condescension and our carelessness and folly, than by rewarding so
easy a duty with so great blessings.
I cannot say anything beyond this very
consideration and its appendages to invite Christian people to pray often. But
we may consider that, 1. It is a duty commanded by God and his holy Son. 2. It
is an act of grace and highest honour, that we, dust and ashes, are admitted to
speak to the eternal God, to run to him as to a father, to lay open our wants,
to complain of our burdens, to explicate our scruples, to beg remedy and ease,
support and counsel, health and safety, deliverance and salvation: and, 3. God
hath invited us to it by many gracious promises of hearing us. 4. He hath
appointed his most glorious Son to be the precedent of prayer, and to make
continual intercession for us to the throne of grace. 5. He hath appointed an
angel to present the prayers of his servants: and, 6. Christ unites them to his
own, and sanctifies them, and makes them effective and prevalent: and, 7. Hath
put it into the hands of men to rescind, or alter, all the decrees of God,
which are of one kind, (that is, conditional, and concerning ourselves and our
final estate, and many instances of our intermedial or temporal,) by the power
of prayers. 8. And the prayers of men have saved cities and kingdoms from ruin:
prayer hath raised cities and kingdoms from ruin: prayer hath raised dead men
to life, hath stopped the violence of fire and shut the mouths of wild beasts,
hath altered the course of nature, caused rain in Egypt, and drought in the
sea: it made the sun to go from west to east, and the moon to stand still, and
rocks and mountains to wales; and it cures diseases without physic, and makes
physic to do the work of nature, and nature to do the work of grace, and grace
to do the work of God; and it does miracles of accident and event; and yet
prayer, that does all this, is, of itself, nothing but an ascent of the mind to
God, a desiring things fit to be desired, and an expression of this desire to
God as we can, and as becomes us. And our unwillingness to pray is nothing else
but a not desiring what we ought passionately to long for; or, if we do desire
it, it is a choosing rather to miss our satisfaction and felicity than to ask
for it.
There is no more to be said in this affair, but
that we reduce it to practice, according to the following rules:
1. We must be careful that we never ask
anything of God that is sinful, or that directly ministers to sin; for that is
to ask God to dishonour himself, and to undo us. We had need consider what we
pray; for before it returns in blessing it must be joined with Christ's
intercession, and presented to God. Let us principally ask of God power and
assistances to do our duty, to glorify God, to do good works, to live a good
life, to die in the fear and favor of God and eternal life: these things God
delights to give, and commands that we shall ask, and we may with confidence
expect to be answered graciously; for these things are promised without any
reservations of a secret condition: if we ask them, and do our duty towards the
obtaining them, we are sure never to miss them
2. We may lawfully pray to God for the gifts of
the Spirit that minister to holy ends; such as are the gift of preaching, the
spirit of prayer, good expression, a ready and unloosed tongue, good
understanding, learning, opportunities to publish them, etc., with these only
restraints: 1. That we cannot be so confident of the event of those prayers as
of the former. 2. That we must be curious to secure our intention in these
desires, that we may not ask them to serve our own ends, but only for God's
glory; and then we shall have them, or a blessing for desiring them. In order
to such purposes our intentions in the first desires cannot be amiss; because
they are able to sanctify other things, and therefore cannot be unhallowed
themselves. 3. We must submit to God's will, desiring him to choose our
employment, and to furnish our persons as he shall see expedient.
3. Whatsoever we may lawfully desire of temporal
things, we may lawfully ask of God in prayer, and we may expect them, as they
are promised. 1. Whatsoever is necessary to our life and being is promised to
us; and therefore we may, with certainty, expect food and raiment, food to keep
us alive, clothing to keep us from nakedness and shame; so long as our life is
permitted to us, so long all things necessary to our life shall be ministered.
We may be secure of maintenance, but not secure of our life - for that is
promised, not this: only concerning food and raiment we are not to make
accounts by the measure of our desires, but by the measure of our needs. 2.
Whatsoever is convenient for us; pleasant, and modestly delectable, we may pray
for, so we do it, 1. With submission to God's will. 2. Without impatient
desires. 3. That it be not a trifle and inconsiderable, but a matter so grave
and concerning as to be a fit matter to be treated on between God and our
souls. 4. That we ask not to spend upon our lusts, but for ends of justice, or
charity, or religion, and that they be employed with sobriety.
4. He that would pray with effect must live with
care and piety.[224] For although God gives
to sinners and evil persons the common blessings of life and chance, yet either
they want the comfort and blessing of those blessings, or they become occasions
of sadder accidents to them, or serve to upbraid them in their ingratitude or
irreligion: and in all cases, they are not the effects of prayer, or the fruits
of promise, or instances of a father's love; for they cannot be expected with
confidence, or received without danger, or used without without a curse and
mischief in their company. But as all sin is an impediment to prayer, so some
have a special indisposition towards acceptation; such are uncharitableness and
wrath, hypocrisy in the present action, pride and lust; because these, by
defiling the body or the spirit, or by contradicting some necessary ingredient
in prayer, (such as are mercy, humility, purity, and sincerity,) do defile the
prayer, and make it a direct sin, in the circumstances or formality of the
action.
5. All prayer must be made with faith and hope,
that is, we must certainly believe[225] we
shall receive the grace which God hath commanded us to ask; and we must hope
for such things which he hath permitted us to ask, and our hope shall not be
vain, though we miss what is not absolutely promised; because we shall at least
have an equal blessing in the denial as in the grant. And, therefore, the
former conditions must first be secured; that is, that we ask things necessary,
or at least good and innocent and profitable, and that our persons be gracious
in the eyes of God: or else, what God hath promised to our natural needs he
may, in many degrees, deny to our personal incapacity; but the thing being
secured, and the person disposed, there can be no fault at all; for whatsoever
else remains is on God's part, and that cannot possibly fail. But because the
things which are not commanded cannot possibly be secured, (for we are not sure
they are good in all circumstances,) we can but hope for such things, even
after we have secured our good intentions. We are sure of a blessing, but in
what instance we are not yet assured.
6. Our prayers must be fervent, intense, earnest,
and importunate, when we pray for things of high concernment and necessity.
`Continuing instant in prayer; striving in prayer; labouring fervently in
prayer; night and day, praying exceedingly; praying always with all prayer:' so
St. Paul calls it.[226] `Watching unto
prayer:' so St. Peter.[227] `Praying
earnestly:' so St. James.[228] And this is
not at all to be abated in matters spiritual and of duty: for, according as our
desires are, so are our prayers; and as our prayers are, so shall be the grace;
and as that is, so shall be the measure of glory. But this admits of degrees
according to the perfection or imperfection of our state of life; but it hath
no other measures, but ought to be as great as it can, the bigger the better:
we must make no positive restraints upon ourselves. In other things they are to
use a bridle; and as we must limit our desires with submission to God's will,
so also we must limit the importunity of our prayers by the moderation and term
of our desires. Pray for it as earnestly as you may desire it.
7. Our desires must be lasting, and our prayers
frequent, assiduous, and continual; not asking for a blessing once, and then
leaving it, but daily renewing our suits, and exercising our hope, and faith,
and patience, and long-suffering, and religion, and resignation, and
self-denial, in all the degrees we shall be put to. This circumstance of duty
our blessed Saviour taught, saying, that `men ought always to pray, and not to
faint.'[229] Always to pray, signifies the
frequent doing of the duty in general; but because we cannot always ask several
things, and those are such as concern our great interest, the precept comes
home to this very circumstance; and St. Paul calls it `praying without
ceasing;'[230] and himself in his own case
gave a precedent-'For this cause I besought the Lord thrice.' And so did our
blessed Lord; he went thrice to God on the same errand, with the same words, in
a short space-about half a night; for his time to solicit his suit was but
short. And the Philippians were remembered by the apostle, their spiritual
father, `always pray for the pardon of our sins, for the assistance of God's
grace, for charity, for life eternal, never giving over till we die; and thus
also we pray for supply of great temporal needs in their several proportions;
in all cases being curious we do not give over out of weariness or impatience;
for God God oftentimes defers to grant our suit, because he loves to hear us
beg it, and hath a design to give us more than we ask, even a satisfaction of
our desires, and a blessing for the very importunity.
8. Let the words of our prayers be pertinent,
grave, material, not studiously many, but according to our need, sufficient to
express our wants, and to signify our importunity. God hears us not the sooner
for our many words, but much the sooner for an earnest desire; to which let apt
and sufficient words minister, be they few or many, according as it happens. A
long prayer and a short differ not in their capacities of being accepted, for
both of them take their value according to the fervency of spirit, and the
charity of the prayer. That prayer, which is short by reason of an impatient
spirit, or dulness, or despite of holy things, or indifferency of desires, is
very often criminal, always imperfect; and that prayer which is long out of
ostentation, or superstition, or a trifling spirit, is as criminal and
imperfect as the other in their several instances. This rule relates to private
prayer. In public, our devotion is to be measured by the appointed office, and
we are to support our spirit with spiritual arts, that our private spirit may
be a part of the public spirit, and be adopted into the society and blessings
of the communion of saints.
9. In all forms of prayer mingle petition with
thanksgiving, that you may endear the present prayer and the future blessing,
by returning praise and thanks for what we have already received. This is St.
Paul's advice - `Be careful for nothing; but in everything, by prayer and
supplication with thanksgiving, let your requests be made known unto God.[231]
10. Whatever we beg of God, let us also work for
it, if the thing be matter of duty, or a consequent to industry; for God loves
to bless labour and to reward it, but not to support idleness.[232] And therefore our blessed Saviour in his sermons joins
watchfulness with prayer, for God's graces are but assistances, not new
creations of the whole habit, in every instant or period of our life. Read
Scriptures, and then pray to God for understanding. Pray against temptation;
but you must also resist the devil, and then he will flee from you. Ask of God
competency of living; but you must also work with your hands the things that
are honest, that ye may have to supply in time of need. We can but do our
endeavor, and pray for blessing, and then leave the success with God; and
beyond this we cannot deliberate, we cannot take care - but, so far, we
must.
11. To this purpose let every man study his
prayers and read his duty in his petitions. For the body of our prayer is the
sum of our duty; and as we must ask of God whatsoever we need, so we must
labour for all that we ask. Because it is our duty, therefore we must pray for
God's grace; but because God's grace is necessary, and without it we can do
nothing, we are sufficiently taught, that in the proper matter or our religious
prayers is the just matter of our duty; and if we shall turn our prayers into
precepts, we shall the easier turn our hearty desires into effective
practices.
12. In all our prayers we must be careful to
attend our present work,[233] having a
present mind, not wandering upon impertinent things, not distant from our
words, much less contrary to them; and if our thoughts do at any time wander,
and divert upon other objects, bring them back again with prudent and severe
arts - by all means striving to obtain a diligent, a sober, an untroubled, and
a composed spirit.
13. Let your posture and gesture of body in
prayers be reverend, grave, and humble - according to public order, or the best
examples, if it be in public - if it be in private, either stand or kneel, or
lie flat upon the ground on your face, in your ordinary and more solemn
prayers, but in extraordinary, casual, and ejaculatory prayers, the reverence
and devotion of the soul, and the lifting up the eyes and hands to God with any
other posture not indecent, is usual and commendable; for we may pray in bed,
on horseback, `everywhere,'[234]
and at all times, and in all circumstances; and it is well if we do so;
and some servants have not opportunity to pray so often as they would, unless
they supply the appetites of religion by such accidental devotions.
14. `Let prayers and supplications and giving of
thanks be made for all men; for kings, and all that are in authority; for this
is good and acceptable in the sight of God our Saviour.'[235] We, who must love our neighbours as ourselves, must
also pray for them as for ourselves, with this only difference, that we may
enlarge in our temporal desires for kings, and pray for secular prosperity to
them with more importunity than for ourselves; because they need more to enable
their duty and government, and for the interests of religion and justice. This
part of prayer is by the apostle called intercession; in which, with
special care, we are to remember our relatives, our family, our charge, our
benefactors, our creditors, not forgetting to beg pardon and charity for our
enemies, and protection against them.
15. Rely not on a single prayer in matters of
great concernment; but make it as public as you can, by obtaining of others to
pray for you - this being the great blessing of the communion of saints, that a
prayer united is strong, like a well-ordered army; and God loves to be tied
fast with such cords of love, and constrained by a holy violence.
16. Every time that is not seized upon by some
other duty is seasonable enough for prayer; but let it be performed as a solemn
duty morning and evening, that God may begin and end all our business; that the
outgoing of the morning and evening may praise him; for so we bless God, and
God blesses us. And yet fail not to find or make opportunities to worship God
at some other times of the day, at least by ejaculations and short addresses,
more or less, longer or shorter, solemnly or without solemnity, privately or
publicly, as you can, or are permitted, always remembering, that as every sin
is a degree of danger and unsafety, so every pious prayer and well-employed
opportunity is a degree of return to hope and pardon.
17. A vow to God is an act of prayer, and a
great degree and instance of opportunity, and an increase of duty by some new
uncommanded instance, or some more eminent degree of duty, or frequency of
action, or earnestness of spirit in the same. And because it hath pleased God,
in all ages of the world, to admit of intercourse with his servants in the
matters of vows, it is not ill advice that we make vows to God in such cases in
which we have great need or great danger. But let it be done according to these
rules and by these cautions:
1. That the matter of the vow be lawful. 2. That
it be useful in order to religion or charity. 3. That it be grave, not trifling
or impertinent; but great in our proportion of duty towards the blessing. 4.
That it be an uncommanded instance, that is, that it be of something, or in
some manner, or in some degree, to which formerly we were not obliged, or which
we might have omitted without sin. 5. That it be done with prudence; that is,
that it be safe in all the circumstances of person, lest we beg a blessing and
fall into a snare. 6. That every vow of a new action be also accompanied with a
new degree and enforcement of our essential and unalterable duty - such as was
Jacob's vow, that (besides the payment of the tithe) God should be his God;
that so he might strengthen his duty to him, first in essentials and precepts,
and then in additionals and accidentals. For it is but an ill tree that spends
more in leaves and suckers and gums than in fruit; and that thankfulness and
religion is best that first secures duty and then enlarges in counsels.
Therefore, let every great prayer and great need and great danger draw us
nearer to God by the approach of a pious purpose to live more strictly, and let
every mercy of God answering that prayer produce a real performance of it. 7.
Let not young beginners in religion enlarge their hearts and straighten their
liberty by vows of long continuance; nor, indeed, any one else, without a great
experience of himself and of all accidental dangers.[236] Vows of single actions are safest, and proportionable
to those single blessings ever begged in such cases of sudden and transient
importunities. 8. Let no action which is matter of question and dispute in
religion ever become the matter of a vow. He vows foolishly that promises to
God to live and die in such an opinion in an article not necessary nor certain;
or that, upon confidence of his present guide, binds himself for ever to the
profession of what he may afterwards more reasonably contradict, or may find
not to be useful, or not profitable, but of some danger or of no necessity.
If we observe the former rules we shall pray
piously and effectually; but because even this duty hath in it some special
temptations, it is necessary that we are armed by special remedies against
them. The dangers are, 1. Wandering thoughts; 2. Tediousness of spirit. Against
the first these advices are profitable:
If we feel our spirits apt to wander in our
prayers, and to retire into the world, or to things unprofitable, or vain and
impertinent:
1. Use prayer to be assisted in prayer; pray for
the spirit of supplication, for a sober, fixed, and recollected spirit; and
when to this you add a moral industry to be steady in your thoughts, whatsoever
wanderings after this do return irremediably are a misery of nature and an
imperfection, but no sin, while it is not cherished and indulged to.
2. In private it is not amiss to attempt the cure
by reducing your prayers into collects and short forms of prayer, making
voluntary interruptions, and beginning again, that the want of spirit and
breath may be supplied by the short stages and periods.
3. When you have observed any considerable
wanderings of your thoughts, bind yourself to repeat thy prayer again with
actual attention, or else revolve the full sense of it in your spirit, and
repeat it in all the effect and desires of it; and, possibly, the tempter may
be driven away with his own art, and may cease to interpose his trifles when he
perceives they do but vex the person into carefulness and piety; and yet he
loses nothing of his devotion, but doubles the earnestness of his care.
4. If this be not seasonable or opportune, or apt
to any man's circumstances, yet be sure, with actual attention, to say a hearty
Amen to the whole prayer with one united desire, earnestly begging the graces
mentioned in the prayer; for that desire does the great work of the prayer, and
secures the blessing, if the wandering thoughts were against our will, and
disclaimed by contending against them.
5. Avoid multiplicity of businesses of the world,
and in those that are unavoidable, labour for an evenness and tranquillity of
spirit, that you may be untroubled and smooth in all tempests of fortune; for
so we shall better tend religion when we are not torn in pieces with the cares
of the world, and seized upon with low affections, passions, and interest.
6. It helps much to attention and actual
advertisement in our prayers, if we say our prayers silently, without the
voice, only by the spirit. For, in mental prayer, if our thoughts wander we
only stand still; when our mind returns we go on again - there is none of the
prayer lost, as it is if our mouths speak and our hearts wander.
7. To incite you to the use of these, or any
other counsels you shall meet with, remember that it is a great indecency to
desire of God to hear those prayers, a great part whereof we do not hear
ourselves. If they be not worthy of our attention they are far more unworthy of
God's.
The second temptation in our prayer is a
tediousness of spirit or a weariness of the employment; like that of the Jews,
who complained that they were weary of the new moons, and their souls loathed
the frequent return of their Sabbaths: so do very many Christians, who first
pray without fervour or earnestness of spirit; and, secondly, meditate but
seldom, and that without fruit, or sense, or affection; or, thirdly, who seldom
examine their consciences, and when they do it, they do it but sleepily,
slightly, without compunction, or hearty purpose, or fruits of amendment. 4.
They enlarge themselves in the thoughts and fruitation of temporal things,
running for comfort to them only in any sadness and misfortune. 5. They love
not to frequent the sacraments, nor any the instruments of religion, as
sermons, confessions, prayers in public, fastings; but love ease and a loose
undisciplined life. 6. They obey not their superiors, but follow their own
judgment when their judgment follows their affections, and their affections
follow sense and worldly pleasures. 7. They neglect, or dissemble, or defer, or
do not attend to the motions and inclinations to virtue which the Spirit of God
puts into their soul. 8. They repent them of their vows and holy purposes, not
because they discover any indiscretion in them, or intolerable inconvenience,
but because they have within them labour (as the case now stands) to them
displeasure. 9. They content themselves with the first degrees and necessary
parts of virtue; and when they are arrived thither, they sit down as if they
were come to the mountain of the Lord, and care not to proceed on toward
perfection. 10. They inquire into all cases in which it may be lawful to omit a
duty; and, though they will not do less than they are bound to, yet they will
do no more than needs must; for they do out of fear and self-love, not out of
the love of God, or the spirit of holiness and zeal. The event of which will be
this: he that will do no more than needs must, will soon be brought to omit
something of his duty, and will be apt to believe less to be necessary than is.
The remedies against this temptation are
these:
1. Order your private devotions so that they
become not arguments and causes of tediousness by their indiscreet length, but
reduce your words into a narrow compass, still keeping all the matter; and what
is cut off in the length of your prayers supply in the earnestness of your
spirit; for so nothing is lost, while the words are changed into matter, and
length of time into fervency of devotion. The forms are made not the less
perfect, and the spirit is more, and the scruple is removed.
2. It is not imprudent, if we provide variety of
forms of prayer to the same purposes, that the change, by consulting with the
appetites of fancy, may better entertain the spirit; and, possibly, we may be
pleased to recite a hymn when a collect seems flat to us and unpleasant; and we
are willing to sing rather than to say, or to sing this rather than that: we
are certain that variety is delightful; and whether that be natural to us, or
an imperfection, yet if it be complied with, it any remove some part of the
temptation.
3.Break your office and devotion into fragments,
and make frequent returnings by ejaculations and abrupt intercourses with God;
for so no length can oppress your tenderness and sickliness of spirit; and, by
often praying in such manner and in all circumstances, we shall habituate our
souls to prayer by making it the business of many lesser portions of our time;
and by thrusting in between all our other employments, it will make everything
relish of religion, and by degrees turn all into its nature.
4. Learn to abstract your thoughts and desires
from pleasures and things of the world; for nothing is a direct cure to this
evil but cutting off all other loves and adherences. Order your affairs so that
religion may be propounded to you as a reward, and prayer as your defence, and
holy actions as your security, and charity and good works as your treasure.
Consider that all things else are satisfactions but to the brutish part of a
man; and that these are the refreshments and relishes of that noble part of us
by which we are better than beasts; and whatsoever other instrument, exercise,
or consideration, is of use to take our loves from the world, the same is apt
to place them upon God.
5. Do not seek for deliciousness and sensible
consolations in the actions of religion, but only regard the duty and the
conscience of it; for although in the beginning of religion most frequently,
and at some other times irregularly, God complies with our infirmity, and
encourages our duty with little overflowings of spiritual joy, and sensible
pleasure, and delicacies in prayer, so as we seem to feel some little beam of
heaven, and great refreshments from the spirit of consolation, yet this is not
always safe for us to have, neither safe for us to expect and look for; and
when we do, it is apt to make us cool in our inquires and waitings upon Christ
when we want them: it is a running after him, not for the miracles but for the
loaves; not for the wonderful things of God, and the desires of pleasing him,
but for the pleasures of pleasing ourselves. And as we must not judge our
devotion to be barren or unfruitful when we want the overflowings of joy
running over, so neither must we cease for want of them. If our spirits can
serve God choosingly and greedily out of pure conscience of our duty, it is
better in itself and more safe for us.
6. Let him use to soften his spirit with frequent
meditation upon sad and dolorous objects, as of death, the terrors of the day
of judgment, fearful judgments upon sinners, strange horrorid accidents, fear
of God's wrath, the pains of hell, the unspeakable amazements of the damned,
the intolerable load of a sad eternity: for whatsoever creates fear, or makes
the spirit to dwell in a religious sadness, is apt to entender the spirit, and
make it devout and pliant to any part of duty; for a great fear, when it is
ill-managed, is the parent of superstition; but a discreet and well-guided fear
produces religion.
7. Pray often, and you shall pray oftener; and
when you are accustomed to a frequent devotion, it will so insensibly unite to
your nature and affections, that it will become a trouble to omit your usual or
appointed prayers; and what you obtain at first by doing violence to your
inclinations, at last will not be left without as great unwillingness as that
by which at first it entered. This rule relies not only upon reason derived
from the nature, of habits, which turn into a second nature, and make their
actions easy, frequent, and delightful' but it relies upon a reason depending
upon the nature and constitution of grace, whose productions are of the same
nature with the parent, and increases itself, naturally growing from grains to
huge trees, from minutes to vast proportions, and from moments to eternity. But
be sure not to omit your usual prayers without great reason, though without sin
it may be done; because after you have omitted something, in a little while you
will be past the scruple of that, and begin to be tempted to leave out more.
Keep yourself up to your usual forms - you may enlarge when you will; but do
not contract or lesson them without a very probable reason.
8. Let a man frequently and seriously, by
imagination, place himself upon his death-bed, and consider what great joys he
shall have for the remembrance of every day well spent, and what then he would
give that he had so spent all his days. He may guess at it by proportions; for
it is certain he shall have a joyful and prosperous night who hath spent his
day holily; and he resigns his soul with peace into the hands of God, who hath
lived in the peace of God and the works of religion in his lifetime. This
consideration is of a real event; it is of a thing that will certainly come to
pass. `It is appointed for all men once to die;' and after death comes
judgment; the apprehension of which is dreadful, and the presence of it is
intolerable; unless, by religion and sanctity, we are disposed for so venerable
an appearance.
9. To this may be useful that we consider the
easiness of Christ's yoke,[237] the
excellences and sweetnesses that are in religion, the peace of conscience, the
joy of the Holy Ghost, the rejoicing in God, the simplicity and pleasure of
virtue, the intricacy, trouble, and business of sin; the blessings and health
and reward of that; the curses the sicknesses and sad consequences of this; and
that, if we are weary of the labours of religion, we must sit still and do
nothing; for whatsoever we do contrary to it is infinitely more full of labour,
care, difficulty, and vexation.
10. Consider this also, that tediousness of
spirit is the beginning of the most dangerous condition and estate in the whole
world. For it is a great disposition to the sin against the Holy Ghost: it is
apt to bring a man to backsliding and the state of unregeneration; to make him
return to his vomit and his sink; and either to make the man impatient, or his
condition scrupulous, unsatisfied, irksome, and desperate: and it is better
that he had never known the way of godliness, than, after the knowledge of it,
that he should fall away. There is not in the world a greater sign that the
spirit of reprobation is beginning upon a man than when he is habitually and
constantly, or very frequently, weary, and slights or loathes holy offices.
11. The last remedy that preserves the hope of
such a man, and can reduce him to the state of zeal and the love of God, is a
pungent, sad, and a heavy affliction; not desperate, but recreated with some
intervals of kindness, or little comforts, or entertained with hopes of
deliverance; which condition if a man shall fall into, by the grace of God he
is likely to recover; but if this help him not, it is infinite odds but he will
quench the spirit.
________________________
Love is as communicative as fire, as busy and
as active, and it hath four twin-daughters, extreme like each other; and but
that the doctors of the school have done, as Thamar's midwife did, who bound a
scarlet thread, something to distinguish them, it would be very hard to call
them asunder. Their names are, 1. Mercy; 2. Beneficence or well-doing; 3.
Liberality; and, 4. Alms; which, by a special privilege, hath obtained to be
called Charity. The first or eldest is seated in the affection; and it is that
which all the others must attend, for mercy, without alms, is acceptable when
the person is disabled to express outwardly what he heartily desires. But alms,
without mercy, are like prayers without devotion, or religion without humility.
2. Beneficence or well-doing is a promptness and nobleness of mind, making us
to do offices of courtesy and humanity to all sorts of persons, in their need
or out of their need. 3. Liberality is a disposition of mind opposite to
covetousness, and consists in the despite and neglect of money upon just
occasions, and relates to our friends, children, kindred, servants, and other
relatives. 4. But alms is a relieving of the poor and needy. The first and the
last only are duties of Christianity. The second and third are circumstances
and adjuncts of these duties; for liberality increases the degree of alms,
making our gift greater; and beneficence extends it to more persons and orders
of men, spreading it wider. The former makes us sometimes to give more than
need by the necessity of beggars, and serves the needs and conveniences of
persons and supplies circumstances; whereas properly alms are doles and
largesses to the necessities of nature, and giving remedies to their
miseries.
Mercy and alms are the body and soul of that
charity which we must pay to our neighbour's need; and it is a precept which
God therefore enjoined to the world, that the great inequality which he was
pleased to suffer in the possessions and accidents of men might be reduced to
some temper and evenness; and the most miserable person might be reduced to
some temper and evenness; and the most miserable person might be reconciled to
some sense and participation of felicity.
The works of mercy are so many as the
affections of mercy have objects, or as the world hath kinds of misery. men
want meat, or drink, or clothes, or a house, or liberty, or attendance, or a
grave. In proportion to these, seven works are usually assigned to mercy, and
there are seven kinds of corporal alms reckoned: 1. To feed the hungry;[238] 2. To give drink to the thirsty; 3. Or
clothes to the naked; 4. To redeem captives; 5. To visit the sick; 6. To
entertain strangers; 7. To bury the dead.[239] But many more may be added. Such as are, 8. To give
physic to sick persons; 9. To bring cold and starved people to warmth and to
the fire - for sometimes clothing will not do it, or this may be done when we
cannot do the other; 10. To lead the blind in right ways; 11. To lend money;
12. To forgive debts; 13. To remit forfeitures; 14. To mend highways and
bridges; 15. To reduce or guide wandering travellers; 16. To ease their labours
by accommodating their work with apt instruments, or their journey with beasts
of carriage; 17. To deliver the poor from their oppressors; 18. To die for my
brother;[240] 19. To pay maidens `dowries,
and to procure for them honest and chast marriages.
1. To teach the ignorant; 2. To counsel
doubting persons; 3. To admonish sinners diligently, prudently, seasonably, and
charitably: to which also may be reduced, provoking and encouraging to good
works;[241] 4. To comfort the afflicted; 5.
To pardon offenders; 6. To succour and support the weak;[242] To pray for all estates of men, and for relief to all
their necessities. To which may be added, 8. To punish or correct
refractoriness; 9. To be gentle and charitable in censuring the actions of
others; 10. To establish the scrupulous, wavering, and inconstant spirits; 11.
To confirm the strong; 12. Not to give scandal; 13. To quit a man of his fear;
14. To redeem maidens from prostitution and publication of their bodies.[243]
To both these kinds a third also may be added of
a mixed nature, partly corporal and partly spiritual; such are, 1. Reconciling
enemies;[244] 2. Erecting public schools of
learning; 3. Maintaining lectures of divinity; 4. Erecting colleges of religion
and retirement from the noises and more frequent temptations of the world; 5.
Finding employment for unbusied persons and putting children to honest trades:
for the particulars of mercy or alms cannot be narrower than men's needs are,
and the old method of alms is too narrow to comprise them all, and yet the
kinds are too many to be discoursed of particularly; only our blessed Saviour,
in the precept of alms, uses the instances of relieving the poor and
forgiveness of injuries; and by proportion to these, the rest, whose duty is
plain, simple, easy, and necessary, may be determined. But alms in general are
to be disposed of according to the following rules:
1. Let no man do alms of that which is none
of his own;[245] for of that he is to make
restitution that is due to the owners, not to the poor; for every man hath need
of his own, and that is first to be provided for; and then you must think of
the needs of the poor. He that gives the poor what is not his own, makes
himself a thief, and the poor to be the receivers. This is not to be understood
as if it were unlawful for a man that is not able to pay his debts to give
smaller alms to the poor. He may not give such portions as can in any sense
more disable him to do justice;[246] but
such which, if they were saved, could not advance the other duty may retire to
this, and do here what they may, since, in the other duty, they cannot do what
they should. But, generally, cheaters and robbers cannot give alms of what they
have cheated and robbed, unless they cannot tell the persons whom they have
injured, or the proportions; and, in such cases, they are to give those unknown
portions to the poor by way of restitution, for it is no alms; only God is the
supreme Lord to whom those escheats devolve, and the poor are his receivers.
2. Of money unjustly taken, and yet voluntarily
parted with, we may, and are bound to give alms; such as is money given and
taken for false witness, bribes, and simoniacal contracts; because the receiver
hath no right to keep it, nor the giver any right to recall it; it is unjust
money, and yet payable to none but the supreme Lord, (who is the person
injured,) and to his delegates, that is, the poor. To which I insert these
cautions: 1. If the person injured by the unjust sentence of a bribed judge, or
by false witness, be poor, he is the proper object and bosom to whom the
restitution is to be made; 2. In the case of simony[247] the church, to whom the simony was injurious, is the
lap into which the restitution is to be poured; and if it be poor and out of
repair, the alms or restitution (shall I call it?) are to be paid to it.
3. There is some sort of gain that hath in it no
injustice, properly so called; but it is unlawful and filthy lucre; such as is
money taken for work done unlawfully upon the Lord's day; hire taken for
disfiguring one's-self, and for being professed jesters; the wages of such as
make unjust bargains, and of harlots. Of this money there is some preparation
to be made before it be given in alms, the money is infected with the plague,
and must pass through the fire or the water before it be fit for alms; the
person must repent and leave the crime, and then minister to the poor.
4. He that gives alms must do it in mercy; that
is, out of a true sense of the calamity of his brother, first feeling it in
himself in some proportion, and then endeavouring to ease himself and the other
of their common calamity.[248] Against this
rule they offend who give alms out of custom, or to upbraid the poverty of the
other, or to make him mercenary and obliged, or with any unhandsome
circumstances.
5. He that gives alms must do it with a single
eye and heart;[249] that is, without designs
to get the praise of men; and if he secures that, he may either give them
publicly or privately; for Christ intended only to provide against pride and
hypocrisy when he bade arms to be given in secret, it being otherwise one of
his commandments, `that our light should shine before men:' this is more
excellent; that is more safe.
6. To this also appertains that he who hath done
a good turn should so forget it as not to speak of it; but he that boasts it,
or upbraids it, hath paid himself and lost the nobleness of the charity.
7. Give alms with a cheerful heart and
countenance; `not grudgingly or of necessity, for God loveth a cheerful
giver;'[250] and therefore give quickly when
the power is in thy hand, and the need is in thy neighbour, and thy neighbour
at the door. He gives twice that relieves speedily.
8. According to thy ability give to all men that
need;[251] and, in equal needs, give first
to good men rather than to bad men; and if the needs be unequal, do so too,
provided that the need of the poorest be not violent or extreme; but, if an
evil man be in extreme necessity he is to be relieved rather than a good man
who can tarry longer, and may subsist without it; and if he be a good man he
will desire it should be so, because himself is bound to save the life of his
brother with doing some inconvenience to himself; and no differences of virtue
or vice can make the ease of one beggar equal with the life of another.
9. Give no alms to vicious persons if such alms
will support their sin, as if they will continue in idleness; `if they will not
work neither let them eat;'[252] or if they
will spend it in drunkenness,[253]
or wantonness, such persons, when they are reduced to very great want,
must be relieved in such proportions as may not relieve their dying lust, but
may refresh their faint or dying bodies.
10. The best objects of charity are poor
housekeepers that labour hard, and are burdened with many children; or
gentlemen fallen into poverty, especially if by innocent misfortune, (and if
their crimes brought them into it, yet they are to be relieved according to the
former rule,) persecuted persons, widows and fatherless children, putting them
to honest trades or school of learning. And search into the needs of numerous
and meaner families,[254] for there are many
persons that have nothing left them but misery and modesty; and towards such we
must add two circumstances of charity: 1. To inquire them out; 2. To convey our
relief unto them so as we do not make them ashamed.
11. Give, looking for nothing again, that is,
without consideration of future advantages; give to children, to old men, to
the unthankful, and the dying, and to those you shall never see again; for else
your alms or courtesy is not charity, but traffic and merchandise; and be sure
that you omit not to relieve the needs of your enemy and the injurious; for so,
possibly, you may win him to yourself; but do you intend the winning him to
God.
12. Trust not your alms to intermedial,
uncertain, and under-dispensers; by which rule is not only intended the
securing your alms in the right channel, but the humility of your person, and
that which the apostle calls `the labour of love.' And if you converse in
hospitals and alms-houses, and minister with your own hand what your heart hath
first decreed, you will find your heart endeared and made familiar with the
needs and with the persons of the poor, those excellent images of Christ.
13. Whatsoever is superfluous in thy estate is to
be dispensed in alms.[255] He that hath two
coats must give to him that hath none;' that is, he that hath beyond his need
must give that which is beyond it. Only among needs, we are to reckon not only
what will support our life, but also what will maintain the decency of our
estate and person, not only in present needs, but in all future necessities,
and very probable contingencies, but no further: we are not obliged beyond
this, unless we see very great, public, and calamitous necessities. But yet if
we do extend beyond our measures, and give more than we are able, we have he
Philippians and many holy persons for our precedent; we have St. Paul for our
encouragement; we have Christ for our counsellor; we have God for our rewarder;
and a great treasure in heaven for our recompense and restitution. But I
propound it to the consideration of all Christian people that they be not nice
and curious, fond and indulgent to themselves in taking accounts of their
personal conveniences; and that they make their proportions moderate and easy,
according to the order and manner of Christianity; and the consequent will be
this, that the poor will more plentifully be relieved, themselves will be more
able to do it, and the duty will be less chargeable, and the owners of estates
charged with fewer accounts in the spending them. It cannot be denied but, in
the expenses of all liberal and great personages, many things might be spared;
some superfluous servants, some idle meetings, some unnecessary and imprudent
feasts, some garments too costly, some unnecessary lawsuits, some vain
journeys; and when we are tempted to such needless expenses, if we shall
descend to moderation, and lay aside the surplusage, we shall find it with more
profit to be laid out upon the poor members of Christ than upon our own with
vanity. But this is only intended to be an advice in the matter of doing alms;
for I am not ignorant that great variety of clothes always have been permitted
to princes and nobility and others in their proportion; and they usually give
those clothes as rewards to servants, and other persons needful enough, and
then they may serve their own fancy and their duty too; but it is but reason
and religion to be careful that they be given to such only where duty, or
prudent liberality, or alms, determine them; but in no sense let them do it so
as to minister to vanity, to luxury, to prodigality. The like also is to be
observed in other instances; and if we once give our minds to the study and
arts of alms, we shall find ways enough to make this duty easy, profitable, and
useful.
1. He that plays at any game must resolve
beforehand to be indifferent to win or lose; but if he gives to the poor all
that he wins, it is better than to keep it to himself; but it were better yet
that he lay by so much as he is willing to lose, and let the game alone, and,
by giving so much alms, traffic for eternity. That is one way.
2. Another is keeping the fasting-days of the
church, which if our condition be such as to be able to cast our accounts, and
make abatements for our wanting so many meals in the whole year, (which by the
old appointment did amount to one hundred and fifty-three, and since most of
them are fallen into desuetude, we may make up as many of them as we please by
voluntary fasts,) we may, from hence, find a considerable relief for the poor.
But if we be not willing sometimes to fast, that our brother may eat, we should
ill die for him. St. Martin had given all that he had in the world to the poor
save one coat; and that also he divided between two beggars. A father in the
mount of Mitria was reduced at last to the inventory of one Testament, and that
book also was tempted from him by the needs of one whom he thought poorer than
himself. Greater yet: St. Paulinus sold himself to slavery to redeem a young
man for whose captivity his mother wept sadly; and it is said that St.
Katherine sucked the envenomed wounds of a villain who had injured her most
impudently. And I shall tell you of a greater charity than all these put
together; Christ gave himself to shame and death to redeem his enemies from
bondage and death and hell.
3. Learn of the frugal man, and only avoid sordid
actions, and turn good husband, and change your arts of getting, into
providence for the poor, and we shall soon become rich in good works; and why
should we not do as much for charity as for covetousness; for heaven as for the
fading world; for God and the holy Jesus as for the needless superfluities of
back and belly?
14. In giving alms to beggars and persons of that
low rank it is better to give little to each, that we may give to the more, so
extending our alms to many persons; but in charities of religion, as building
hospitals, colleges, and houses for devotion, and supplying the accidental
wants of decayed persons, fallen from great plenty to great necessity, it is
better to unite our aims than to disperse them; to make a noble relief or
maintenance to one, and to restore him to comfort, than to support only his
natural needs, and keep him alive only, unrescued from sad discomforts.
15. The precept of alms or charity binds not
indefinitely to all the instances and kinds of charity; for he that delights to
feed the poor, and spends all his portion that way, is not bound to enter into
prisons and redeem captives; but we are obliged by the presence of
circumstances, and the special disposition of Providence, and the pitiableness
of an object, to this or that particular act of charity. The eye is the sense
of mercy, and the bowels are its organ; and that enkindles pity, and pity
produces alms: when the eye sees what it never say, the heart will think what
it never thought; but when we have an object present to our eye, then we must
pity; for there the providence of God hath fitted our charity with
circumstances. He that is in thy sight or in thy neighbourhood is fallen into
the lot of thy charity.
16. If thou hast no money,[256] yet thou must have mercy, and art bound to pity the
poor, and pray for them, and throw thy holy desires and devotions into the
treasure of the church; and if thou dost what thou art able, be it little or
great, corporal or spiritual, the charity of alms or the charity of prayers, a
cup of wine or a cup of water, if it be but love to the brethren,[257] or a desire to help all or any of
Christ's poor, it shall be accepted according to that a man hath, not according
to that he hath not.[258] For love is all
this, and all the other commandments; and where it cannot, yet it is love
still; and it is also sorrow that it cannot.
The motives to this duty are such, as Holy
Scripture hath propounded to us by way of consideration and proposition of its
excellences and consequent reward. 1. There is no one duty which our blessed
Saviour did recommend to his disciples with so repeated an injunction as this
of charity and alms.[259] To which add the
words spoken by our Lord, `It is better to give than to receive.' And when we
consider how great a blessing it is that we beg not from door to door, it is a
ready instance of our thankfulness to God, for his sake, to relieve them that
do. 2. This duty is that alone whereby the future day of judgment shall be
transacted. For nothing but charity and alms is that whereby Christ shall
declare the justice and mercy of the eternal sentence. Martyrdom itself is not
there expressed, and no otherwise involved, but as it is the greatest charity.
3. Christ made himself the greatest and daily example of alms or charity. He
went up and down doing good, preaching the gospel, and healing all diseases;
and God the Father is imitable by us in nothing but in purity and mercy. 4.
Alms given to the poor rebound to the emolument of the giver both temporal and
eternal.[260] 5. They are instrumental to
the remission of sins; our forgiveness and mercy to others being made the very
rule and proportion of our confidence and hope, and our prayer to be forgiven
ourselves.[261] 6. It is a treasure in
heaven; it procures friends when we die. It is reckoned as done to Christ,
whatsoever we do to our poor brother; and, therefore, when a poor man begs for
Christ's sake, if he have reason to ask for Christ's sake, give it him if thou
canst. Now every man hath title to ask for Christ's sake whose need is great,
and himself unable to cure it, and if the man be a Christian. Whatsoever
charity Christ will reward, all that is given for Christ's sake, and therefore
it may be asked in his name; but every man that uses that sacred name for an
endearment hath not a title to it, neither he nor his need. 7. It is one of the
wings of prayer by which it flies to the throne of grace. 8. It crowns all the
works of piety.[262] 9. It causes
thanksgiving to God on our behalf; 10. And the bowels of the poor bless us and
pray for us; 11. And that portion of our estate out of which a tenth, or a
fifth, or a twentieth, or some offering to God for religion and the poor goes
forth, certainly returns with a great blessing upon all the rest. It is like
the effusion of oil by the Sidonian woman; as long as she pours into empty
vessels it could never cease running; or like the widow's barrel of meal, it
consumed not as long as she fed the profit. 12. The sum of all it contained in
the words of our blesses Saviour: `Give alms of such things as you have, and
behold all things are clean unto you.' 13. To which may be added, that charity
or mercy is the peculiar character of God's elect, and a sign of
predestination, which advantage we are taught by St. Paul: `Put on, therefore,
as the elect of God, holy and beloved, bowels of mercy, kindness, etc.
Forbearing one another, and forgiving one another, if any man have a quarrel
against any.'[263] The result of all which
we may read in the words of St. Chrysostom: "To know the art of alms is greater
than to be crowned with the diadem of kings. And yet to convert one soul is
greater than to pour out ten thousand talents into the baskets of the poor."
But because giving alms is an act of the virtue
of mercifulness, our endeavour must be, by proper arts, to mortify the parents
of unmercifulness, which are - 1. Envy; 2. Anger; 3. Covetousness: in which we
may be helped by the following rules or instruments:
1. Against Envy, by way of consideration.
Against envy I shall use the same argument we
would use to persuade a man from the fever or the dropsy. 1. Because it is a
disease; it is so far from having pleasure in it, or a temptation to it that it
is full of pain, a great instrument of vexation: it eats the flesh, and dries
up the marrow, and makes hollow eyes and lean cheeks and a pale face. 2. It is
nothing but a direct resolution never to enter into heaven by the way of noble
pleasure taken in the good of others. 3. It is most contrary to God. 4. And a
just contrary state to the felicities and actions of heaven, where every star
increases the light of the other, and the multitude of guests at the supper of
the Lamb makes the eternal meal more festival. 5. It is perfectly the state of
hell and the passion of devils; for they do nothing but despair in
themselves,[264] and envy other's quiet or
safety, and yet cannot rejoice either in their good or in their evil, although
they endeavour to hinder that and procure this with all the devices and arts of
malice and of a great understanding. 6. Envy can serve no end in the world: it
cannot please anything, nor do anything, nor hinder anything, but the content
and felicity of him that hath. 7. Envy can never pretend to justice as hatred
and uncharitableness sometimes may; for there may be causes of hatred and I may
have wrong done me, and then hatred hath some pretence, though no just
argument. But no man is unjust or injurious for being prosperous or wise. And
therefore many men profess to hate another, but no man owns envy as being an
enmity and displeasure for no cause, but goodness or felicity: envious men,
being like cantharides and caterpillars, that delight most to devour ripe and
most excellent fruits.[265] It is of all
crimes the bassist: for malice and anger are appeased with benefits, but envy
is exasperated, as envying to fortunate persons both their power and their will
to do good, and never leaves murmuring till the envied person be levelled, and
then only the vulture leaves to eat the liver. For if his neighbour be made
miserable, the envious man is apt to be troubled: like him that is so long
unbuilding the turrets, till all the roof is low or flat, or that the stones
fall upon the lower buildings and do a mischief that the man repents of.
2. Remedies against Anger, by way of exercise.
The next enemy to mercifulness and the grace
of alms is anger, against which there are proper instruments both in prudence
and religion.
1. Prayer is the great remedy against anger; for
it must suppose it in some degree removed before we pray, and then it is the
more likely it will be finished when the prayer is done. We must lay aside the
act of anger as a preparatory to prayer; and the curing the habit will be the
effect and blessing of prayer; so that if a man, to cure his anger, resolves to
address himself to God by prayer, it is first necessary that, by his own
observation and diligence, he lay the anger aside before his prayer can be fit
to be presented; and when we so pray, and so endeavour, we have all the
blessings of prayer which God hath promised to it to be our security for
success.
2. If anger arises in thy breast, instantly seal
up thy lips and let it not go forth;[266]
for, like fire when it wants vent, it will suppress itself. It is good, in a
fever, to have a tender and a smooth tongue; but it is better that it be so in
anger; for if it be rough and distempered, there it is an ill sign, but here it
is an ill cause. Angry passion is a fire, and angry words are like breath to
fan it; together they are like steel and flint sending out fire by mutual
collision. Some men will discourse themselves into passion; and if their
neighbour be enkindled too, together they flame with rage and violence.
3. Humility is the most excellent natural cure
for anger in the world; for he, that by daily considering his own infirmities
and failings, makes the error of his neighbour or servant to be his won case,
and remembers that he daily needs God's pardon and his brother's charity, will
not be apt to rage at the levities, or misfortunes, or indiscretions, of
another, greater than which he considers that he is very frequently and more
inexcusably guilty of.
4. Consider the example of the ever-blessed
Jesus, who suffered all the contradictions of sinners, and received all
affronts and reproaches of malicious, rash, and foolish persons, and yet in all
of them was as dispassionate and gentle as the morning sun in autumn; and in
this also be propounded himself imitable by us. For if innocence itself did
suffer so great injuries and disgraces, it is no great matter for us quietly to
receive all the calamities of fortune and indiscretion of servants, and
mistakes of friends, and unkindnesses of kindred, and rudeness of enemies,
since we have deserved these and worse, even hell itself.
5. If we be tempted to anger in the actions of
government and discipline to our inferiors, (in which case anger is permitted
so far as it is prudently instrumental to government, and only is a sin when it
is excessive and unreasonable, and apt to disturb our own discourse, or to
express itself in imprudent words or violent actions,) let us propound to
ourselves the example of God the Father, who, at the same time, and with the
same tranquility, decreed heaven and hell, the joys of blessed angels and
souls, and the torments of devils and accursed spirits; and, at the day of
judgment, when all the world shall burn under his feet, God shall not be at all
inflamed or shaken in his essential seat and centre of tranquility and joy. And
if a first the cause seems reasonable, yet defer to execute they anger till
thou mayst better judge. For, as Phoeion told the Athenians, who, upon the
first news of the death of Alexander were ready to revolt, "Stay a while, for
if the king be not dead, your stay cannot prejudice your affairs, for he will
be dead tomorrow as well as to day;" so if thy servant or inferior deserves
punishment, staying till to-morrow will not make him innocent; but it may,
possibly, preserve thee so, by preventing thy striking a guiltless person, or
being furious for a trifle.
6. Remove from thyself all provocations and
incentives to anger; especially, I. Games of chance and great wagers. Patroclus
killed his friend,[267] the son of
Amphidamas, in his rage and sudden fury, rising upon a cross-game at table.
Such also are petty curiosities, and worldly business and carefulness about it;
but manage thyself with indifferency or contempt of those external things, and
do not spend a passion upon them, for it is more than they are worth. But they
that desire but few things can be crossed but in a few.[268] In not heaping up, with an ambitious or curious
prodigality, any very curious or choice utensils, seals, jewels, glasses,
precious stones; because those very many accidents which happen in the spoiling
or loss of these rarities, are, in event, an irresistible cause of violent
anger. 3. Do not entertain nor suffer tale-bearers; for they abuse our ears
first, and then our credulity, and then steal our patience, and, it may be, for
a lie; and, if it be true, the matter is not considerable; or if it be, yet it
is pardonable. And we may always escape with patience at one of these outlets;
either, 1. By not hearing slanders; or, 2. By not believing them; or, 3. By not
regarding the thing; or, 4. By forgiving the person. 4. To this purpose also it
may serve well, if we choose (as much as we can) to live with peaceable
persons, for that prevents the occasions of confusion; and if we live with
prudent persons, they will not easily occasion our disturbance. But because
these things are not in many men's power, therefore I propound this rather as a
felicity than a remedy or a duty, and an act of prevention than of cure.
7. Be not inquisitive into the affairs of other
men, nor the faults of thy servants, nor the mistakes of thy friends; but what
is offered to you, use according to the former rules; but do not thou go out to
gather sticks to kindle a fire to burn thine own house. And add this: "If my
friend said or did well in that for which I am angry, I am in the fault, not
he; but if he did amiss, he is in the misery, not I; for either he was
deceived, or he was malicious; and either of them both is all one with a
miserable person; and that is an object of pity not of anger."
8. Use all reasonable discourses to excuse the
faults of others, considering that there are many circumstances of time, of
person, of accident, of inadvertency, of infrequency, of aptness to amend, of
sorrow for doing it; and it is well that we take any good in exchange for the
evil done or suffered.
9. Upon the rising of anger, instantly enter into
a deep consideration of the joys of heaven, or the pains of hell; for "fear and
joy naturally apt to appease this violence."[269]
10. In contentions be always passive, never
active; upon the defensive, not the assaulting part: and then also give a
gentle answer, receiving the furies and indiscretions of the other, like a
stone into a bed of moss and soft compliance, and you shall find it sit down
quickly; whereas anger and violence, make the contention loud and long, and
injurious to both the parties.
11. In the actions of religion, be careful to
temper all thy instances with meekness, and the proper instruments of it; and
if thou beest apt to be angry, neither fast violently, nor entertain the too
forward heats of zeal, but secure thy duty with constant and regular actions,
and a good temper of body, with convenient refreshments and recreations.
12. If anger rises suddenly and violently, first
restrain it with consideration and then let it end in a hearty prayer for him
that did the real or seeming injury. The former of the two stops its growth,
and the latter quite kills it, and makes amends for its monstrous and
involuntary birth.
1. Consider that anger is a professed enemy
to counsel; it is a direct storm in which no man can be heard to speak or call
from without; for if you counsel gently, you are despised; if you urge it and
be vehement, you provoke it more. Be careful, therefore, to lay up beforehand a
great stock of reason and prudent consideration,[270] that, like a besieged town, you may be provided for,
and be defensible from within, since you are not likely to be relieved from
without. Anger is not to be suppressed but by something that is as inward as
itself, and more habitual. To which purpose add, that, 2. Of all passions it
endeavours most to make reason useless. 3. That it is a universal poison of an
infinite object; for no man was ever so amorous as to love a toad, none so
envious as to repine at the condition of the miserable, no man so timorous as
to fear a dead bee; but anger is troubled at everything, and every man, and
every accident, and, therefore, unless it be suppressed it will make a man's
condition restless. 4. If it proceeds from a great cause it turns to fury; if
from a small cause it is peevishness; and so is always either terrible or
ridiculous. 5. It makes a man's body monstrous, deformed, and contemptible, the
voice horrid, the eyes cruel, the face pale or fiery, the gait fierce, the
speech clamorous and loud. 6. It is neither manly nor ingenuous. It proceeds
from softness of spirit and pusillanimity, which makes that women are more
angry than men, sick persons more than the healthful, old men more than young,
unprosperous and calamitous people than the blessed and fortunate. 8. It is a
passion fitter for flies and insects than for persons professing nobleness and
bounty. 9. It is troublesome not only to those that suffer it, but to them that
behold it; there being no greater ineivility of entertainment than for the
cook's fault,[271] or the negligence of the
servants, to be cruel or outrageous, or unpleasant in the presence of the
guests. 10. It makes marriage to be a necessary and unavoidable trouble;
friendships and societies and familiarities to be intolerable. 11. It
multiplies the evils of drunkenness, and makes the levities of wine to run into
madness. 12. It makes innocent jesting to be the beginning of tragedies. 13. It
turns friendship into hatred; it makes a man lose himself and his reason and
his argument, in disputation. It turns the desires of knowledge into an itch of
wrangling. It adds insolency to power. It turns justice into cruelty, and
judgment into oppression. It changes discipline into tediousness and hatred of
liberal institution. It makes a prosperous man to be envied and the unfortunate
to be unpitied. It is a confluence of all the irregular passions; there is in
it envy and sorrow, fear and scorn, pride and prejudice, rashness and
inconsideration, rejoicing in evil and a desire to inflict it, self-love,
impatience, and curiosity. And, lastly, though it be very troublesome to
others, yet it is most troublesome to him that hath it.
In the use of these arguments, and the former
exercises, be diligent to observe lest, in your desires to suppress anger, you
be passionate and angry at yourself for being angry; like physicians[272] who give a bitter potion when they intend
to eject the bitterness of the choler, for this will provoke the person and
increase the passion. But placidly and quietly set upon the mortification of
it, and attempt it first for a day, resolving that day not at all to be angry,
and to be watchful and observant, for a day is no great trouble; but, then,
after one day's watchfulness it will be as easy to watch two days as at first
it was to watch one day, and so you may increase till it becomes easy and
habitual.
Only observe that such an anger alone is criminal
which is against charity to myself or my neighbour; but anger against sin is a
holy zeal, and an effect of love to God and my brother, for whose interest I am
passionate, like a concerned person; and if I take care that my anger makes no
reflection of scorn or cruelty upon the offender, or of pride and violence, or
transportation to myself, anger becomes charity and duty. And when one
commended Charilaus, the king of Sparta, for a gentle, a good, and a meek
prince, his colleague said well, "How can he be good who is not an enemy even
to vicious persons?"[273]
3. Remedies against Covetousness, the third Enemy of Mercy.
Covetousness is also an enemy to alms, though
not to all the effects of mercifulness; but this is to be cured by the proper
motives to charity before mentioned, and by the proper rules of justice, which
being secured, the arts of getting money are not easily made criminal. To which
also we may add:
1. Covetousness makes a man miserable, because
riches are not means to make a man happy;[274] and unless felicity were to be bought with
money, he is a vain person who admires heaps of gold and rich possessions. For
what Hippomachus said to some persons who commended a tall man as fit to be a
champion in the Olympic games, "It is true," said he, "if the crown hang so
high that the longest arm could reach it;" the same we may say concerning
riches; they were excellent things, if the richest man were certainly the
wisest and the best; but as they are they are nothing to be wondered at,
because they contribute nothing towards felicity; which appears, because some
men choose to be miserable, that they may be rich, rather than be happy with
the expense of money and doing noble things.
2. Riches are useless and unprofitable; for
beyond our needs and conveniences nature knows no use of riches: and they say
the princes of Italy, when they sup alone eat out of a single dish, and drink
in a plain glass, and the wife eats without purple; for nothing is more frugal
than the back and belly, if they be used as they should; but when they would
entertain the eyes of strangers, when they are vain, and would make a noise,
then riches come forth to set forth the spectacle, and furnish out the comedy
of wealth, of vanity. No man can with all the wealth in the world, buy so much
skill as to be a good lutenist; he must go the same way that poor people do, he
must learn and take pains; much less can he buy constancy or chastity or
courage; nay, not so much as the contempt of riches: and by possessing more
than we need, we cannot obtain so much power over our souls as not to require
more. And certainly riches must deliver me from no evil, if the possession of
them cannot take away the longing for them. If any man be thirsty, drink cools
him; if he be hungry, eating meat satisfies him; and when a man is cold, and
calls for a warm cloak, he is pleased if you give it him; but you trouble him
if you load him with six or eight cloaks. Nature rests and sits still when she
hath her portion; but that which exceeds it is a trouble and a burden; and,
therefore, in true philosophy, no man is rich but he that is poor according to
the common account; for when God hath satisfied those needs which he made, that
is, all that is natural, whatsoever is beyond it is thirst and a disease; and,
unless it be sent back again in charity or religion, can serve no end but vice
or vanity: it can increase the appetite to represent the man poorer, and full
of a new and artificial, unnatural need; but it never satisfies the need it
makes, or makes the man richer. No wealth can satisfy the covetous desire of
wealth.
3. Riches are troublesome; but the satisfaction
of those appetites which God and nature hath made are cheap and easy; for who
ever paid use-money for bread and onions and water to keep him alive?[275] but when we covet after houses of the
frame and design of Italy, or long for jewels, or for our next neighbour's
field, or horses from Barbary, or the richest perfumes of Ababia, or Galatian
mules, or fat eunuchs for our slaves from Tunis, or rich coaches from Naples,
then we can never be satisfied till we have the best things that are fancied,
and all that can be had, and all that can be desired, and that we can lust no
more; but before we come to the one-half of our first wild desires, we are the
bondmen of usurers, and of our worse-tyrant appetites, and the tortures of envy
and impatience. But I consider that those who drink on still when their thirst
is quenched, or eat not only their superfluity, but even that which at first
was necessary: so those that covet more than they can temperately use, are
oftentimes forced to part even with that patrimony which would have supported
their persons in freedom and honour, and have satisfied all their reasonable
desires.
4. Contentedness is therefore health, because
covetousness is a direct sickness: and it was well said of Aristippus, (as
Plutarch reports him,) if any man, after much eating and drinking, be still
unsatisfied, he hath no need of more meat or more drink, but of a physician; he
more needs to be purged than to be filled: and therefore, since covetousness
cannot be satisfied, it must be cured by emptiness and evacuation. The man is
without remedy, unless he be reduced to the scantling of nature, and the
measures of his personal necessity. Give to a poor man a house, and a few cows,
pay his little debt, and set him on work, and he is provided for, and quiet;
but when a man enlarges beyond a fair possession, and desires another lordship,
you spite him if you let him have it; for by that he is one degree the further
off from the rest in his desires and satisfaction; and now he sees himself in a
bigger capacity to a larger fortune; and he shall never find his period, till
you begin to take away something of what he hath; for then he will begin to be
glad to keep that which is left; but reduce him to nature's measures, and there
he shall be sure to find rest; for there is no man can desire beyond his
bellyful; and, when he wants that, any one friend or charitable man can cure
his poverty, but all the world cannot satisfy his covetousness.
5. Covetousness is the most fantastical and
contradictory disease in the whole world: it must, therefore, be incurable;
because it strives against its own cure. No man, therefore, abstains from meat,
because he is hungry; nor from wine, because he loves it and needs it; but the
covetous man does so, for he desires it passionately, because he says he needs
it, and when he hath it, he will need it still, because he dares not use it. He
gets clothes, because he cannot be without them; but when he hath them, then he
can; as if he needed corn for his granary, and clothes for his wardrobes, more
than for his back and belly. For covetousness pretends to heap much together
for fear of want; and yet, after all his pains and purchase, he suffers that
really, which, at first, he feared vainly; and by not using what he gets, he
makes that suffering to be actual, present, and necessary, which, in his lowest
condition, was but future, contingent, and possible. It stirs up the desire,
and takes away the pleasure of being satisfied. It increases the appetite, and
will not content it: it swells the principal to no purpose, and lessens the use
to all purposes; disturbing the order of nature, and the designs of God; making
money not to be the instrument of exchange or charity, nor corn to feed himself
or the poor, nor wool to clothe himself or his brother, nor wine to refresh the
sadness of the afflicted, nor his oil to make his own countenance cheerful; but
all these to look upon, and to tell over, and to take accounts by, and make
himself considerable, and wondered at by fools; that while he lives he may be
called rich, and when he dies may be accounted miserable; and, like the
dish-makers of China, may leave a greater heap of dirt for his nephews, while
he himself hath a new lot fallen to him in the portion of Dives. But thus the
ass carried wood and sweet herbs to the baths, but was never washed or perfumed
himself: he heaped up sweets for others, while himself was filthy with smoke
and ashes. And yet it is considerable; if the man can be content to feed
hardly, and labour extremely, and watch carefully, and suffer affronts and
disgrace, that he may get money more than he uses in his temperate and just
needs, with how much ease might this man be happy? and with how great
uneasiness and trouble does he make himself miserable? For he takes pains to
get content, and when he might have it he lets it go. He might better be
content with a virtuous and quiet poverty, than with an artificial,
troublesome, and vicious. The same diet and a less labour would, at first, make
him happy, and for ever after rewardable.
6. The sum of all is that which the apostle says,
"Covetousness is idolatry;" that is, it is an admiring money for itself, not
for its use; it relies upon money, and loves it more than it loves God and
religion: and it is `the root of all evil;' it teaches men to be cruel and
crafty, industrious in evil, full of care and malice; it devours young heirs,
and grinds the face of the poor, and undoes those who specially belong to God's
protection, helpless, craftless, and innocent people; it inquires into our
parent's age, and longs for the death of our friends; it makes friendship an
art of rapine, and changes a partner into a vulture, and a companion into a
thief; and, after all this, it is for no good to itself; for it dares not spend
those heaps of treasure which it snatched: and men hate serpents and basilisks
worse than lions and bears; for these kill because they need the prey, but they
sting to death and eat not. And if they pretend all this care and heap for
their heirs, (like the mice of Africa, hiding the golden ore in their bowels,
and refusing to give back the indigested gold, till their guts be out,) they
may remember, that what was unnecessary for themselves in unnecessary for their
sons; and why cannot they be without it, as well as their fathers, who did not
use it? And it often happens that to the sons it becomes an instrument to serve
some lust or other; that, as the gold was useless to their fathers, so may the
sons be to the public, fools or prodigals, loads to their country, and the
curse and punishment of their father's avarice: and yet all that wealth is
short of one blessing; but it is a load, coming with a curse, and descending
from the family of a long-derived sin. However, the father transmits it to the
son, and it may be the son to one more; till a tyrant, or an oppressor, or a
war, or change of government, or the usurer, or folly, or an expensive vice,
makes holes in the bottom of the bag, and the wealth runs out like water, and
flies away like a bird from the hand of a child.
7. Add to these the consideration of the
advantages of poverty;[276] that it is a
state freer from temptation, secure in dangers, but of one trouble, safe under
the Divine Providence, cared for in heaven by a daily ministration, and for
whose support God makes every day a new decree; a state, of which Christ was
pleased to make open profession, and many wise men daily make vows; that a rich
man is but like a pool, to whom the poor run, and first trouble it, and then
draw it dry: that he enjoys no more of it than according to the few and limited
needs of a man; he cannot eat like a wolf or an elephant; that variety of
dainty fare ministers but to sin and sicknesses; that the poor man, feasts
oftener than the rich,[277] because every
little enlargement is a feast to the poor, but he that feasts every day feasts
no day, there being nothing left to which he may, beyond his ordinary, extend
his appetite; that the rich man sleeps not so soundly as the poor labourer;
that his fears are more, and his needs are greater, (for who is poorer, he that
needs 5/. or he that needs 5000/.?) the poor man hath enough to fill his belly,
and the rich hath not enough to fill his eye; that the poor man's wants are
easy to be relieved by a common charity, but the needs of rich men cannot be
supplied but by princes; and they are left to the temptation of great vices to
make reparation of their needs; and the ambitious labours of men to get great
estates are but like the selling of a fountain to buy a fever, a parting with
content to buy necessity, a purchase of an unhandsome condition at the price of
infelicity; that princes, and they that enjoy most of the world, have most of
it but in title, and supreme rights, and reserved privileges, peppercorns,
homages, trifling services, and acknowledgments, the real use descending to
others, to more substantial purposes. These considerations may be useful to the
curing of covetousness; that, the grace of mercifulness enlarging the heart of
a man, his hand may not be contracted, but reached out to the poor in alms.
_____________________
Repentance, of all things in the world, makes
the greatest change: it changes things in heaven and earth; for it changes the
whole man from sin to grace, from vicious habits to holy customs, from unchaste
bodies to angelical souls, from swine to philosophers, from drunkenness to
sober counsels, and God himself, `with whom is no variableness or shadow of
change,' is pleased, by descending to our weak understandings, to say, that he
changes also upon man's repentance, that he alters his decrees, revokes his
sentence, cancels the bills of accusation, throws the records of shame and
sorrow from the court of heaven, and lifts up the sinner from the grave to
life, from his prison to a throne, from hell and the guilt of eternal torture,
to heaven and to a title, to never-ceasing felicities. If we be bound on earth,
we shall be bound in heaven; if we be absolved here, we shall be loosed there;
if we repent; God will repent, and not send the evil upon us which we had
deserved.
But repentance is a conjugation and society of
many duties; and it contains in it all the parts of a holy life, from the time
of our return to the day of our death inclusively; and it hath in it some
things specially relating to the sins of our former days, which we now to be
abolished by special arts, and have obliged us to special labours, and brought
in many new necessities, and put us into a very great deal of danger. And,
because it is a duty consisting of so many parts and so much employment, it
also requires much time, and leaves a man in the same degree of hope of pardon,
as is his restitution to the state of righteousness and holy living, for which
we covenanted in baptism. For we must know, that there is but one repentance in
a man's whole life, if repentance be taken in the proper and strict evangelical
covenant sense, and not after the ordinary understanding of the world: that is,
we are but once to change our whole state of life, from the power of the devil
and his entire possession, from the state of sin and death, from the body of
corruption, to the life of grace, to the possession of Jesus, to the kingdom of
the gospel; and this is done in the baptism of water, or in the baptism of the
Spirit, when the first rite comes to be verified by God's grace coming upon us,
and by our obedience to the heavenly calling, we working together with God.
After this change, if ever we fall into the contrary state, and he wholly
estranged from God and religion, and profess ourselves servants of
unrighteousness, God hath made no more covenant of restitution to us; there is
no place left for any more repentance, or entire change of condition, or new
birth: a man can be regenerated but once; and such are voluntary malicious
apostates, witches, obstinate impenitent persons, and the life. But if we be
overtaken by infirmity, or enter into the marches or borders of this estate and
commit a grievous sin, or ten, or twenty, so we be not in the entire possession
of the devil, we are, for the present, in a damnable condition if we die; but
if we live, we are in a recoverable condition; for so we may repent often. We
repent or rise from death but once - from sickness many times; and by the grace
of God we shall be pardoned if so we repent. But our hopes of pardon are just
as is the repentance; which, if it be timely, hearty, industrious, and
effective, God accepts; not by weighing grains or scruples but by estimating
the great proportions of our life. A hearty endeavour, and an effectual general
change shall get the pardon; the unavoidable infirmities and past evils and
present imperfections and short interruptions, against which we watch and pray
and strive, being put upon the accounts of the cross, and paid for by the holy
Jesus. This is the state and condition of repentance: its parts and actions
must be valued according to the following rules:
1. He that repents truly, is greatly
sorrowful for his past sins; not with a superficial sigh or tear, but a
pungent, afflictive sorrow; such a sorrow as hates the sin so much, that the
man would choose to die rather than act it any more. This sorrow is called in
Scripture, `a weeping sorely; a weeping with bitterness of heart; a weeping day
and night; a sorrow of heart; a breaking of the spirit; mourning like a dove,
and chattering like a swallow;'[278] and we
may read the degree and manner of it by the lamentations and sad accents of the
prophet Jeremy, when he wept for the sins of the nation; by the heart-breaking
of David, when he mourned for his murder and adultery; and the bitter weeping
of St. Peter, after the shameful denying of his master. The expression of this
sorrow differs according to the temper of the body, the sex, the age, and
circumstances of action, and the motive of sorrow, and by many accidental
tendernesses, or masculine hardnesses; and the repentance is not to be
estimated by the tears, but by the grief; and the grief is to be valued not by
the sensitive trouble, but by the cordial hatred of the sin, and ready actual
dereliction of it, and a resolution and real resisting its consequent
temptations. Some people can shed tears for nothing, some for anything; but the
proper and true effects of a godly sorrow are, fear of the Divine judgments,
apprehension of God's displeasure, watchings and strivings against sin,
patiently enduring the cross of sorrow (which God sends as their punishment) in
accusation of ourselves, in perpetually begging pardon, in mean and base
opinions of ourselves, and in all the natural productions from these, according
to our temper and constitution. For if we be apt to weep in other accidents, it
is ill if we weep not also in the sorrows of repentance; not that weeping is of
itself a duty, but that the sorrow, if it be as great, will be still expressed
in as great a manner.
2. Our sorrow for sins must retain the proportion
of our sins, though not the equality. We have no particular measures of sins;
we know not which is greater, of sacrilege or superstition, idolatry or
covetousness, rebellion or witchcraft; and therefore God ties us not to nice
measures of sorrow, but only that we keep the general rules of proportion; that
is, that a great sin have a great grief, a smaller crime being to be washed off
with a lesser shower.
3. Our sorrow for sins is then best accounted of
for its degree, when it, together with all the penal and afflictive duties of
repentance we had in commission of the sin.[279]
4. True repentance is a punishing duty, and acts
its sorrow; and judges and condemns the sin by voluntarily submitting to such
sadnesses as God sends on us, or (to prevent the judgment of God) by judging
ourselves, and punishing our bodies and our spirits by such instruments of
piety as are troublesome to the body; such as are fasting, watching, long
prayers, troublesome postures in our prayers, expensive alms, and all outward
acts of humiliation. For he that must judge himself, must condemn himself if he
be guilty; and if he be condemned he must be punished; and if he be so judged,
it will help to prevent the judgment of the Lord, St. Paul instructing us in
this particular.[280] But I before intimated
that the punishing actions of repentance are only actions of sorrow, and
therefore are to make up the proportions of it. For our grief may be so full of
trouble as to outweigh all the burdens of fasts and bodily afflictions, and
then the other are the less necessary; and when they are used, the benefit of
them is to obtain of God a remission or a lessening of such temporal judgments
which God hath decreed against the sins, as it was in the case of Ahab; but the
sinner is not, by anything of this, reconciled to the eternal favour of God;
for, as yet, this is but the introduction to repentance.
5. Every true penitent is obliged to confess his
sins, and to humble himself before God for ever. Confession of sins hath a
special promise: `If we confess our sins;[281] he is faithful and just to forgive us our sins;'
meaning, that God hath bound himself to forgive us if we duly confess our sins,
and do all that for which confession was appointed; that is, be ashamed of
them, and own them no more. For confession of our sins to God can signify
nothing of itself in its direct nature: he sees us when we act them, and keeps
a record of them; and we forget them, unless he reminds us of them by his
grace. So `that to confess them to God does not punish us, or make us ashames;
but confession to him, if it proceeds from shame and sorrow, and is an act of
humility and self-condemnation,' and is a laying open our wounds for cure, then
it is a duty God delights in. In all which circumstances, because we may very
much be helped if we take in the assistance of a spiritual guide, therefore the
church of God, in all ages, hath commended, and, in most ages, enjoined, that
we confess our sins, and discover the state and condition of our souls, to such
a person whom we or our superiors judge fit to help us in such needs. For so
`if we confess our sins one to another,' as St. James advises, we shall obtain
the prayers of the holy man whom God and the church have appointed solemnly to
pray for us; and when he knows our needs, he can best minister comfort or
reproof, oil or caustics; he can more opportunely recommend your particular
state to God; he can determine your cases of conscience, and judge better for
you than you do for yourself; and the shame of opening such ulcers may restrain
your forwardness to contract them; and all these circumstances of advantage
will do very much towards the forgiveness. And this course was taken by the new
converts in the days of the apostles; `For many that believed came and
confessed and showed their deeds.[282] And
it were well if this duty were practised prudently and innocently in order to
public discipline, or private comfort and instruction; but that it be done to
God is a duty not directly for itself, but for its adjuncts and the duties that
go with it, or before it, or after it: which duties, because they are all to be
helped and guided by our pastors and curates of souls, he is careful of his
eternal interest, that will not lose the advantage of using a private guide and
judge. `He that bideth his sins shall not prosper;' Non dirigetur, saith
the vulgar Latin, "he shall want a guide;" but who confesseth and forsaketh
them shall have mercy.[283] And to this
purpose Climacus reports that divers holy persons in that age did use to carry
table-books with them, and in them described an account of all their
determinate thoughts, purposes, words, and actions, in which they had suffered
infirmity; that by communicating the estate of their souls they might be
instructed and guided, or corrected or encouraged.
6. True repentance must reduce to act all its
holy purposes, and enter into and run through the state of holy living,[284] which is contrary to that state of
darkness in which in times past we walked.[285] For to resolve to do it, and yet not to do it, is to
break our resolution and our faith, to mock God, to falsify and evacuate all
the preceding acts of repentance, `and to make our pardon hopeless and our hope
fruitless. He that resolves to live well when a danger is upon him, or a
violent fear, or when the appetites of lust are newly satisfied, or newly
served, and yet when the temptation comes again, sins again, and then is
sorrowful, and resolves once more against it, and yet falls when the temptation
returns, is a vain man, but no true penitent, nor in the state of grace; and if
he chance to die in one of these good moods is very far from salvation; for if
it be necessary that we resolve to live well, it is necessary we should do so.
For resolution is an imperfect act, a term of relation, and signifies nothing
but in order to the actions; it is as a faculty is to the act, as spring is to
the harvest, as eggs are to birds, as a relative to its correspondent, nothing
without it. No man therefore can be in the state of grace and actual favour by
resolutions and holy purposes; these are but the gate and portal towards
pardon; a holy life is the only perfection of repentance, and the firm ground
upon which we can cast the anchor of hope in the mercies of God, through Jesus
Christ.
7. No man is to reckon his pardon immediately
upon his returns from sin to the beginnings of good life, but it is to begin
his hopes and degrees of confidence according as sin dies in him, and grace
lives; as the habits of sin returns but seldom in smaller instances and without
choice, and by surprise without deliberation; and is highly disrelished, and
presently dashed against the rock Christ Jesus, by a holy sorrow and renewed
care, and more strict watchfulness. For a holy life being the condition of the
covenant on our part as we return to God, so God returns to us, and our state
returns to the probabilities of pardon.
8. Every man is to work out his salvation with
fear and trembling; and after the commission of sins his fears must multiply;
because every new sin and every great declining from the ways of God is still a
degree of new danger, and hath increased God's anger, and hath made him more
uneasy to grant pardon; and when he does grant it, it is upon harder terms both
for doing and suffering; that is, we must do more for pardon, and, it may be,
suffer much more. For we must know that God pardons our sins by parts; as our
duty increases, and our care is more prudent and active, so God's anger
decreases: and yet, it may be, the last sin you committed made God unalterably
resolve to send upon you some sad judgment. Of the particulars in all cases we
are uncertain; and therefore we have reason always to mourn for our sins that
have so provoked God, and made our condition so full of danger that, it may be,
no prayers or tears of duty can alter his sentence concerning some sad judgment
upon us. Thus God irrevocably decreed to punish the Israelites for idolatry,
although Moses prayed for them, and God forgave them in some degree; that is,
so that he would not cut them off from being a people; yet he would not forgive
them so, but he would visit that their sin upon them; and he did so.
9. A true penitent must, all the days of his
life[286] pray for pardon, and never thing
the work completed till he dies; not by any act of his own, by no act of the
church, by no forgiveness by the party injured, by no restitution. These are
all instruments of great use and efficacy, and the means by which it is to be
done at length; but still the sin lies at the door, ready to return upon us in
judgment and damnation, if we return to it in choice or action. And whether God
hath forgiven us or no, we know not,[287]
and how far we know not; and all that we have done is not of sufficient worth
to obtain pardon: therefore still pray, and still be sorrowful for ever having
done it, and for ever watch against it; and then those beginnings of pardon,
which are working all the way, will at last be perfected in the day of the
Lord.
10. Defer not at all to repent; much less mayst
thou put it off to thy death-bed. It is not an easy thing to root out the
habits of sin[288] which a man's whole life
hath gathered and confirmed. We find work enough to mortify one beloved lust,
in our very best advantage of strength and time, and before it is so deeply
rooted, as it must needs be supposed to be at the end of a wicked life: and
therefore it will prove impossible, when the work is so great and the strength
so little, when sin is so strong and grace so weak; for they always keep the
same proportion of increase and decrease, and as sin grows grace decays: so
that the more need we have of grace, the less at that time we shall have;
because the greatness of our sins, which makes the need, hath lessened the
grace of God, which should help up, into nothing. To which add this
consideration, that on a man's death-bed the day of repentance is past; for
repentance being the renewing of a holy life, a living the life of grace, it is
a contradiction to say that a man can live a holy life upon his death-bed,
especially if we consider, that for a sinner to live a holy life must first
suppose him to have overcome all his evil habits, and then to have made a
purchase of the contrary graces, by the labours of great prudence,
watchfulness, self-denial and severity.[289]
"Nothing that is excellent can be wrought suddenly."
11. After the beginnings of thy recovery, be
infinitely fearful of a relapse; and therefore, upon the stock of thy sad
experience, observe where thy failings were, and by especial arts fortify that
faculty, and arm against that temptation. For if all those arguments which God
uses to us to preserve our innocence, and thy late danger, and thy fears, and
the goodness of God making thee once to escape, and the shame of thy fall, and
the sense of thy own weaknesses, will not make thee watchful against a fall,
especially knowing how much it costs a man to be restored, it will be
infinitely more dangerous if ever thou fallest again; not only for fear God
should no more accept thee to pardon, but even thy own hopes will be made more
desperate and thy impatience greater, and thy shame turn to impudence, and thy
own will be more estranged, violent, and refractory, and thy latter end will be
worse than thy beginning. To which add this consideration, that thy sin, which
was formerly in a good way of being pardoned, will not only return upon thee
with all its own loads, but with the baseness of unthankfulness, and thou wilt
be set as far back from heaven as ever; and all thy former labours and fears
and watchings and agonies will be reckoned for nothing, but as arguments to
upbraid thy folly, who, when thou hadst set one foot in heaven didst pull that
back, and carry both to hell.
I shall use no other arguments to move a
sinner to repentance, but to tell him, unless he does he shall certainly
perish; and if he does repent timely and entirely, that is, live a holy life,
he shall be forgiven and be saved. But yet I desire, that this consideration be
enlarged with some great circumstances; and let us remember,
1. That to admit mankind to repentance and pardon
was a favour greater than ever God gave to the angels and devils; for they were
never admitted to the condition of second thoughts: Christ never groaned one
groan for them; he never suffered one stripe, nor one affront, nor shed one
drop of blood, to restore them to hopes of blessedness after their first
failings. But this he did for us: he paid the score of our sins, only that this
repentance might be effectual to the great purposes of felicity and
salvation.
2. Consider, that as it cost Christ many millions
of prayers and groans and sighs, so he is now at this instant, and hath been
for these sixteen hundred years, night and day, incessantly praying for grace
to us, that we may repent; and for pardon when we do; and for degrees of pardon
beyond the capacities of our infirmities, and the merit of our sorrows and
amendment;[290] for he ever liveth to make
intercession for us.' And that we may know what it is in behalf of which he
intercedes, St. Paul tells us his design; `We are ambassadors for Christ, as
though he did beseech you by us, we pray you in Christ's stead to be reconciled
to God.[291] And what Christ prays us to do,
he prays to God that we may do; that which he desires of us as his servants, he
desires of God, who is the fountain of the grace and powers unto us, and
without whose assistance we can do nothing.
3. That ever we should repent, was so costly a
purchase, and so great a concernment, and so high a favour, and the event is
esteemed by God himself so great an excellency, that our blessed Saviour tells
us, `there shall be joy in heaven over one sinner that repenteth;'[292] meaning, that when Christ shall be
glorified, and the right hand of his Father make intercession for us, praying
for our repentance, the conversion and repentance of every sinner is part of
Christ's glorification, it is the answering of his prayers, it is a portion of
his reward, in which he does essentially glory by the joys of his glorified
humanity. This is the joy of our Lord himself directly, not of the angels, save
only by reflection: the joy (said our blessed Saviour) shall be in the presence
of the angels; they shall see the glory of the Lord, the answering of his
prayers, the satisfaction of his desires, and the reward of his sufferings, in
the repentance and consequent pardon of a sinner. For therefore be once
suffered, and for that reason he rejoices for ever. And therefore, when a
penitent sinner comes to receive the effect and full consummation of his
pardon, it is called `an entering into the joy of our Lord;' that is, a
partaking of that joy which Christ received at our conversion and enjoyed ever
since.
4. Add to this, that the rewards of heaven are so
great and glorious, and Christ's burden is so light, his yoke is so easy, that
it is a shameless impudence to expect so great glories at a less rate than so
little a service, at a lower rate than a holy life. It cost the heart-blood of
the Son of God to obtain heaven for us upon that condition; and who shall die
again to get heaven for us upon easier terms? What would you do, if God should
command you to kill your eldest son, or to work in the mines for a thousand
years together, or to fast all thy lifetime with bread and water? were not
heaven a very great bargain even after all this? And when God requires nothing
of us but to live soberly, justly, and godly, (which things themselves are to a
man a very great felicity, and necessary to our present well-being,) shall we
think this to be an intolerable burden, and that heaven is too little a
purchase at that price; and that God, in mere justice, will take a death-bed
sigh or groan, and a few unprofitable tears and promises in exchange for all
our duty?
If these motives, joined together with our own
interest, (even as much as felicity, and the sight of God, and the avoiding the
intolerable pains of hell, and many intermedial judgments, come to,) will not
move us to leave, 1. the filthiness, and, 2. the trouble, and, 3. the
uneasiness, and, 4. the unreasonableness of sin, and turn to God, there is no
more to be said: we must perish in our folly.
_________________________
1. The celebration of the holy sacrament is
the great mysteriousness of the Christian religion, and succeeds to the most
solemn rite of natural and Judaical religion, the law of sacrificing. For God
spared mankind, and took the sacrifice of beasts, together with our solemn
prayers, for an instrument of expiation. But these could not purify the soul
from sin, but were typical of the sacrifice of something that could. But
nothing could do this, but either the offering of all that sinned, that every
man should be the anathema or devoted thing: or else by some one of the
same capacity, who by some superadded excellency might, in his own personal
sufferings have a value great enough to satisfy for all the whole king of
sinning persons. This the Son of God, Jesus Christ, God and man undertook, and
finished by a sacrifice of himself upon the altar of the cross.
2. This sacrifice, because it was perfect, could
be but one, and that once; but because the needs of the world should last as
long as the world itself, it was necessary that there should be a perpetual
ministry established, whereby this one sufficient sacrifice should be made
eternally effectual to the several new-arising needs of all the world, who
should desire it, or in any sense be capable of it.
3. To this end Christ was made a priest for ever:
he was initiated or consecrated on the cross, and there began his priesthood,
which was to last till his coming to judgment. It began on earth, but was to
last and be officiated in heaven, where he sits perpetually representing and
exhibiting to the Father that great effective sacrifice which he offered on the
cross, to eternal and never-failing purposes.
4. As Christ is pleased to represent to his
Father that great sacrifice as a means of atonement and expiation for all
mankind, and with special purposes and intendment for all the elect, all that
serve him in holiness; so he hath appointed that the same ministry shall be
done upon earth too, in our manner, and according to our proportion; and of men
who, by `shewing forth the Lord's death,' by sacramental representations, may
pray unto God after the same manner that our Lord and high-priest does; that
is, offer to God and represent in this solemn prayer and sacrament, Christ is
already offered; so sending up a gracious instrument, whereby our prayers may,
for his sake and in the same manner of intercession, be offered up to God in
our behalf, and for all them for whom we pray, to all those purposes for which
Christ died.
5. As the ministers of the sacrament do, in a
sacramental manner, present to God the sacrifice of the cross, by being
imitators of Christ's intercession; so the people are sacrificers too in their
manner; for besides that, by saying Amen, they join in the act of him that
ministers, and make it also to be their own; so, when they eat and drink to
consecrated and blessed elements worthily, they receive Christ within them, and
therefore may also offer him to God, while, in their sacrifice of obedience and
thanksgiving, they present themselves to God with Christ, whom they have
spiritually received, that is, themselves with that which will make them
gracious and acceptable. The offering their bodies and souls and services to
God in him, and by him, and with him, who is his Father's well-beloved, and in
whom he is well pleased, cannot but be accepted to all the purposes of
blessing, grace, and glory.[293]
6. This is the sum of the greatest mystery of our
religion; it is the copy of the passion, and the ministration of the great
mystery of our redemption; and therefore, whatsoever entitles us to the general
privileges of Christ's passion, all that is necessary by way of disposition to
the celebration of the sacrament of his passion; because this celebration is
our manner of applying or using it. The particulars of which preparation are
represented in the following rules:
1. No man must dare to approach to the holy
sacrament of the Lord's supper, if he be in a state of any one sin,[294] that is, unless he have entered into the
state of repentance, that is, of sorrow and amendment; lest it be said
concerning him, as it was concerning Judas, the hand of him that betrayeth me
is with me on the table: and he that receiveth Christ into an impure soul or
body, first turns his most excellent nourishment into poison, and then feeds
upon it.
2. Every communicant must first have examined
himself; that is, tried the condition and state of his soul, searched out the
secret ulcers, inquired out its weaknesses and indiscretions, and all those
aptnesses where it is exposed to temptation; that, by finding out its diseases
he may find a cure, and by discovering its aptnesses he may secure his present
purposes of future amendment, and may be armed against dangers and
temptations.
3. This examination must be a man's own act and
inquisition into his life; but then also it should lead a man on to run to
those whom the great Physician of our souls, Christ Jesus, hath appointed to
minister physic to our diseases, that in all dangers and great accidents we may
be assisted for comfort and remedy, for medicine and caution.
4. In this affair let no man deceive himself, and
against such a time which public authority hath appointed for us to receive the
sacrament, weep for his sins by way of solemnity and ceremony, and still retain
the affection: but he that comes to this feast must have on the
wedding-garment, that is, he must have put o Jesus Christ, and he must have put
off the old man with his affections and lusts; and he must be wholly conformed
to Christ in the image of his mind. For then we have put on Christ when our
souls are clothed with is righteousness, when every faculty of our soul is
proportioned and vested according to the pattern of Christ's life. And
therefore a man must not leap from his last night's surfeit and bath, and then
communicate; but when he hath begun the work of God effectually, and made some
progress in repentance, and hath walked some stages and periods in the ways of
godliness, then let him come to him that is to minister it, and having made
known the state of his soul, he is to be admitted; but to receive into an
unhallowed soul and body is to receive the dust of the tabernacle in the waters
of jealousy; it will make the belly to swell, and the thigh to rot; it will not
convey Christ to us, but the devil will enter and dwell there, till with it he
returns to his dwelling of torment. Remember always, that after a great sin, or
after a habit of sins, a man is not soon made clean; and no unclean thing must
come to this feast. It is not the preparation of two or three days that can
render a person capable of this banquet; for in this feast, all Christ, and
Christ's passion, and all his graces, the blessings and effects of his
sufferings, are conveyed. Nothing can fit us for this but what can unite us to
Christ, and obtain of him to present our needs to his heavenly Father: this
sacrament can no otherwise be celebrated but upon the same terms on which we
may hope for pardon and heaven itself.
5. When we have this general and indispensably
necessary preparation, we are to make our souls more adorned and trimmed up
with circumstances of pious actions and special devotions, setting apart some
portion of our time immediately before the day of solemnity, according as our
great occasions will permit: and this time is specially to be spent in actions
of repentance, confession of our sins, renewing our purposes of holy living,
praying for pardon of our failings and for those graces which may prevent the
like sadnesses for the time to come, meditation upon the passion, upon the
infinite love of God expressed in so great mysterious manners of redemption;
and indefinitely in all acts of virtue which may build our souls up into a
temple fit for the reception of Christ himself and the inhabitation of the Holy
Spirit.
6. The celebration of the holy sacrament being
the most solemn prayer, joined with the most effectual instrument of its
acceptance, must suppose us in the love of God and in charity with all the
world; and therefore we must, before every communion especially, remember what
differences or jealousies are between us and any one else, and recompose all
disunions, and cause right understandings between each other; offering to
satisfy whom we have injured, and to forgive them who have injured us, without
thoughts of resuming the quarrel when the solemnity is over; for that is but to
rake the embers in light and fantastic ashes; it must be quenched, and a holy
flame enkindled - no fires must be at all, but the fires of love and zeal; and
the altar of incense will send up a sweet perfume, and make atonement for
us.
7. When the day of the feast is come, lay aside
all cares and impertinences of the world, and remember that this is thy soul's
day, a day of traffic and intercourse with heaven. Arise early in the morning.
1. Give God thanks for the approach of so great a blessing. 2. Confess thine
own unworthiness to admit so divine a guest. 3. Then remember and deplore thy
sins, which have made thee so unworthy. 4. Then confess God's goodness, and
take sanctuary there, and upon him place thy hopes; 5. And invite him to thee
with renewed acts of love, of holy desire, of hatred of his enemy, sin. 6. Make
oblation of thyself wholly to be disposed by him, to the obedience of him, to
his providence and possession, and pray him to enter and dwell there for ever.
And after this, with joy and holy fear, and the forwardness of love, address
thyself to the receiving of him, to whom, and by whom, and for whom, all faith
and all hope and all love, in the whole catholic church, both in heaven and
earth, is designed; him, whom kings and queens and whole kingdoms are in love
with, and count it the greatest honour in the world that their crowns and
sceptres are laid at his holy feet.
8. When the holy man stands at the table of
blessing and ministers the rite of consecration, then do as the angels do, who
behold and love and wonder that the Son of God should become food to the souls
of his servants; that he, who cannot suffer any change or lessening, should be
broken into pieces, and enter into the body to support and nourish the spirit,
and yet at the same time remain in heaven, while he descends to thee upon
earth; that he who hath essential felicity should become miserable and die for
thee, and then give himself to thee for ever to redeem thee from sin and
misery; that by his wounds he should procure health to thee, by his affronts he
should entitle thee to glory, by his death he should bring thee to life, and by
becoming a man he should make thee partaker of the divine nature. These are
such glories that, although they are made so obvious that each eye may behold
them, yet they are also so deep that no thought can fathom them; but so it hath
pleased him to make these mysteries to be sensible, because the excellency and
depth of the mercy is not intelligible; that while we are ravished and
comprehended within the infiniteness of so vast and mysterious a mercy, yet we
may be as sure of it as of that thing we see and feel and smell and taste; but
yet it is so great that we cannot understand it.
9. These holy mysteries are offered to our
senses, but not to be placed under our feet; they are sensible, but not common;
and therefore as the weakness of the elements adds wonder to the excellency of
the sacrament, so let our reverence and venerable usages of them add homour to
the elements, and acknowledge the glory of the mystery, and the divinity of the
mercy. Let us receive the consecrated elements with all devotion and humility
of body and spirit; and do this honour to it, that it be the first food we eat,
and the first beverage we drink that day, unless it be in case of sickness, or
other great necessity; and that your body and soul both be prepared to its
reception with abstinence from secular pleasures, that you may better have
attended fastings and preparatory prayers. For if ever it be seasonable to
observe the counsel of St. Paul, that married persons by consent should abstain
for a time, that they may attend to solemn religion, it is now.[295] It was not by St. Paul, nor the after-ages of the
church, called a duty so to do, but it is most reasonable that the more solemn
actions of religion should be attended to, without the mixture of anything that
may discompose the mind and make it more secular or less religious.
10. In the act of receiving, exercise acts of
faith with much confidence and resignation, believing it not to be common bread
and wine, but holy in their use, holy in their signification, holy in their
change, and holy in their effect; and believe, if thou art a worthy
communicant, thou dost as verily receive Christ's body and blood to all effects
and purposes of the Spirit as thou dost receive the blessed elements into thy
mouth - that thou puttest thy finger to his hand, and thy hand into his side,
and thy lips to his fontinel of blood, sucking life from his heart;[296] and yet, if thou dost communicate
unworthily, thou eatest and drinkest Christ to thy danger and death and
destruction. Dispute not concerning the secret of the mystery, and the nicety
of the manner of Christ's presence; it is sufficient to thee that Christ shall
be present to thy soul as an instrument of grace, as a pledge of the
resurrection, as the earnest of glory and immortality, and a means of many
intermedial blessings, even all such as are necessary for thee, and are in
order to thy salvation. And to make all this good to thee, there is nothing
necessary on thy part but a holy life, and a true belief of all the sayings of
Christ; amongst which, indefinitely assent to the words of institution, and
believe that Christ in the holy sacrament, gives thee his body and his blood.
He that believes so much needs not to inquire further, nor to entangle his
faith by disbelieving his sense.
11. Fail not at this solemnity, according to the
custom of pious and devout people, to make an offering to God for the uses of
religion and the poor, according to thy ability. For when Christ feasts us with
his body, let us also feast our fellow- members, who have right to the same
promises, and are partakers of the same sacrament, and partners of the same
hope, and cared for under the same Providence, and descended from the same
common parents, and whose Father God is, and Christ is their elder brother. If
thou chancest to communicate where this holy custom is not observed publicly,
supply that want by thy private charity; but offer it to God at his holy table,
at least by thy private designing it there.
12. When you have received, pray and give thanks.
Pray for all estates of men; for they also have an interest in the body of
Christ, whereof they are members: and you, in conjunction with Christ, (whom
then you have received,) are more fit to pray for them in that advantage, and
in the celebration of that holy sacrifice, which then is sacramentally
represented to God. Give thanks for the passion of our dearest Lord: remember
all its parts, and all the instruments of your redemption; and beg of God, that
by a holy perseverance in well-doing you may from shadows pass on to
substances, from eating his body to seeing his face, from the typical,
sacramental, and transient, to the real and eternal supper of the Lamb.
13. After the solemnity is done, let Christ dewll
in your hearts by faith and love, and obedience and conformity to his life and
death: as you have taken Christ into you, so put Christ on you, and conform
every faculty of your soul and body to his holy image and perfection. Remember,
that now Christ is all one with you; and, therefore, when you are to do an
action consider how Christ did or would do the like; and do you imitate his
example, and transcribe his copy, and understand all his commandments, and
choose all that he propounded, and desire his promises, and fear his
threatenings, and marry his loves and hatreds, and contract his friendships;
for then you do every day communicate; especially when Christ thus dwells in
you, and you in Christ, growing up towards a perfect man in Christ Jesus.
14. Do not instantly, upon your return from
church, return also to the world and secular thoughts and employment; but let
the remaining parts of that day be like a post-communion, or an after-office,
entertaining your blessed Lord with all the caresses and sweetness of love and
colloquies, and intercourses of duty and affection, acquainting him with all
your needs, and revealing to him all your secrets, and opening all your
infirmities; and as the affairs of your person or employment call you off, so
retire again with often ejaculations and acts of entertainment to your beloved
guest.
When I said that the sacrifice of the cross,
which Christ offered for all the sins and all the needs of the world, is
represented to God by the minister in the sacrament, and offered up in prayer
and sacramental memory, after the manner that Christ himself intercedes for us
in heaven, (so far as his glorious priesthood is imitable by his ministers on
earth,) I must of necessity also mean, that all the benefits of that sacrifice
are then conveyed to all that communicate worthily. But if we descend to
particulars, then and there the church is nourished in her faith, strengthened
in her hope, enlarged in her bowels with an increasing charity; there all the
members of Christ are joined with each other, and all to Christ their head; and
we again renew the covenant with God in Jesus Christ, and God seals his part,
and we promise for ours, and Christ unites both, and the Holy Ghost signs both
in the collation of those graces which we then pray for an exercise and receive
all at once. There our bodies are nourished with the signs, and our souls with
the mystery: our bodies receive into them the seed of an immortal nature, and
our souls are joined with him who is the first-fruits of the resurrection and
never can die. And if we desire anything else and need it, here it is to be
prayed for, here to be hoped for, here to be received. Long life and health,
and recovery from sickness, and competent support and maintenance, and peace
and deliverance from our enemies, and content and patience, and joy, and
sanctified riches, or a cheerful poverty, and liberty, and whatsoever else is a
blessing was purchased for us by Christ in his death and resurrection, and in
his intercession in heaven. And this sacrament being that to our particulars
which the great mysteries are in themselves and by design to all the world, if
we receive worthily, we shall receive any of these blessings, according as God
shall choose for us; and he will not only choose with more wisdom, but also
with more affection, than we can for ourselves.
After all this, it is advised by the guides of
souls, wise men and pious, that all persons should communicate very often, even
as often as they can, without excuses or delays; everything that puts us from
so holy an employment, when we are moved to it, being either a sin or an
imperfection, an infirmity or in devotion, and an inactiveness of spirit. All
Christian people must come. They, indeed, that are in the state of sin must not
come so, but yet they must come. First they must quit their state of death, and
then partake of the bread of life. They that are at enmity with their
neighbours must come-that is no excuse for their not coming; only they must not
bring their enmity along with them, but leave it, and then come. They that have
variety of secular employment must come;[297] only they must leave their secular thoughts and
affections behind them, and then come and converse with God. If any man be well
grown in grace, he must needs come, because he is excellently disposed to so
holy a feast: but he that is but in the infancy of piety had need to come, that
so he may grow in grace. The strong must come lest they become weak; and the
weak that they may become strong. The sick must come to be cured; the healthful
to be preserved. They that have leisure must come, because they have no excuse;
they that have no leisure must come hither, that by so excellent an act of
religion they may sanctify their business. The penitent sinners must come, that
they may be justified; and they that are justified, that they may be justified
still. They that have fears and great reverence to these mysteries, and think
no preparation to be sufficient must receive, that they may learn how to
receive the more worthily; and they that have a less degree of reverence must
come often, to have it heightened: that as those creatures that live amongst
the snows of the mountains turn white with their food and conversation with
such perpetual whitenesses, so our souls may be transformed into the similitude
and union with Christ by our perpetual feeding on him, and conversation, not
only in his courts, but in his very heart, and most secret affections and
incomparable purities.
FOR ALL SORTS OF MEN AND ALL NECESSITIES; RELATING TO THE SEVERAL PARTS OF THE
VIRTUE OF RELIGION.
O Lord God of infinite mercy, of infinite excellency, who hast sent thy holy
Son into the world to redeem us from an intolerable misery, and to teach us a
holy religion, and to forgive us an infinite debt: give me thy Holy Spirit,
that my understanding and all my facilities may be so resigned to the
discipline and doctrine of my Lord, that I may be prepared in mind and will to
die for the testimony of Jesus, and to suffer any affliction or calamity that
shall offer to hinder my duty, or tempt me to shame or sin or apostasy; and let
my faith be the parent of a good life, a strong shield to repel the fiery darts
of the devil, and the author of a holy hope, of modest desires, of confidence
in God, and of a never-failing charity to thee, my God, and to all the world;
that I may never have my portion with the unbelievers or uncharitable and
desperate persons; but may be supported by the strengths of faith in all
temptations, and may be refreshed with the comforts of a holy hope in all my
sorrows, and may bear the burden of the Lord, and the infirmities of my
neighbour, by the support of charity; that the yoke of Jesus may become easy to
me, and my love may do all the miracles of grace, till from grace it swell to
glory, from earth to heaven, from duty to reward, from the imperfections of a
beginning and still growing love, it may arrive to the consummation of an
eternal and never-ceasing charity, through Jesus Christ the Son of thy love,
the author of our hope, and the author and finisher of our faith: to whom with
thee, O Lord God, Father of heaven and earth, and with thy Holy Spirit, be all
glory and love and obedience and dominion, now and for ever. Amen.
O God, thou art my God, early will I seek thee: my soul thirsteth for thee, my
flesh longeth for thee in a dry and thirsty land, where no water is, to see thy
power and thy glory, so as I have seen thee in the sanctuary. Because thy
loveing-kingness is better than life, my lips shall praise thee. Psalm lxiii.
1, etc.
I am ready, not only to be bound, but to die
for the name of the Lord Jesus. Acts, xxi. 13.
How amiable are thy tabernacles, thou Lord of
Hosts! My soul longeth, yes even fainteth for the courts of the Lord; my heart
and my flesh crieth out for the living God. Blessed are they that dwell in thy
house; they will still be praising thee. Psalm lxxxiv. 1,2,4.
O blessed Jesus, thou art worthy of all adoration
and all honour and all love: thou art the wonderful, the counsellor, the mighty
God, the everlasting Father, the Prince of peace; of thy government and peace
there shall be no end: thou art the brightness of thy Father's glory, the
express image of his person, the appointed heir of all things. Thou upholdest
all things by the word of thy power; thou didst by thyself purge our sins; thou
art set on the right hand of the Majesty on high; thou art made better than the
angels; thou hast by inheritance obtained a more excellent name than they.
Thou, O dearest Jesus, art the head of the church, the beginning and the first
born from the dead: in all things thou hast the pre-eminence, and it pleased
the Father that in thee should all fulness dwell. Kingdoms are in love with
thee; kings lay their crowns and sceptres at thy feet; and queens are thy
handmaids, and wash the feet of thy servants.
O eternal God, Father of mercies, and God of all comfort, with much mercy look
upon the sadnesses and sorrows of thy servant. My sins lie heavy upon me, and
press me sore, and there is no health in my bones by reason of thy displeasure
and my sin. The waters are gone over me, and I stick fast in the deep mire, and
my miseries are without comfort, because they are punishments of my sin: and I
am so evil and unworthy a person, that though I have great desires, yet I have
no dispositions or worthiness toward receiving comfort. my sins have caused my
sorrow, and my sorrow does not cure my sins; and unless for thine own sake, and
merely because thou art good, thou shalt pity me and relieve me, I am as much
without remedy as now I am without comfort. Lord, pity me! Lord, let thy grace
refresh my spirit! Let thy comforts support me, thy mercy pardon me, and never
let my portion be amongst hopeless and accursed spirits; for thou art good and
gracious, and I throw myself upon thy mercy. Let me never let my hold go, and
do thou with me what seems good in thine own eyes. I cannot suffer more than I
have deserved; and yet I can need no relief so great as thy mercy is; for thou
art infinitely more merciful than I can be miserable, and thy mercy, which is
above all thy own works, must needs be far above all my sin and all my misery.
Dearest Jesus, let me trust in thee for ever, and let me never be confounded.
Amen.
Hear my prayer, O Lord, and let my cry come unto thee.[298] Hide not thy face from me in the time of my trouble,
incline thine ear unto me when I call; O hear me, and that right soon, For my
days are consumed like smoke, and my bones are burnt up as it were with a
firebrand. My heart is smitten down and withered like grass, so that I forget
to eat my bread; and that because of thine indignation and wrath; for thou hast
taken me up and cast me down: thine arrows stick fast in me, and thine hand
presseth me sore.[299] There is no health in
my flesh because of thy displeasure; neither is there any rest in my bones by
reason of my sin. My wickednesses are gone over my head, and are a sore burden
too heavy for me to bear. But I will confess my wickedness and be sorry for my
sin. O Lord, rebuke me not in thine indignation, neither chasten me in thy
displeasure.[300] Lord, be merciful unto me,
heal my soul for I have sinned against thee.[301]
Have mercy upon me, O God, after thy great
goodness, according to the multitude of thy mercies do away mine offences.[302] O remember not the sins and offences of
my youth; but according to thy mercy think thou upon me, O Lord, for thy
goodness.[303] Wash me thoroughly from my
wickedness; and cleanse me from my sin. Make me a clean heart, O God, and renew
a right spirit within me.[304] Cast me not
away from thy presence, from thy all-hallowing and life-giving presence; and
take not thy Holy Spirit, thy sanctifying, thy guiding, thy comforting, thy
supporting, and confirming Spirit, from me.
O God, thou art my God for ever and ever: thou
shalt be my guide unto death.[305]
Lord, comfort me now that I lie sick upon my bed: make thou my bed in all
my sickness.[306] O deliver my soul from the
place of hell; and do thou receive me.[307]
My heart is disquieted within me, and the fear of death is fallen upon me.[308] Behold thou hast made my days as it were
a span long, and my age is even as nothing in respect of thee; and verily every
man living is altogether vanity.[309] When
thou with rebukes dost chasten man for sin, thou makest his beauty to consume
away, like a moth fretting a garment: every man therefore is but vanity. And
now, Lord, what is my hope? truly my hope in even in thee. Hear my prayer, O
Lord, and with thine ears consider my calling: hold not thy peace at my tears.
Take this plague away from me: I am consumed by the means of thy heavy hand. I
am a stranger with thee and a sojourner, as all my fathers were. O spare me a
little, that I may recover my strength, before I go hence and be no more seen.
My soul cleaveth unto the dust: O quicken me according to thy word[310] And when the snares of death compass me
round about, let not the pains of hell take hold of me.[311]
I know that my Redeemer liveth, and that he
shall stand at the latter day upon the earth; and though after my skin worms
destroy this body, yet in my flesh shall I see God; whom I shall see for
myself, and mine eyes shall behold, though my reins be consumed within me. Job
xix.25, etc.
God shall come and shall not keep silence; there
shall go before him a consuming fire, and a mighty tempest shall be stirred up
round about him: he shall call the heaven from above, and the earth, that he
may judge his people[312] O blessed Jesus,
thou art my judge and thou art my advocate: have mercy upon me in the hour of
my death, and in the day of judgment. See John v.28, and 1 Thess. iv.15.
O holy Jesus, thou art a merciful
high-priest, and touched with the sense of our infirmities; thou knowest the
sharpness of my sickness and the weakness of my person. The clouds are gathered
about me, and thou hast covered me with thy storm: my understanding hath not
such apprehension of things as formerly. Lord, let thy mercy support me, thy
Spirit guide me, and lead me through the valley of this death safely; that I
may pass it patiently, holily, with perfect resignation; and let me rejoice in
the lord, in the hopes of pardon, in the expectation of glory, in the sense of
thy mercies, in the refreshments of thy Spirit, in a victory over all
temptations.
Thou hast promised to be with us in tribulation.
Lord, my soul is troubled, and my body is weak, and my hope is in thee, and my
enemies are busy and mighty; now make good thy holy promise. Now, O holy Jesus,
now let thy hand of grace be upon me: restrain my ghostly enemies and give me
all sorts of spiritual assistance. Lord, remember thy servant in the day when
thou bindest up thy jewels.
O take from me all tediousness of spirit, all
impatience and unquietness: let me possess my soul in patience, and resign my
soul and body into thy hands, as into the hands of a faithful Creator and a
blessed Redeemer.
O holy Jesus, thou didst die for us; by thy sad,
pungent, and intolerable pains, which thou enduredst for me, have pity on me,
and ease my pains, which thou endurest for me, have pity on me, and ease my
pain, or increase my patience. Lay on me no more than thou shalt enable me to
bear. I have deserved it all and more, and infinitely more. Lord, I am weak and
ignorant, timorous and inconstant; and I fear lest something should happen that
may discompose the state of my soul, that may displease thee: do what thou wilt
with me, so that thou dost but preserve me in thy fear and favour. Thou knowest
that it is my great fear, but let thy Spirit secure that nothing may be able to
separate me from the love of God in Jesus Christ: then smite me here that thou
mayest spare me for ever; and yet, O Lord, smite me friendly, for thou knowest
my infirmities. Into thy hands, I commend my spirit; for thou hast redeemed me,
O Lord, thou God of truth. Come, Holy Spirit, help me in this conflict. Come,
Lord Jesus, come quickly.
(Let the sick man often meditate upon these
following promises and gracious words of God.)
My help cometh of the Lord, who preserveth them
that are true of heart. Psalm vii.11.
And all they that knew thy name will put their
trust in thee: for thou, Lord, hast never failed them that seek thee. Psalm
ix.10.
O how plentiful is thy goodness, which thou hast
laid up for them that fear thee, and that thou hast prepared for them that put
their trust in thee, even before the sons of men! Psalm xxxi.21.
Behold, the eye of the Lord is upon them that
fear him, and upon them that put their trust in his mercy, to deliver their
souls from death. Psalm xxxiii.18,19.
The Lord is nigh unto them that are of a contrite
heart; and will save such as are of an humble spirit. Psalm xxxiv.18.
Thou, Lord, shalt save both man and beast: how
excellent is thy mercy, O God! and the children of men shall put their trust
under the shadow of thy wings. Psalm xxxvi.7.
They shall be satisfied with the plenteousness of
thy house; and thou shalt give them to drink of thy pleasures, as out of the
rivers. Verse 8.
For with thee is the well of life; and in thy
light we shall see light. Verse 9.
Commit thy way unto the Lord, and put thy trust
in him, and he shall bring it to pass. Psalm xxxvil.5.
But in the salvation of the righteous cometh of
the Lord, who is also their strength in the time of trouble. Verse 40.
So that a man shall say, Verily there is a reward
for the righteous: doubtless there is a God that judgeth the earth. Psalm
lvii.10.
Blessed is the man whom thou choosest and
receivest unto thee: he shall dwell in thy court, and shall be satisfied with
the pleasures of thy house, even of thy holy temple. Psalm lxv.4.
They that sow in tears shall reap in joy. Psalm
cxxvi.6.
It is written, I will never leave thee nor
forsake thee. Heb.xiii.5.
The prayer of faith shall save the sick; and the
Lord shall raise him up: and if he have committed sins, they shall be forgiven
him. James v.15.
Come, and let us return unto the Lord; for he
hath torn, and he will heal us: he hath smitten, and he will bind us up. Hos.
vi.1.
If we sin we have an advocate with the Father,
Jesus Christ the righteous; and he is the propitiation for our sins. 1 John
ii.1,2.
If we confess our sins, he is faithful and
righteous to forgive us our sins, and to cleans us from all unrighteousness. 1
John, i.9.
He that forgives shall be forgiven.
Luke,vi.37.
And this is the confidence that we have in him,
that if we ask anything according to his will, he heareth us. 1 John,i.14.
And ye know that he was manifested to take away
our sins. 1 John iii.5.
If ye, being evil, know how to give good things
to your children, how much more shall your Father which is in heaven give good
things to them that ask him? Matt. vii.11.
This is a faithful saying, and worthy of all
acceptation, that Jesus Christ came into the world to save sinners. 1 Tim.
i.15.
He that hath given us his Son, how should he not,
with him, give us all things else? Rom. viii.32.
I am persuaded, that neither death, nor life,
nor angels, nor principalities, nor powers, nor things present, nor things to
come, nor height, nor depth, nor any other creature, shall be able to separate
me from the love of God, which is in Christ Jesus our Lord. Rom. viii.38,39.
I have fought a good fight: I have finished my
course: I have kept the faith. Henceforth there is laid up for me a crown of
righteousness, which the Lord, the righteous judge, shall give me at that day;
and not to me only, but unto all them also that love his appearing. 2 Tim.
iv.7,8.
Blessed be God, even the Father of our Lord Jesus
Christ, the Father of mercies and the God of all comforts, who comforts us in
all our tribulation. 2 Cor. i. 3,4.
O Lord God, there is no number of thy days nor of thy mercies, and the sins and
sorrows of thy servant are multiplied. Lord look upon him with much mercy and
pity, forgive him all his sins, instruct his ignorances, strengthen his
understanding, take from him all disorders of spirit, weakness and abuse of
fancy. Restrain the malice and power of the spirits of darkness; and suffer him
to be injured neither by his ghostly enemies nor his own infirmities; and let a
holy and a just peace, the peace of God, be within his conscience.
Lord, preserve his senses till the last of
his time, strengthen his faith, confirm his hope, and give him a never-ceasing
charity to thee, our God, and to all the world: stir up in him a great and
proportionable contrition for all the evils he hath done, and give him a just
measure of patience for all he suffers; give him prudence, memory, and
consideration, rightly to state the accounts of his soul; and do thou remind
him of all his duty, that when it shall please thee that his soul goes out from
the prison of his body, it may be received by angels, and preserved from the
surprise of evil spirits, and from the horrors and amazements of new and
strange regions, and be laid up in the bosom of our Lord, till, at the day of
thy second coming, it shall be reunited to the body, which is now to be laid
down in weakness and dishonour; but we humbly beg may then be raised up with
glory and power for ever to live, and to behold the face of God in the glories
of the Lord Jesus, who is our hope, our resurrection, and our life, the light
of our eyes and the joy of our souls, our blessed and ever-glorious Redeemer.
Amen.
(Hither the sick person may draw in, and use the
acts of several virtues respersed in the several parts of this book, the
several litanies, viz. of repentance, of the passion, and the single prayers,
according to his present needs.)
O my God, thou didst create the earth and the sea for thy glory and the use of
man, and dost daily show wonders in the deep: look upon the danger and fear of
thy servant. My sins have taken hold upon me, and without the supporting arm of
thy mercy I cannot look up; but my trust is in thee. Do thou, O Lord, rebuke
the sea, and make it calm, for to thee the winds and the sea obey; let not the
waters swallow me up, but let thy Spirit, the spirit of gentleness and mercy,
move upon the waters. Be thou reconciled unto thy servants, and then the face
of the waters will be smooth. I fear that my sins make me, like Jonas, the
cause of the tempest. Cast out all my sins, and throw not thy servants away
from thy presence and from the land of the living, into the depths where all
things are forgotten. But if it be thy will that we should go down into the
waters, Lord, receive my soul into thy holy hands, and preserve it in mercy and
safety till the day of restitution of all things; and be pleased to unite my
death to the death of thy Son, and to accept of it so united as a punishment
for all my sins, that thou mayest forget all thine anger, and blot my sins out
of thy book, and write my soul there, for Jesus Christ's sake, our dearest Lord
and most mighty Redeemer. Amen.
To God pertain the issues of life and death.
It is the Lord, let him do what seemeth good in his own eyes. Thy will be done
in earth as it is in heaven. Recite Psalms cvil. and cxxx.
If the Lord will be gracious and hear the
prayer of his servant, and bring me safe to shore, then I will praise him
secretly and publicly, and pay unto the use of charity (or religion) (then name
the sum you design for holy use). O my God, my goods are nothing unto thee: I
will also be thy servant all the days of my life, and remember this mercy and
my present purposes, and live more to God's glory, and with a stricter duty.
And do thou please to accept this vow as an instance of my importunity, and the
greatness of my needs; and be thou graciously moved to pity and deliver me.
Amen.
(This form also may be used in praying for a
blessing on an enterprise, and may be instanced in actions of devotions as well
as of charity.)
O almighty God who fillest all things with thy presence, and art a God afar off
as well as near at hand; thou didst send thy angel to bless Jacob in his
journey, and didst lead the children of Israel through the Red Sea, making it a
wall on the right hand and on the left; be pleased to let thy angel go our
before me and guide me in my journey, preserving me from dangers of robbers,
from violence of enemies, and sudden and sad accidents, from falls and errors.
And prosper my journey to thy glory, and to all my innocent purposes; and
preserve me from all sin, that I may return in peace and holiness, with thy
favour and thy blessings, and may serve thee in thankfulness and obedience all
the days of my pilgrimage; and at last bring me to thy country, to the
celestial Jerusalem, there to dwell in thy house, and to sing praises to thee
for ever. Amen.
Ad. Sect. 4.
O holy and eternal Jesus, who hast begotten us by thy word, renewed us by thy
Spirit, fed us by thy sacraments, and by the daily ministry of thy word, still
go on to build us up to life eternal. Let thy most Holy Spirit be present with
me and rest upon me in the reading or hearing thy sacred word, that I may do it
humbly, reverently, without prejudice, with a mind ready and desirous to learn
and to obey; that I may be readily furnished and instructed to every good work,
and may practice all thy holy laws and commandments to the glory of thy holy
name, O holy and eternal Jesus. Amen.
Ad. Sect. 5,9,10.
"Have mercy upon me, O God, after thy great goodness; according to the
multitude of thy mercies do away mine offences: for I will confess my
wickedness, and be sorry for my sin." O my dearest Lord, I am not worthy to be
accounted amongst the meanest of thy servants, not worthy to be sustained by
the least fragments of thy mercy, but to be shut out of thy presence for ever
with dogs and unbelievers. But for thy name's sake, O Lord, be merciful unto my
sin, for it is great.
I am the vilest of sinners, and the worst of
men; proud, and vain-glorious, impatient of scorn or of just reproof; not
enduring to be slighted, and yet extremely deserving it; I have been cozened by
the colours of humility and when I have truly been called myself vicious I
could not endure any man else should say so or think so. I have been
disobedient, unchristian, and unmanly. But for thy name's sake, etc.
O just and dear God, how can I expect pity or
pardon, who am so angry and peevish, with and without cause, envious at good,
rejoicing in the evil of my neighbours negligent of my charge, idle and
useless, timorous and base, jealous and impudent, ambitious and hard-hearted,
soft, unmortified, and effeminate in my life, undevout in my prayers, without
fancy or affection, without attendance to them or perseverance in them; but
passionate and curious in pleasing my appetite of meat, and drink, and
pleasures, making matter both for sin and sickness; and I have reaped the
cursed fruits of such improvidence, entertaining indecent and impure thoughts,
and I have brought them forth in indecent and impure actions, and the spirit of
uncleanness hath entered in and unhallowed the temple which thou didst
consecrate for the habitation of thy Spirit of love and holiness. But for thy
name's sake, O Lord, be merciful unto my sin, for it is great.
Thou hast given me a whole life to serve thee in,
and to advance my hopes of heaven; and this precious time I have thrown away
upon my sins and vanities, being improvident of my time and of my talent, and
of thy grace and my own advantages, resisting thy Spirit and quenching him. I
have been a great lover of myself, and yet used many ways to destroy myself. I
have pursued my temporal ends with greediness and indirect means. I am
revengeful and unthankful, forgetting benefits, but not so soon forgetting
injuries, curious and murmuring, a great breaker of promises. I have not loved
my neighbour's good, nor advanced it in all things, where I could. I have been
unlike thee in all things. I am unmerciful and unjust: a sottish admirer of
things below, and careless of heaven and the ways that lead thither.
But for thy name's sake, O Lord, be merciful unto
my sin, for it is great.
All my senses have been windows to let sin in,
and death by sin. Mine eyes have been adulterous and covetous; mine ears open
to slander and detraction; my tongue and palate loose and wanton, intemperate,
and of foul language, talkative and lying, rash and malicious, false and
flattering, irreligious and irreverent, detracting and censorious; my hands
have been injurious and unclean, my passions violent and rebellious, my desires
impatient and unreasonable; all my members and all my facilities have been
servants of sin; and my very best actions have more matter of pity than of
confidence, being imperfect in my best, and intolerable in most.-But for thy
name's sake, O Lord, etc.
Unto this and a far bigger heap of sin I have
added also the faults of others to my own score, by neglecting to hinder them
to sin in all that I could and ought; but I also have encouraged them in sin,
have taken off their fears, and hardened their conscience, and tempted them
directly, and prevailed in it to my own ruin and theirs, unless thy glorious
and unspeakable mercy hath prevented so intolerable a calamity.
Lord, I have abused thy mercy, despised thy
judgments, turned thy grace into wantonness. I have been unthankful for thy
infinite loving-kindness. I have sinned and repented, and then sinned again and
resolved against it, and presently broke it; and then I tied myself up with
vows, and then was tempted, and then I yielded by little and little, till I was
willingly lost again, and my vows fell off like cords of vanity.
Miserable man that I am! who shall deliver me
from this body of sin?
And yet, O Lord, I have another heap of sins to
be unloaded. My secret sins, O Lord, are innumerable; sins I noted not; sins
that I willingly neglected; sins that I acted upon wilful ignorance and
voluntary mispersuasion; sins that I have forgot; and sins which a diligent and
a watchful spirit might have prevented, but I would not. Lord, I am confounded
with the multitude of them, and the horror of their remembrance though I
consider them nakedly in their direct appearance, without the deformity of
their unhandsome and aggravating circumstances; but, so dressed, they are a
sight too ugly, an instance of amazement, infinite in degrees, and insufferable
in their load.
And yet thou hast spared me all this while, and
hast not thrown me into hell, where I have deserved to have been long since,
and even now to have been shut up to an eternity of torments, with
insupportable amazement, fearing the revelation of thy day.
Miserable man that I am! who shall deliver me
from this body of sin?
Thou shalt answer for me, O Lord my God. Thou
that prayest for me shalt be my judge.
Thou hast prepared for me a more healthful
sorrow; O deny not thy servant when he begs sorrow of thee. Give me a deep
contrition for my sins, a hearty detestation and loathing of them, hating them
worse than death with torments. Give me grace entirely, presently, and for
ever, to forsake them; to walk with care and prudence with fear and
watchfulness, all my days; to do all my duty with diligence and charity, with
zeal and a never fainting spirit; to redeem the time, to trust upon thy
mercies, to make use of all the instruments of grace, to work out my salvation
with fear and trembling; that thou mayest have the glory of pardoning all my
sins, and I may reap the fruit of all thy mercies and all thy graces, of thy
patience and long-suffering, even to live a holy life here, and to reign with
thee for ever, through Jesus Christ our Lord. Amen.
Ad. Sect. 6.
In the morning recite the following form of
thanksgiving, upon the special festivals, adding the commemoration of the
special blessings according to the following prayers; adding such prayers as
you shall choose out of the foregoing devotions.
Besides the ordinary and public duties of the
day, if you retire into your closet to read and meditate, after you have
performed that duty, say the Song of St. Ambrose, (commonly called the Te
Deum,) or, We praise thee, etc.; then add the prayers for particular graces,
which are at the end of the former chapter, such and as many of them as shall
fit your present needs and affections, ending with the Lord's Prayer. This form
of devotion may, for variety, be indifferently used at other times.
A form of thanksgiving with a recital of public
and private blessings, to be used upon Easter-day, Whit-sunday, Ascention-day,
and all Sundays of the year; but the middle part of it may be reserved for the
more solemn festivals, and the other used upon the ordinary, as every man's
affections or leisure shall determine.
1. Ex Liturgia S. Basilii magna ex parte.
Oh eternal essence, Lord God, Father
Almighty, maker of all things in heaven and earth; it is a good thing to give
thanks to thee, O Lord, and to pay to thee all reverence, worship and devotion,
from a clean and prepared heart, and with an humble spirit to present a live in
and reasonable sacrifice to thy holiness and majesty; for thou hast given unto
us the knowledge of thy truth; and who is able to declare thy greatness, and to
recount all thy marvelous works which thou hast done in all the generations of
the world?
O great Lord and Governor of all things, Lord and
Creator of all things, Lord and Creator of all things visible and invisible,
who sittest upon the throne of thy glory, and beholdest the secrets of the
lowest abyss and darkness, thou art without beginning, uncircumscribed,
incomprehensible, unalterable, and seated for ever unmovable in thy own
essential happiness and tranquility; thou art the Father of our Lord Jesus
Christ, who is,
Our dearest and most gracious Saviour, our hope,
the wisdom of the Father, the image of thy goodness, the word eternal, and the
brightness of thy person, the power of God from eternal ages, the true light
that lighteneth every man that cometh into the world, the redemption of man,
and the sanctification of our spirits.
By whom the Holy Ghost descended upon the church;
the Holy Spirit of truth, the seal of adoption; the earnest of the inheritance
of the saints; the first fruits of everlasting felicity; the life-giving power;
the fountain of sanctification; the comfort of the church, the ease of the
afflicted, the support of the weak, the wealth of the poor, the teacher of the
doubtful, scrupulous, and ignorant; the anchor of the fearful; the infinite
reward of all faithful souls, by whom all reasonable and understanding
creatures serve thee, and send up a never-ceasing and a never-rejected
sacrifice of prayer, and praise, and adoration.
All angels and archangels, all thrones and
dominions, all principalities and powers, the cherubim with many eyes, and the
seraphim covered with wings from the terror and amazement of thy brightest
glory; these, and all the powers of heaven, do perpetually sing praise and
never-ceasing hymns and eternal anthems to the glory of the eternal God, the
Almighty Father of men and angels.
Holy is our God; holy is the Almighty; holy is
the Immortal; holy, holy, holy, Lord God of Sabaoth, heaven and earth are full
of the majesty of thy glory. Amen. With these holy and blessed spirits I also,
thy servant O thou great lover of souls, though I be unworthy to offer praise
to such a majesty; yet, out of my bounden duty, humbly offer up my heart and
voice to join in this blessed choir, and confess the glories of the Lord. For
thou art holy, and of thy greatness there is no end; and in thy justice and
goodness thou hast measured out to us all thy works.
Thou madest man out of the earth, and didst form
him after thine own image; thou didst place him in a garden of pleasure, and
gavest him laws of righteousness to be to him a seed of immortality.
"O that men would therefore praise the Lord for
his goodness, and declare the wonders that he hath done for the children of
men."
For when man sinned and listened to the whispers
of a tempting spirit, and refused to hear the voice of God, thou didst throw
him out from paradise,and sentest him to till the earth; but yet leftest not
his condition without remedy, but didst provide for him the salvation of a new
birth, and by the blood of thy Son didst redeem and pay the price to thine own
justice for thine own creature, lest the work of thine own hands should
perish.
"O that men would therefore praise the Lord,"
etc.
For thou, O Lord, in every age didst send
testimonies from heaven, blessings, and prophets, and fruitful seasons, and
preachers of righteousness, and miracles of power and mercy; thou spakest by
thy prophets and saidst, `I will help by one that is mighty; and, in the
fulness of time, spakest to us by thy Son, by whom thou didst make both the
worlds, who, by the word of his power, sustains all things in heaven and earth;
who thought it no robbery to be equal to the Father; who, being before all
time, was pleased to be born in time to converse with men, to be incarnate of a
holy virgin; he emptied himself of all his glories, took on him the form of a
servant, in all things being made like unto us, in a soul of passions and
discourse, in a body of humility and sorrow, but in all things innocent, and in
all things afflicted; and suffered death for us, that we by him might live, and
be partakers of his nature and his glories, of his body and of his Spirit, of
the blessings of earth, and of immortal felicities in heaven.
"O that men would therefore praise the Lord,"
etc.
For thou, O holy and immortal God, O sweetest
Saviour Jesus, wert made under the law to condemn sin in the flesh; thou, who
knewest no sin, wert made sin for us; thou gavest to us righteous commandments,
and madest known to us all thy Father's will; thou didst redeem us from our
vain conversation, and from the vanity of idols, false principles, and foolish
confidences, and broughtest us to the knowledge of the true and only God and
our Father, and hast made us to thyself a peculiar people of thy own purchase,
a royal priesthood, a holy nation; thou hast washed our souls in the laver of
regeneration, the sacrament of baptism; thou hast reconciled us by thy death,
justified us by thy resurrection, sanctified us by thy Spirit, sending him upon
thy church in visible forms, and giving him in powers and miracles and mighty
signs, and continuing this incomparable favour in gifts and sanctifying graces,
and promising that he shall abide with us for ever; thou hast fed us with thine
own broken body, and given drink to our souls out of thine own heart, and hast
ascended up on high, and hast overcome all the powers of death and hell, and
redeemed us from the miseries of a sad eternity; and sittest at the right-hand
of God, making intercession for us with a never-ceasing charity.
"O that men would therefore praise the Lord,"
etc.
The grave could not hold thee long, O holy and
eternal Jesus; thy body could not see corruption, neither could thy soul be
left in hell; thou wert free among the dead, and thou breakest the iron gates
of death, and the bars and chains of the lower prisons. Thou broughtest comfort
to the souls of the patriarchs, who waited for thy coming, who longed for the
redemption of man, and the revelation of thy day. Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob saw
thy day and rejoiced; and when thou didst arise from thy bed of darkness, and
leftest the graveclothes behind thee, and didst put on a robe of glory, (over
which for forty days thou didst wear a veil) and then enterdst into a cloud,
and then into glory, then the powers of hell were confounded, then death lost
its power and was swallowed up into victory; and though death is not quite
destroyed, yet it is made harmless and without a sting, and the condition of
human nature is made an entrance to eternal glory; and art become the Prince of
life, the first-fruits of the resurrection, the first-born from the dead,
having made the way plain before our faces, that we may also arise again in the
resurrection of the last day, when thou shalt come again unto us, to render to
every man according to his works.
"O that men would therefore praise the Lord,"
etc.
O give thanks unto the Lord, praise ye the Lord;
praise him and magnify him for ever.
O ye spirits and souls of the righteous, praise
ye the Lord; praise him and magnify him for ever.
And now, O Lord God, what shall I render to thy
Divine Majesty for all the benefits thou hast done unto thy servant in my
personal capacity?
Thou art my creator and my Father, my Protector
and my Guardian; thou hast brought me from my mother's womb; thou hast told all
my joints, and in thy book were all my members written; thou hast given me a
comely body, Christian and careful parents, holy education; thou hast been my
guide and my teacher all my days; thou hast given me ready faculties, an
unloosed tongue, a cheerful spirit, straight limbs, a good reputation, and
liberty of person, a quiet life, and a tender conscience. Thou wert my hope
from my youth, through thee have I been holden up ever since I was born. Thou
hast sent thy angel to snatch me from the violence of fire and water, to
prevent precipices, fracture of bones, to rescue me from thunder and lightning,
plague and pestilential diseases, murder and robbery, violence of chance and
enemies, and all the spirits of darkness; and in the days of sorrow thou hast
refreshed me; in the destitution of provisions thou are taken are of me, and
thou hast said unto me, "I will never leave thee, nor forsake thee."
"I will give thanks unto the Lord with my whole
heart, secretly among the faithful, and in the congregation."
Thou, O my dearest Lord and Father, hast taken
care of my soul, hast pitied my miseries, sustained my infirmities, relieved
and instructed my ignorances; and though I have broken thy righteous laws and
commandments, run passionately after vanities, and was in love with death, and
was dead in sin, and was exposed to thousands of temptations, and fell foully,
and continued in it, and loved to have it so, and hated to be reformed; yet
thou didst call me with the checks of conscience, with daily sermons and
precepts of holiness, with fear and shame, with benefits and the admonitions of
thy most Holy Spirit, by the counsel of my friends, by the example of good
persons, with holy books and thousands of excellent arts, and would not suffer
me to perish in my folly but didst force me to to attend to thy gracious
calling, and hast put me into a state of repentance, and possibilities of
pardon, being infinitely desirous I should live, and recover, and make use of
thy grace, and partake of thy glories.
"I will give thanks unto the Lord with my whole
heart, secretly among the faithful and in the congregation. For salvation
belongeth unto the Lord, and thy blessing is upon thy servant. But as for me, I
will come into thy house in the multitude of thy mercies, and in thy fear will
I worship toward thy holy temple. For of thee, and in thee, and through and for
thee, are all things. Blessed be the name of God, from generation to
generation." Amen.
O holy and almighty God, Father of mercies, Father of our Lord Jesus Christ,
the Son of thy love and eternal mercies, I adore and praise and glorify thy
infinite and unspeakable love and wisdom, who hast sent thy Son from the bosom
of felicities to take upon him our nature and our misery and our guilt, and
hast made the Son of God to become the Son of man, that we might become the
Sons of God, and partakers of the Divine nature; since thou hast so exalted
human nature, be pleased also to sanctify my person, that by a conformity to
the humility and laws, and sufferings of my dearest Saviour, I may be united to
his Spirit, and be made all one with the most holy Jesus. Amen.
O holy and eternal Jesus, who didst pity
mankind lying in his blood, and sin, and misery, and didst choose our sadnesses
and sorrows that thou mightest make us to partake of thy felicities; let thine
eyes pity me, thy hands support me, thy holy feet tread down all the
difficulties in my way to heaven; let me dwell in thy heart, be instructed with
thy wisdom, moved by thy affections, choose with thy will, and be clothed with
thy righteousness; that, in the day of judgment, I may be found having on thy
garments, sealed with thy impression; and that hearing upon every faculty and
member the character of my elder brother, I may not be cast out with strangers
and unbelievers. Amen.
O holy and ever-blessed Spirit, who didst
overshadow the holy Virgin-mother of our Lord, and caused her to conceive by a
miraculous and mysterious manner, be pleased to overshadow my soul, and
enlighten my spirit, that I may conceive the holy Jesus in my heart, and may
bear him in my mind, and may grow up to the fulness of the stature of Christ,
to be a perfect man in Christ Jesus. Amen.
To God, the Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, to
the eternal Son that was incarnate and born of a virgin, to the Spirit of the
Father and the Son be all honour and glory, worship and adoration, now and for
ever. Amen.
(The same form of prayer may be used upon our own
birthday, or day of our baptism; adding the following prayer.)
O blesses and eternal God, I give thee praise and glory for thy great mercy to
me in causing me to be born of Christian parents and didst not allot to me a
portion with misbelievers and heathen that have not known thee. Thou didst not
suffer me to be strangled at the gate of the womb, but thy hand sustained and
brought me to the light of the world, and the illumination of baptism, with thy
grace preventing my election, and by an artificial necessity and holy
prevention engaging me to the profession and practices of Christianity. Lord,
since that, I have broken the promises made in my behalf, and which I confirmed
by my after-act; I went back from them by an evil life; and yet thou hast still
continued to me life and time of repentance; and didst not cut me off in the
beginning of my days, and the progress of my sins. O dearest God, pardon the
errors and ignorances, the vices and vanities, of my youth, and the faults of
my more forward years, and let me never more stain the whiteness of my
baptismal robe; and now that by thy grace I still persist in the purpose of
obedience, and do give up my name to Christ, and glory to be a disciple of thy
institution, and a servant of Jesus, let me never fail of thy grace; let no
root or bitterness spring up and disorder my purposes, nor defile my spirit. O
let my years be so many degrees of nearer approach to thee; and forsake me not,
O God, in my old age, when I am grey-headed; and when my strength faileth me,
be thou my strength and my guide unto death; that I may reckon my years, and
apply my heart unto wisdom; and at last, after the spending a holy and a
blessed life, I may be brought unto a glorious eternity, through Jesus Christ
our Lord. Amen.
(Then add the form of thanksgiving formerly
described.)
O eternal God, to whom do live the spirits of them that depart hence in the
Lord, and I whom the souls of them that be elected, after they be delivered
from the burden of the flesh, be in peace and rest from their labours, and
their works follow them, and their memory is blessed; I bless and magnify thy
holy and ever-glorious name, for the great grace and blessing manifested to thy
apostles and martyrs, and other holy persons, who have glorified thy name in
the days of their flesh, and have served the interest of religions and of thy
service; and this day we have thy servant (name the apostle, or martyr, etc.)
in remembrance whom thou hast led through the troubles and temptations of this
world, and now hast lodged in the bosom of a certain hope and great beatitude,
until the day of restitution of all things. Blessed be the mercy and eternal
goodness of God; and the memory of all thy saints is blessed. Teach me to
practise their doctrine, to imitate their lives, following their example, and
being united as a part of the same mystical body by the band of the same faith,
and a holy hope, and a never-ceasing charity. And may it please thee, of thy
gracious goodness, shortly to accomplish the number of thine elect, and to
hasten thy kingdom, that we with thy servant and all others departed in the
true faith and fear of thy holy name, may have our perfect consummation and
bliss, in body and soul, in thy eternal and everlasting kingdom. Amen.
All praise, honour, and glory be to the holy and eternal Jesus. I adore thee, O
blessed Redeemer, eternal God, the light of the Gentiles, and the glory of
Israel; for thou hast done and suffered for me more than I could wish; more
than I could thing of; even all that a lost and a miserable perishing sinner
could possibly need.
Thou wert afflicted with thirst and hunger,
with heat and cold, with labours and sorrows, with hard journeys and restless
nights; and when thou wert contriving all the mysterious and admirable ways of
paying our scores, thou didst suffer thyself to he designed to slaughter by
those for whom in love thou wert ready to die.
"What is man, that thou art mindful of him; and
the Son of man, that thou visited him?"
Blessed be thy name, O holy Jesus; for thou
wentest about doing good, working miracles of mercy, healing the sick,
comforting the distressed, instructing the ignorant, raising the dead,
enlightening the blind, strengthening the lame, straightening the crooked,
relieving the poor, preaching the gospel, and reconciling sinners by the
mightiness of thy power, by the wisdom of thy Spirit, by the word of God, and
the merits of thy passion, thy healthful and bitter passion.
"Lord, what is man that thou art mindful of him,"
etc.
Blessed by thy name, O holy Jesus, who wert
content to be conspired against by the Jews, to be sold by thy servant for a
vile price, and to wash the feet of him that took money for thy life, and to
give to him and to all thy apostles thy most holy body and blood, to become a
sacrifice for their sins, even for their betraying and denying thee; and for
all my sins, even for my crucifying thee afresh, and for such sins, which I am
ashamed to think, but that the greatest of my sins magnify the infiniteness of
thy mercies, who didst so great things for so vile a person.
"Lord, what is man,"etc.
Blessed be thy name, O holy Jesus, who, being to
depart the world, didst comfort thy apostles, pouring out into their ears and
hearts treasures of admirable discourses; who didst recommend them to thy
Father with a mighty charity, and then didst enter into the garden set with
nothing but briars and sorrows, where thou didst suffer a most unspeakable
agony, until the sweat didst sigh and groan, and fall flat upon the earth, and
pray, and I had deserved, and thou sufferest.
"Lord, what is man," etc.
Blessed be thy name, O holy Jesus, who hast
sanctified to us all our natural infirmities and passions, by vouchsafing to be
in fear and in trembling and sore amazement, by being bound and imprisoned, by
being harassed and dragged with cords of violence and rude hands, by being
drenched in the brook in the way, by being sought after like a thief, and used
like a sinner who wert the most holy and the most innocent, cleaner than an
angel and brighter than the morning star.
"Lord, what is man," etc.
Blessed by thy name, O holy Jesus, and blessed by
thy loving kindness and pity, by which thou didst neglect thine own sorrows,
and go to comfort the sadness of thy disciples, quickening their dulness,
encouraging their duty, arming their weakness with excellent precepts against
the day of trial. Blessed be that humility, encouraging their duty, arming
their weakness with excellent precepts against the day of trial. Blessed be
that humility and sorrow of thine, who, being Lord of the angels, yet wouldest
need and receive comfort from thy servant, the angel; who didst offer thyself
to thy persecutors, and madest them able to seize thee; and didst receive the
traitor's kiss, and sufferedst a veil to be thrown over thy holy face, that thy
enemies might not presently be confounded by so bright a lustre; and wouldst do
a miracle to cure a wound of one of thy spiteful enemies; and didst reprove a
zealous servant in behalf of a malicious adversary; and then didst go like a
lamb to the slaughter, without noise or violence or resistance, when thou
couldst have commanded millions of angels for thy guard and rescue.
"Lord, what is man," etc.
Blessed be thy name, O holy Jesus, and blessed be
that holy sorrow thou didst suffer, when thy disciples fled, and thou wert left
alone in the hands of cruel men, who, like evening wolves, thirsted for a
draught of thy best blood, and thou wert led to the house of Annas, and there
asked ensnaring questions, and smitten on the face by him whose ear thou hadst
but lately healed; and from thence wert fragged to the house of Caiaphas; and
there all night didst endure spittings, affronts, scorn, contumelies, blows,
and intolerable insolences; and all this for man, who was thy enemy, and the
cause of all thy sorrows.
"Lord, what is man," etc.
Blessed be thy name, O holy Jesus, and blessed be
thy mercy, who, when thy servant Peter denied thee and forsook thee and
forswore thee, didst look back upon him, and by that gracious and chiding look
didst call him back to himself and thee; who wert accused before the
high-priest and railed upon, and examined to evil purposes, and with designs of
blood; who wert declared guilty of death for speaking a most necessary and most
probable truth; who wert sent to Pilate and found innocent, and sent to Herod
and still found innocent, and wert arrayed in white, both to declare thy
innocence and yet to deride thy person, and wert sent back to Pilate, and
examined again, and yet nothing but innocence found in thee, and malice round
about thee to devour faith, which yet thou wert more desirous to lay down for
them than they were to take it from thee.
"Lord, what is man," etc.
Blessed be thy name, O holy Jesus, and blessed be
that patience and charity, by which for our sakes thou wert content to be
smitten with canes, and have that holy face, which angels with joy and wonder
do behold, be spit upon, and be despised, when compared with Barabbas, and
scourged most rudely with unhallowed hands, till the pavement was purpled with
that holy blood, and condemned to a sad and shameful, a public and painful
death, and arrayed in scarlet, and crowned with thorns, and stripped naked and
then clothed, and loaden with the cross, and tormented with a tablet stuck with
nails at the fringes of thy garment, and bound hard with cords, and dragged
most vilely and most piteously, till the load was too great, and did sink thy
tender and virginal body to the earth; and yet didst comfort the weeping women,
and didst more pity thy persecutors than thyself, and wert grieved for the
miseries of Jerusalem to come forty years after, more than for thy present
passion.
"Lord, what is man," etc.
Blessed be thy name, O holy Jesus, and blessed be
that incomparable sweetness and holy sorrow which thou sufferedst, when thy
holy hands and feet were nailed upon the cross, and the cross, being set in a
hollowness of the earth, did in the fall rend the wounds wider, and there,
naked and bleeding, sick and faint, wounded and despised, didst hang upon the
weight of thy wounds three long hours, praying for thy persecutors, satisfying
thy Father's wrath, reconciling the penitent thief, providing for thy holy and
afflicted mother, tasting vinegar and gall; and when the fulness of thy
suffering was accomplished, didst give thy soul into the hands of God, and
didst descent to the regions of longing souls, who waited for the revelation of
this thy day in their prisons of hope: and then thy body was transfixed with a
spear, and issued forth two sacraments, water and blood, and thy body was
composed to burial, and dwelt in darkness three days, and three nights.
"Lord, what is man, that thou art mindful of him,
and the son of man, that thou thus visited him?"
The Prayer.
Thus, O blessed Jesus, thou didst finish thy holy passion with pain and anguish
so great, that nothing could be greater than it, except thyself and thine own
infinite mercy: and all this for man, even for me, than whom nothing could be
more miserable, thyself only excepted, who becamest so by undertaking our guilt
and our punishment. And now, Lord, who hast done so much for me, be pleased
only to make it effectual to me, that it may not be useless and lost as to my
particular, lest I become eternally miserable, and lost to all hopes and
possibilities of comfort. All this deserves more love than I have to give; but,
Lord do thou turn me all into love, and all my love into obedience , and let my
obedience be without interruption, and there I hope thou wilt accept such a
return as I can make. Make me to be something that thou delightest in, and thou
shalt have all that I am or have from thee, even whatsoever thou makest fit for
thyself. Teach me to live wholly for my Saviour Jesus, and to be ready to die
for Jesus, and to be conformable to his life and sufferings, and to be united
to him by inseparable unions, and to own no passions but what may be servants
to Jesus and disciples of his institution. O sweetest Saviour, clothe my soul
with thy holy robe; hide my sins in thy wounds, and bury them in thy grave; and
let me rise in the life of grace, and abide and grow in it, till I arrive at
the kingdom of glory. Amen.
"Our Father," etc.
Ad. Sect. 7,8,10.
A Form of Prayer or Intercession for all Estates of People in the Christian
church. The parts of which may be added to any other forms; and the whole
office, entirely as it lies, is proper to be said in our preparation to the
Holy Sacrament, or on the day of celebration.
1. For Ourselves.
O thou gracious Father of mercy, Father of
our Lord Jesus Christ, have mercy upon thy servants, who bow our heads and our
knees and our hearts to thee; pardon and forgive us all our sins; give us the
grace of holy repentance, and a strict obedience to thy holy word; strengthen
us in the inner man with the power of thy Holy Ghost for all the parts and
duties of our calling and holy living; preserve us for ever in the unity of the
holy catholic church, and in the integrity of the Christian faith, and in the
love of God and of our neighbours, and in hope of life eternal. Amen.
2. For the whole Catholic Church.
O holy Jesus, King of the saints, and Prince
of the catholic church, preserve thy spouse, whom thou hast purchased with thy
right hand, and redeemed and cleansed with thy blood; the whole catholic church
from one end of the earth to the other; she is founded upon a rock, but planted
in the sea. O, preserve her safe from schim, heresy, and sacrilege. Unite all
her members with the bands of faith, hope, and charity, and an external
communion, when it shall seem good in thine eyes. Let the daily sacrifice of
prayer and sacramental thanksgiving never cease, but be for ever presented to
thee, and for ever prevail for the obtaining for every of its members grace and
blessing, pardon and salvation. Amen.
3. For all Christian Kings, Princes, and Governors.
O King of kings and Prince of all the rulers
of the earth, give thy grace and Spirit to all Christian princes, the spirit of
wisdom nor counsel, the spirit of government and godly fear. Grant unto them to
live in peace and honour, that their people may love and fear them, and they
may love and fear God. Speak good unto their hearts concerning the church, that
they may be nursing fathers to it, fathers to the fatherless, judges and
avengers of the cause of widows; that they may be compassionate to the wants of
the poor, and the groans of the oppressed; that they may not vex or kill the
Lord's people with unjust or ambitious wars; but may feed the flock of God, and
may inquire after and do all things which may promote peace, public honesty,
and holy religion; so administering things present that they may not fail of
the ever-lasting glories of the world to come, where all thy faithful people
shall reign kings for ever. Amen.
4. For all the Orders of them that minister about Holy Things.
O thou great Shepherd and Bishop of our
souls, holy and eternal Jesus, give unto thy servants the ministers of the
mysteries of Christian religion, the spirit of prudence and sanctity, faith and
charity, confidence and zeal, diligence and watchfulness, that they may declare
thy will unto the people faithfully, and dispense thy sacraments rightly, and
intercede with thee graciously and acceptably for thy servants. Grant, O Lord,
that by a holy life and a true belief, by well-doing and patient suffering,
(when thou shalt call them to it,) they may glorify thee, the great lover of
souls, and, after a plentiful conversion of sinners from the errors of their
ways, they may shine like the stars in glory. Amen.
Give unto thy servants, the bishops, a discerning
spirit, that they may lay hands suddenly on no man, but may depute such persons
to the ministries of religion who may adorn the gospel of God, and whose lips
may preserve knowledge and such who by their good preaching and holy living may
advance the service of the Lord Jesus. Amen.
5. For our nearest Relatives, as Husband, Wife, Children, Family, etc.
O God of infinite mercy, let thy loving mercy
and compassion descent upon the head of thy servants: (my wife, or husband,
children, and family) be pleased to give them health of body and of spirit, a
competent portion of temporals, so as may with comfort support them in their
journey to heaven: preserve them from all evil and sad accidents, defend them
in all assaults of their enemies, direct their persons and their actions,
sanctify their hearts and words and purposes; that we all may, by the bands of
obedience and charity, be united to our Lord Jesus, and, always feeling thee
our merciful and gracious Father; may become a holy family discharging our
whole duty in all our relations; that we in this life being thy children by
adoption and grace, may be admitted into thy holy family hereafter, for ever to
sing praises to thee in the church of the first-born, in the family of thy
redeemed ones. Amen.
6. For our Parents, our Kindred in the Flesh, our Friends and
Benefactors.
O God, merciful and gracious, who hast made
(my parents) my friends and my benefactors ministers of thy mercy, and
instruments of Providence to thy servant, I humbly beg a blessing to descend
upon the heads of (name the persons or the relations). Depute thy holy angels
to guard their persons, thy Holy Spirit to guide their souls, thy providence to
minister to their necessities; and let thy grace and mercy preserve them from
the bitter pains of eternal death, and bring them to everlasting life, through
Jesus Christ. Amen.
7. For all that lie under toe Rof of War, Famine, Pestilence; to be said in
the Time of Plague, or War, etc.
O Lord God Almighty, thou art our Father, we
are thy children; thou art our Redeemer, we thy people, purchased with the
price of thy most precious blood; let not thy whole displeasure arise, lest we
be consumed and brought to nothing. Let health and peace lie within our
dwellings; let righteousness and holiness dwell for ever in our hearts, and be
expressed in all our actions, and the light of thy countenance be upon us in
all our sufferings, that we may delight in the service and in the mercies of
God for ever. Amen.
O gracious Father and merciful God, if it be thy
will, say unto the destroying angel, "It is enough;" and though we are not
better than our brethren, who are smitten with the rod of God, but much worse,
yet may it please thee, even because thou art good, and because we are timorous
and sinful, not yet fitted for our appearance, to set thy mark upon our
foreheads, that thy angel, the minister of thy justice, may pass over us and
hurt us not; let thy hand cover thy servants and hide us in the clefts of the
rock, in the wounds of the holy Jesus, from the present anger that is gone out
against us; that though we walk through the valley of the shadow of death, we
may fear no evil, and suffer none; and those whom thou hast smitten with thy
rod support with thy staff, and visit them with thy mercies and salvation,
through Jesus Christ.
8. For all Women with Child, and for unborn Children.
O Lord God, who art the Father of them that
trust in thee, and showest mercy to a thousand generations of them that fear
thee; have mercy upon all women great with child; be pleased to give them a
joyful and a safe deliverance; and let thy grace preserve the fruit of their
wombs, and conduct them to the holy sacrament of baptism; that they, being
regenerated by thy Spirit, and adopted into thy family, and the portion and
duty of sons, may live to the glory of God, to the comfort of their parents and
friends, to the edification of the Christian commonwealth, and the salvation of
their own souls, through Jesus Christ. Amen.
9. For all Estates of Men and Women in the Christian Church.
O holy God, King eternal, out of the infinite
storehouses of thy grace and mercy, give unto all virgins chastity and a
religious spirit; to all persons dedicated to thee and to religion, continence
and meekness and active zeal and an unwearied spirit; to all married pairs,
faith and holiness; to widows and fatherless, and all that are oppressed, thy
patronage, comfort, and defence; to all Christian women, simplicity and
modesty, humility and chastity, patience and charity; give unto the poor, to
all that are robbed and spoiled of their goods, a competent support, and a
contented spirit, and a treasure in heaven hereafter; give unto prisoners and
captives, to them that toil in the mines, and row in the gullies, strength of
body and of spirit, liberty and redemption, comfort and restitution; to all
that travel by land, thy angel for their guide, and a holy and prosperous
return: to all that travel by sea, freedom from pirates and shipwreck, and
bring them to the haven where they would be; to distressed and scrupulous
consciences, to melancholy and disconsolate persons, to all that are afflicted
with evil and unclean spirits, give a light from heaven, great grace, and
proportionable comforts and timely deliverance; give them patience and
resignation; let their sorrows be changed into grace and comfort, and let the
storm waft them certainly to the regions of rest and glory.
Lord God of mercy, give to thy martyrs,
confessors, and all thy persecuted, constancy and prudence, boldness and hope,
a full faith and a never-failing charity. To all who are condemned to death, do
thou minister comfort, a strong, a quiet, and a resigned spirit; take from them
the fear of death, and all remaining affections to sin, and all imperfections
of duty, and cause them to die full of grace, full of hope. And give to all
faithful, and particularly to them who have recommended themselves to the
prayers of thy unworthy servant, a supply of all their needs temporal and
spiritual, and, according to their several states and necessities, rest and
peace, pardon and refreshment, and show us all a mercy in the day of judgment.
Amen.
Give, O Lord, to the magistrates equity,
sincerity, courage, and prudence, that they may protect the good, defend
religion, and punish the wrong-doers. Give to the nobility wisdom, valour, and
loyalty; to merchants, justice and faithfulness, to all artificers and labours,
truth and honesty; to our enemies, forgiveness and brotherly kindness.
Preserve to us the heavens and the air in
healthful influence and disposition, the earth in plenty, the kingdom in peace
and good governments, our marriages in peace, and sweetness, and innocence of
society, thy people from famine and pestilence, our houses from burning and
robbery, our persons from being burnt alive, from banishment and prison, from
widowhood and destitution, from violence of pains and passions, from tempests
and earthquakes, from inundation of waters, from rebellion or invasion, from
impatience and inordinate cares, from tediousness of spirit and despair, from
murder, and all violent, accursed, and unusual deaths, from the surprise of
sudden and violent accidents, from passionate and unreasonable fears, from all
thy wrath, and from all our sins, good Lord, deliver and preserve thy servants
for ever. Amen.
Repress the violence of all implacable, warring,
and tyrant nations; bring home unto thy fold all that are gone astray; call
into the church all strangers; increase the number and holiness of thine own
people; bring infants to ripeness of age and reason; confirm all baptized
people with thy grace and with thy Spirit; instruct the novices and new
Christians; let a great grace and merciful providence bring youthful persons
safely and holily through the indiscretions, and passions, and temptations of
their younger years; and to those whom thou hast or shalt permit to live to the
age of a man, give competent strength and wisdom, take from them covetousness
and churlishness, pride and impatience; fill them full of devotion and charity,
repentance and sobriety, holy thoughts and longing desires after heaven and
heavenly things; give them a holy and a blessed death, and to us all a joyful
resurrection, through Jesus Christ, our Lord. Amen.
Ad. Sect. 10.
The just preparation to this holy feast
consisting principally in a holy life, and consequently in the repetition of
the acts or all virtues, and especially of faith, repentance, charity, and
thanksgiving; to the exercise of these four graces, let the person that intends
to communicate, in the times set apart for his preparation and devotion, for
the exercise of his faith recite the prayer or litany of the passion; for the
exercise of repentance, the form of confession of sins with the prayer annexed;
and for the graces of thanksgiving and charity, let him use the special forms
of prayer above described. Or if a less time can be allotted for preparatory
devotion, the two first will be the more proper, as containing in them all the
personal duty of the communicant. To which, upon the morning of that holy
solemnity, let him add
An Act of Love.
O most gracious and eternal God, the helper
of the helpless, the comforter of the comfortless, the hope of the afflicted,
the bread of the hungry, the drink of the thirsty, and the Saviour of all them
that wait upon thee; I bless and glorify thy name, and adore thy goodness, and
delight in thy love, that thou hast once more given me the opportunity of
receiving the greatest favour which I can receive in this world, even the body
and blood of my dearest Saviour. O take from me all affection to sin or vanity;
let not my affections dwell below, but soar upwards to the element of love, to
the seat of God, to the regions of glory, and the inheritance of Jesus; that I
may hunger and thirst for the bread of life, and the wine of elect souls, and
may know no loves but the love of God, and the most merciful Jesus. Amen.
An Act of Desire.
O blessed Jesus, thou hast used many arts to
save me, thou hast given thy life to redeem me, thy Holy Spirit to sanctify me,
thyself for my example, thy word for my rule, thy grace for my guide, the fruit
of thy body hanging on the tree of the cross for the sin of my soul; and, after
all this, thou hast sent thy apostles and ministers of salvation to call me, to
importune me, to constrain me to holiness, and peace, and felicity. O now come,
Lord Jesus, come quickly: my heart is desirous of thy presence and thirsty of
thy grace, and would entertain thee, not as a guest, but as an inhabitant, as
the Lord of all my faculties. Enter in and take possession, and dwell with me
for ever; that I also may dwell in the heart of my dearest Lord, which was
opened for me with a spear and love.
An Act of Contrition.
Lord, thou shalt find my heart full of cares
and worldly desires, cheated with love of riches, and neglect of holy things,
proud and unmortified, false and crafty to deceive itself, intricated and
entangled with difficult cases of conscience, with knots which my own wildness
and inconsideration and impatience have tied and shuffled together. O my
dearest Lord, if thou canst behold such an impure seat, behold the place to
which thou art invited is full of passion and prejudice, evil principles and
evil habits, peevish and disobedient, lustful and intemperate, and full of sad
remembrances, that I have often provoked to jealousy and to anger thee my God,
my dearest Saviour, him that died for me, him that suffered torments for me,
that is infinitely good to me, and infinitely good and perfect in himself.
This, O dearest Saviour, is a sad truth, and I am heartily ashamed, and truly
sorrowful for it, and do deeply hate all my sins, and am full of indignation
against myself for so unworthy, so careless, so continued, so great a folly:
and humbly beg of thee to increase my sorrow, and my care, and my hatred
against sin; and make my love to thee swell up to a great grace, and then to
glory and immensity.
An Act of Faith.
This indeed is my condition; but I know, O
blessed Jesus, that thou didst take upon thee my nature, that thou mightest
suffer for my sins, and thou didst suffer to deliver me from them and from thy
Father's wrath; and I was delivered from this wrath, that I might serve thee in
holiness and righteousness all my days. Lord, I am as sure thou didst the great
work of redemption for me and all mankind, as that I am alive. This is my hope,
the strength of my spirit, my joy and my confidence; and do thou never let the
spirit, my joy and my confidence; and do thou never let the spirit of unbelief
enter into me and take me from this rock. Here I will dwell, for I have a
delight therein; here I will live, and here I desire to die.
The Petition.
Therefore, O blessed Jesus, who art my
Saviour and my God, whose body is my food, and thy righteousness is my robe,
thou art the priest and the sacrifice, the master of the feast and the feast
itself, the physician of my soul, the light of my eyes, the purifier of my
stains; enter into my heart and cast out from thence all impurities, all the
remains of the old man; and grant I may partake of this holy sacrament with
much reverence, and holy relish, and great effect, receiving hence the
communication of thy holy body and blood, for the establishment of an
unreprovable faith, of an unfeigned love, for the fulness of wisdom, for the
healing my soul, for the blessing and preservation of my body, for the taking
out the sting of temporal death, and for the assurance of a holy resurrection;
for the ejection of all evil from within me, and the fulfilling all thy
righteous commandments; and to procure for me a mercy and a fair reception at
the day of judgment, through thy mercies, O holy and ever-blessed Saviour
Jesus.
(Here also may be added the prayer after
receiving the cup.)
Like as the hart desireth the water-brooks,
so longeth my soul after thee, O God. My soul is athirst for God, yea, even for
the living God; when shall I come before the presence of God? Psalm
xiii.1,2.
O Lord my God, great are thy wondrous works which
thou hast done; like as be also thy thoughts, which are to us ward: and yet
there is no man that ordereth them unto thee. Psalm xi. 6.
O send out thy light and thy truth, that they may
lead me, and bring me unto thy holy hill and to thy dwelling; and that I may go
unto the altar of God, even unto the God of my joy and gladness; and with my
heart will I give thanks to thee, O God my God. Psalm xliii.3,4.
I will wash my hands in innocence, O Lord, and so
will I go to thine altar: that I may show the voice of thanksgiving, and tell
of all thy wondrous works. Psalm xxvi. 6,7.
Examine me, O Lord, and prove me, try thou my
reins and my heart. For thy loving-kindness is now and ever before my eyes; and
I will walk in thy truth. Verse 2,3.
Thou shalt prepare a table before me against them
that trouble me: thou hast anointed my head with oil, and my cup shall be full.
But thy loving-kindness and mercy shall follow me all the days of my life, and
I will dwell in the house of the Lord for ever. Psalm xxiii. 5,6.
This is the bread that cometh down from heaven,
that a man may eat thereof and not die. John vi. 50.
Whoso eateth my flesh, and drinketh my blood,
dwelleth in me and I in him, and hath eternal life abiding in him; and I will
raise him up at the last day. Verse 54, 56.
Lord, whither shall we go but to thee? thou hast
the words of eternal life. John, vi. 68.
If any man thirst, let him come unto me and
drink. John, vii. 37.
The bread which we break, is it not the
communication of the body of Christ? and the cup which we drink, is it not the
communication of the blood of Christ? 1 Cor. x.16.
What are those wounds in thy hands? They are
those with which I was wounded in the house of my friends. Zech. xiii. 6.
Immediately before the receiving, say,
Lord, I am not worthy that thou shouldest
enter under my roof. But do thou speak the word only, and thy servant shall be
healed. Matt. viii. 8.
Lord, open thou my lips, and my mouth shall show
thy praise. O God, make speed to save me: O Lord, make haste to help me.
Come, Lord Jesus, come quickly.
After receiving the consecrated and blessed
Bread, say,
O taste and see how gracious the Lord is:
blessed is the man that trusteth in him. The beasts do lack and suffer hunger;
but they which seek the Lord shall want no manner of thing that is good. Lord,
what am I, that my Saviour should become my food; that the Son of God should be
the meat of worms, of dust and ashes, of a sinner, of him that was his enemy?
But this thou hast done to me, because thou art infinitely good and wonderfully
gracious, and lovest to bless every one of us, in turning us from the evil of
our ways. Enter into me, blessed Jesus, let no root of bitterness spring up in
my heart; but be thou Lord of all my faculties. O let me feed on thee by faith,
and grow up by the increase of God to a perfect man in Christ Jesus. Amen.
Lord, I believe: help mine unbelief.
Glory be to God the Father, Son, etc.
After receiving the Cup of Blessing.
It is finished. Blessed be the mercies of
God revealed to us in Jesus Christ. O blessed and eternal High-priest, at the
sacrifice of the cross, which thou didst once offer for the sins of the whole
world, and which thou dost now and always represent in heaven to thy Father by
thy never-ceasing intercession, and which this day hath been exhibited on thy
holy table sacramentally, obtain mercy and peace, faith and charity, safety and
establishment to thy holy church, which thou hast founded upon a rock, the rock
of a holy faith; and let not the gates of hell prevail against her, nor the
enemy of mankind take any soul out of thy hand, whom thou hast purchased with
thy blood, and sanctified by thy spirit. Preserve all thy people from heresy
and division of spirit, from scandal and the spirit of delusion, from sacrilege
and hurtful persecutions. Thou, O blessed Jesus, didst die for us; keep me for
ever in holy living, from sin and sinful shame, in the communion of thy church,
and thy church is safety and grace, in truth and peace, unto thy second coming.
Amen.
Dearest Jesus, since thou art pleased to enter
into me, O be jealous of thy house and the place where thine honour dwelleth:
suffer no unclean spirit or unholy thought to come near thy dwelling, lest it
defile the ground where thy holy feet have trod. O teach me so to walk, that I
may never disrepute the honour of my religion, nor stain the holy robe which
thou hast now put upon my soul, nor break my holy vows which I have made, and
thou hast sealed, nor lose my right of inheritance, my privilege of being
co-heir with Jesus, into the hope of which I have no further entered: but be
thou pleased to love me with the love of a father, and of a brother, and a
husband, and a lord; and make me to serve thee in the communion of saints, in
receiving the sacrament, in the practice of all holy virtues, in the imitation
of thy life, and conformity to thy sufferings: that I, having now put on the
Lord Jesus may marry his loves and his enmities, may desire his glory, and may
obey his laws, and be united to his Spirit, and in the day of the Lord I may be
found having on the wedding-garment, and bearing in my body and soul the marks
of the Lord Jesus, that I may enter into the joy of my Lord, and partake of his
glories for ever and ever. Amen.
Ejaculations to be used any time that Day,
after the Solemnity is ended.
Lord, if I had lived innocently, I could
not have deserved to receive the crumbs that fall from thy table. How great is
thy mercy, who hast feasted me with the bread of virgins, with the wine of
angels, with manna from heaven!
O when shall I pass from this dark glass, from
this veil of sacraments, to the vision of thy eternal clarity? from eating thy
body, to beholding thy face in thy eternal kingdom?
Let not my sins crucify the Lord of life again:
let it never he said concerning me, `The hand of him that betrayeth me is with
me on this table.'
O that I might love thee as well as ever any
creature loved thee! Let me drink nothing but thee, desire nothing but thee,
enjoy nothing but thee.
O Jesus, be a Jesus unto me. Thou art all things
unto me. Let nothing ever please me but what savours of thee and thy miraculous
sweetness.
Blessed be the mercies of our Lord, who of God is
made unto me wisdom, and righteousness, and sanctification, and redemption.
`He that glorieth, let him glory in the Lord.'
Amen.
THE END
[1] He had taken the degree of Master of Arts,
when ordained, about 1633.
[2] Acts, xxviii. 2.
[3] St. Paul confirms this view in the
subsequent verses, (7, etc.) He there again declares that he will not glory of
himself, or of the divine discoveries to him; and that, (7,) directly to
prohibit the temptation to personal vanity, in thus glorying, the actual
revelations made to him were followed by a thorn in the flesh, to keep him
humble, though of the individual mentioned before (2,) he glories with
impunity.
[4] `ufomegou tigos, pws
estin esftein artws feots; eidikaiws estn, efh, kai eugwrows, kai iswe, kai
egeoatws, kai kosmiws, omk esti kai aresws tois feois. Arrian. Epist.
1.i.c.13.
[5] Ezek. xvi. 49
[6] See chap. iv. sect. 6.
[7] S. Bern. de Triplici Custodia.
[8] Laudatur Augustus Caesar apud Lucanum, -
media inter praelia semper Stellarum coelique plagis, superisque vacabat. - x.
186.
[9] Cassian, Bellat. 24. c. xxi.
[10] Plutarch. de Curiosit. c.x.
[11] Jer. xlviii. 10.
[12] fd dn autots
euokiglomtes, ots husrtom, euprepdpdserm dhu apogiam eisaei feromtai. -
Procop. 2 Vandal.
[13] 1 Cor. vii. 5.
[14] 1 Cor. x. 31
[15] Atticus eximie si coenat, lautus,
habetur; Si Rutilus, demens -
[16] Seneca.
[17] Qui turatur ut maechetur, maechus est
magis quam fur.
[18] See Sect. I. of this Chapter, Rule 18.
[19] Seneca, Ep. 113.
[20] St. Chrys. 1. ii. de Compun. Cordis.
[21] St. Greg. Moral. 8, cap. xxv.
[22] St. Bern. lib. de Praecpt.
[23] Publius Mimus
[24] Jer. xxiii. 23, 24.
[25] Heb. iv. 13.
[26] Acts xvii. 28.
[27] feos periecei tg
zoulhdee to tag, retxwgn tou tomtoz wspeg ouaib, outws csixig. Resp. ad
Orthod.
[28] Mat. xviii. 20. Heb. x. 25
[29] 1 Kings, v. 9. Psalm cxxxviii. 1,2.
[30] 1 Cor. iii. 16. 2Cor. vi. 16.
[31] S. Aug. de verbis Dominicis. c. iii.
[32] Psal. xiii. 7,8.
[33] Boeth. 1. v. de Consol.
[34] Isa. xxvi. 12.
[35] Jer. xi. 15, secun. vulg. edit.
[36] In vita S. Anthon.
[37] Psal. x. 11. Ezek. ix.9.
[38] Rev. xi. 17.
[39] Rev. v. 10, 13.
[40] Rev. iv. 10.
[41] Rev. xv. 3.
[42] Psalm ixvi. 1,4,6.
[43] Psalm xxix. 3,4.
[44] Psalm Ixv. 5.
[45] Psalm Ixviii. 5,6.
[46] Isa. xxv. 1.
[47] Psalm 1xv. 6,8.
[48] Psalm 1xxxvi. 8,9.
[49] Psalm xcvi. 3.
[50] Psalm cxxiv. 8.
[51] Psalm 1xxxix. 9.
[52] Psalm 1xxi. 5,6.
[53] Psalm 1xxx. 6.
[54] Psalm cxxv. 4.
[55] Psalm xxv. 5.
[56] Psalm cxxi. 1, etc.
[57] Psalm iv. 4,9.
[58] Rev. xxi. 23.
[59] Rev. xxii. 5.
[60] 2 Pet. iii. 10.
[61] Tu sia nimum vicisi potius quam animus
te, est quod gaudeas.
Qui animum vincunt, quam quos animus, semper prokiores cluent.-Triuum 2.2.
29.
[62] Mouou skiysu posou
pwleis tlu seautou praireaiu, amfrwpe ei rhoeu allo, rh oligou autpu
pwlpads.-Arrian, c. 2.1 i.
[63] filees olugpia
uekhasi:Dei se eutakteiu, auagkotrofeiu apecesfau peratwn, gurmazesxat pmagkhm,
etc. Epict. c. 29. 2. ed.Schw.
[64] 1. Cor. ix. 25.
[65] Apoc. ii. 17.
[66] Desideria tua parvo redime; hoe enim
tantum curare debes, ut desinant.-Senec.
[67] Lic. iii. Eth c. 12. p. 129. ed. Wilk.
[68] Facilius est initia affectuum prohibere,
quam impetum regere.- Senec. ep. 86.
[69] muktiporiau kai
oligaristian.
[70] Nuktiporian kai
oligaristan.
[71] Voluptates abeuntes fessas et poenitentia
plenas, animis nostris natura subjecit, quo minus cupide repetantur. - Seneca.
Laete venire Venus, trists abire solet.
[72] Felix initium, prior aetas contenia
dulcibus arvis; Facileque sera solebat jejunia solvere glande. Boeth. lib. 1.
de Consol. Arbuteos foetus, montanaque fraga legebant.-Ov. M. i. 104.
[73] Cicero vocat Temperantiam ornatum vitae,
in quo decorum illud et honestum situm est.
[74] Plutarch. de Cupid. Divit.
[75] Luke xxi. 34.
[76] Kraipalm apo
pfoteraias aut apo cdizms oino posias.-Schol. in Aristoph. Idem fere
apud Plutarch. Vinolentia animi quandam remissiem et levitatem, ebrietas
futilitatem significat.-Plutarch. de Garrul.
[77] Ecclus. xxxi. 25.
[78] Prov. xxiii. 29; Ecclus. xxxi. 26.
[79] Multa faciunt ebrii quibus sobrii
erubescunt. Senec. Ep. 83, 17.
[80] Prov. xxiii. 33.
[81] Insaniae comes est ira, contubernalis
ebrietas.-Plutarch - Corpus onustum Hesternis vitiis animum quoque
praegravat.-Horat. Ebrietas est voluntaria insania.-Senec.
[82] Ephes. v. 18.
[83] Prov. xxxi. 4.
[84] Alexandrum intemperantia bibendi, et ille
Herculanus ac fatalis scyphus perdidit.-Senec. Ep. 1xxxiii. 21.
[85] Chi ha bevuto tutto il mare, puo bere
anche un trano.-Senec. Ep. 83.
[86] Nil interest, faveas sceleri, an illud
facias.-Senec.
[87] 1 Thess. iv. 3-5.
[88] Virginitas est, in arne corruptibili,
incorruptionis perpetua meditatio-St. Aug. 1. de Virg. c.13.
[89] Apoc. xiv. 4.
[90] Job, xxiv. 15, etc.
[91] Atiria paxm.
[92] Hos. ii. 6.
[93] Appetitus fornicationis anxietas est,
satietas vero poenitentia.- S. Hieron.
[94] 1 Cor. vi. 18.
[95] fxartikai twn
arcwn.
[96] Spiritu principali me confirma.-Psal.
1l.
[97] 1 Cor. vi. 19.
[98] 1 Cor. iii. 17.
[99] Ephes. v. 32.
[100] Apud Aug. de Adulter. Conjug-Plut.
Conjug. Praecept.-Casso saltem delectamine amare quot potiri non licest.
[101] Patellas luxuriae oculos, dixit
Isidorus.
[102] Time videre unde possis cadere, et
noli fieri perversa simplicitate securus.-St. Aug.
[103] Sp. Minucius Pontifex Posthumium
monuit, ne verbis vitae eastimoniam non aequantibus uteretur.-Plut. de Cap. ex
Inim Utilit.
[104] 1 Pet. i. 22.
[105] Nisi fundamenta stirpis jacta sint
probe, Miseros necesse est esse deinceps posteros.-Eurip.
[106] Contra libidinis impetum apprehende
fugam, si vis obtinere victoriam.-St. Aug. Nella guerra d' armr chi fuge
vince.
[107] Quisquis in primo obsitit Repulitqua
amorem, tutus ac victor fuit: Qui blandiendo dulce nutrivit malum, Sero
recusat ferre, quod subiit, jugum.-Senec. Hippol. 134.
[108] In vita S. Pauli.
[109] Benedictus in spinis se volutavit; S.
Martinianus faciem et manus. S. Johanes, cognomento Bonus, calamos acutos inter
ungues et carnem digitorum intrusit. S. Theoctistus in silvia more ferarum
vixit, ne inter Arabes pollueretur.
[110] Venus rosam amat propter fabellam,
quam recitat.-Labanius. Venter mero awstuanus cito despumatur in libidines.-St
Hieron. Il fuoco che non mi scalda, non voglio che mi scotti. - numquid ego a
te Magno prognatam deposco consule - Velataque stola mea cum conferbuit ira?-
Hobat. Serm 1.1. Sat 2.
[111] Danda est opera at matrimonio
devincianur, quod est tutissimum juventutis vinculum.-Plut. de Educ. Lib
[112] Apuleius de Dennon. Socratis.
[113] Ama nesciri et pro nihilo
reputari.-Gerson.
[114] I1villan nobilitado non cognosce
partentado.
[115] Chi del arte sua se vergogna, semqure
vive con vergogna.
[116] Alter alteri satis amplum theatrum
sumus; satis unus, satismullus.-Sen.
[117] Ama l'amico tuo con il difetto suo. In
colloquiis pueri invisi aliis non fient, si non omnino in disputationibus
victoriam sempetr obtinere laborent. Non tantum egregium est scire vincere, sed
etiam posse vinci pulchrum est, ubi victoria est damnosa.-Plut. de Educ.
Liber.
[118] Nihil ita dignum est odio, ut eorum
mores, qui compellantibus se difficiles, praebent.-Plut.
[119] Fabis abstine, dixit Pythagoras. Olim
nam Magistratus per suffragia fabis lata creabantur.-Plut.
[120] Matt. xi. 25.
[121] James, iv. 6.
[122] John, xiii. 15.
[123] Assai commanda, chi ubbidisce al
saggio.
[124] Verum humilem patientia ostendit.-St.
Hier.
[125] Ecclus. vii. 21.-Ne occhi in lettera,
ne mano in tasca, ne orecchi in secreti altrui.
[126] Aiscunm.
[127] Quem Deus tegit vercundiae pallio,
hujus maculas hominibus non ostendit.-Maimon. Can. Eth.
[128] Philip, iv. 8.
[129] At meretrix abigit testem veloque
seraque; Raraque Summaeni fornice rima patet.-Mart. i. 53.
[130] Tuta sit ornatrix: odi quae sauciat
ora Unguibus, et rapta brachia figit acu. Devovet, et tangit Dominae caput
illa, simulque Plorat ad invisas sanguinolenta comas.-Ovid. A.A.3 238.
[131] Isa. iii. 16-18.
[132] 1Tim. ii. 9.
[133] (Edipum curiositas in extremas
conjecit calamitates.-Plut.
[134] Non facta tibi est, si dissimules,
injuris.
[135] Phil. iv. 11,12; 1 Tim. vi. 6; Heb.
xiii.5.
[136] Chi bene mal non puo soffrir, a grand
honor non puo venir
[137] La speranza e il pan de poveri. Non si
male nunc, et olim sic erit.-Hor. ii. 10.
[138] Assai bastra per chi non e ingordo.
[139] Quanto preaestantius esset Numen
aquae, viridi si margine claugeret undas Herba, nec ingenuum violarent marmora
tophum. Juv. iii. 20.
[140] Beatitudo pendet a recis consilliis in
affectionem animi constantern desinentibus.-Plut.
[141] Non te ad omnia laeta genuit, O
Agamemnon, Atreus, Opus est te gaugere et maercre: mortalis enim natus es, et
ut haud veilis; superi sic constucrunt.
[142] Hie in foro beatus esse creditur, Cum
foribus apertis sit suis miserrimus: Imperat mulier, jubet omnia, semper
litigat. Multra adferunt ilt dolorem, nihil mihi - Ferre, quam sortem
patiuntur omnes, Nemo recusat.
[143] Alta fortuna also travaglio apporta.
[144] Da autorita la ceremonia al atto.
[145] Ondeis oe penms
tragyoian snmplmsoi ei rg coreutis.
Bis sex dierum mensura consero ego agros,
Berecynthia arva.
Animusque menus sursum usque evectus ad polum
Decidit humi, et me sic videtur alloqui;
Disea haud nimis magnifacere mortalia. Tantal. in Traged.
[146] James, ii. 5-I.
[147] Matt. vi. 25, etc.
[148] Heb. xiii. 5,6.
[149] Itidem si puer parvulus occidat, aequo
animo ferendum putant; si vero in cunis, ne querendum quidem; atqui hoc
acerbius exegit natura quod dederat. At id quidem in caeteris rebus melius
putatur, aliquam partem quaim nummam attingere.-Senec.
[150] Juvenis relinquit vitam, quem Dii
diligunt.-Menand. Clerc. p. 46.
[151] Rom. xiii 7.
[152] 1 Pet. iv. 10.
[153] Rom. xiii. 1.
[154] Titus iii.I.
[155] 1 Pet. ii. 13.
[156] Heb. xiii. 17.
[157] Rom. xiii. 4.
[158] 1 Pet. ii. 14.
[159] Omittenda potius praevalida ct adulta
vitia, quam hoe adsequi, ut palam fiat, quibus flagitiis impares
simus.-Tacit.
[160] Chi compra il magistrato, forza e, che
vendra la giustitia.
[161] Nalla lex (civilis) sibi soli
conscientiam justitiaw suae debet, sed cis a quibus obsequim expectat-Tertul.
Apolget.
[162] Ephes. vi. 4.
[163] Potior mihi ratio vivendi honeste,
quam et opime dicendividetur.-Quintil. lib. i. cap.2.
[164] Heb. xii.9 Crates apud Plutarch. de
Liber. Educand. 1 Tim. v.4.
[165] 1 Tim. v. 1.
[166] Nurfenfatwn uen
twn erwn patmf eros
Mertrnan exzi, koud euon donein tase.-Eurip. Androm.
988
[167] Liberi sine consensu parentum
contrahere non debeut. Andromache, apud Eurpiden, cum petita fuit ad nuptias,
responidit, patris sui esse sponsalium suorum curam habere; et Achilles, apud
Homerum, regis filiam sine patris sui consensu noluit ducere. II.9, 393. Et
Justinanus Imp. alt. naturali simul et civili rationi congruere, ne filii
ducant uxores citra parentum authoritatem. Simo Terentianus parat abdictionem,
quia Pamphilus clam ipso duxisset uxorem. Istitsmodi sponalia frunt irrita,
nisi velint parentes: at si subsequuta est copula, ne temere rescindantur
connubia, toulue suadent cautiones et pericula. Liberi, autem, quamdiu secundum
leges patrias sui juris non sunt, clandestinas nuptias si ineant, peccant
contra quintum praeceptum, et jus naturale secundarium . Proprie enim loquendo
parentes non habent sive potestatem, sed authoritatem; hebent jus jubendi aut
prohibendi, sed non irritum faciendi. Atque etiam ista authoritas exercenda est
sccudnum aequm et bonum; scil, nt ne morosus et difficilis sit pater. Mater
enim vix habet aliquod juris praeter suasionis et amoris et gratitudinis. Si
autem pater filiam non collocasset ante 25 annos, filia nubere poterat cui
voluerat, ex jure Romanorum. Patrum enim authoritas major aut minor est ex
legibus patriis, et solet extendi ad certam aetatem, et tum exspirat quoad
matrimonium; et est major in filias quam filios.-Num. 30.
[168] Eosdem quos maritus nosse deos et
colere s olos uxor debet; supervacaneis autem religionibus et alienis
superstitionibus fores occludere. Nulli enim deum grata sunt sacra, quae mulier
clanculum et furtim facit-Plutarch. Conjug. Praecept. Gen. 24. Vocemus puellam,
et quaeramus os ejus.- The Duty of Husbands, etc. See Chap ii Sect. 3.
[169] Eoi ue deou tosa
doten -
[170] Kleyasa kala
klerrata aneu anoros tas eupoiad zpoimse.
[171] Laetum esse debet et officiosum mariti
imperium.-Plut. Namque es ei pater et frater, venerandaque mater; nec minus
facit ad dignitatem viri, si mulier eum suum praeceptorem, philosophum,
magistrumque appellet.-Putarch.
[172] Convictio est quasi quaedam intensio
benevolentiae. Inferior matrona suo sit, sexte marito: Non aliter flunt
foemina, virque pares. 18
[173] Mercantia non vuol ne amici ne
parenti.
[174] Surgam ad sponsalia, quia promisi,
quamvis non concoxerim: sed non, si febricitavero: subest enim tacita exceptio,
sipotero, si debebo. Effice ut idem status sit, cum exigitur, qui futi, cum
promitterem. Desitiuere levitas non erit, si aliquid intervenit novi. Eadem
mihi omnia praesta: et idem sum-Seneca. De Benefie. lib. iv. cap.39 Ruhk. voll
iv. p. 197
[175] Brassavol. in exam. simpl.
[176] Caelius Rhod. 1. ix. c. 12. Athenae.
Deipnos. 1. iii.
[177] 1 Thess. iv.6.
[178] Lev. xix. 13; 1 Cor. vi.8; Matt.
x.19.
[179] Chi non vuol rendere, fa mal a
prendere.
[180] Si tua culpa datum est damnum, jure
super his satisfacere te oportet.
[181] Ezek. xxxiii.15.
[182] Goth. 3. Qui laudat servum fugitivum,
tenetur. Non enim oportet laudando augeri maium. - Ulpian. in lib. i. cap. de
servo corrupto.
[183] Etiamsi partem damni dare noluisti, in
totum quasi prudens dederis, tenendus es. Fx toto enim nolaisse debet qui
imprudentia defenditur. Sen. Contr. Involuntarium ortum ex voluntario censetur
pro voluntario.-Strabo.
[184] Pleonektei onsen o
ou bohzhsas crhbasi oi anelenxerian.-Eth. 1. v. c. 4.
[185] Di alloroion ergon
ptaiei onxeis,-Epict.
[186] Non licet suffurari mentem vel
Samaritani.-R. Maimon. Can. Eth.
[187] Sic Vivianus resipuit de injusta
accusatione: apud Cassiodo. 4.41.
[188] Luke, xix. 9.
[189] Gratitude.
[190] These words to be added by a delegate
or inferior.
[191] James, i. 27.
[192] Tit. ii. 12.
[193] Demus, Deum aliquid posse, quod nos
fateamur investigare ion posse.-St. Aug. 1. xxi. c.7. de Civital.
[194] Dial. adver. Lucif.
[195] 2 Cor. xiii 5; Rom. viii. 10.
[196] In rebus miris summa credendi ratio
est omnipotentia Creatoris.-St. Aug.
[197] Enchirid. c. 8.
[198] Jer. ivii. 5.
[199] Di cosi fuoro di credenza, Non vuoler
far speranza.
[200] Mikroyucoi
rakrolnpoi.
[201] Elpis kai sn Tucm,
rega Cairete thn uuun enrn.
Onk eti gar sfeteirois ipiterporai errete arfw
Ouneken in reropessi puluplanees rala este.
Ossa gar atrekews ouk essetai, nmmes in mrin
fasmata, ws en npnw, erxallete, nia t eonta
`aizoite, strofeoite, osons emen nsteron ontas
Enroit un nuentas oper xeuis esti nomsai. Pallad.
Brunk. Anthol. t. ii. p.437.
[202] Heb. ii. 18.
[203] V. Bede.
[204] St. Aug. I. ii Cenfes. c.6.
[205] 1 Cor. xiii.
[206] amoris ut morsum qui vere senserit.
[207] Plutarchus citans carmen de suo
Apolline, adjicit ex Herodoto quasi de suo, De eo os meum continens esto.
[208] Sic Jesus dixit. S. Carpo apud
Dionysium epist. ad Demophilum.
[209] Kalon xe zmlonsfai
en ty kalyt pantote. -Gal. iv. 18.
[210] Phil. iii.6.
[211] Lavora, come se tu avessi a compar
ogni hora; Adora, me se tu avessi a morir allora.
[212] Rom. x.2.
[213] Tit. ii.14; Rev. iii. 16.
[214] 2 Cor. vii.11.
[215] 2 Cor. vii.11.
[216] Luke, xvi. 29,31.
[217] Deut. xxxi.13; Luke, xxiv.45; Matt.
xxii.29; Acts. xv.21; 2 Tim. iii. 16; Rev. i.3.
[218] Jejunium sine eleemosyna, lampas sine
oleo.-St. Aug.
[219] Digiuna assai chi mal mangia.
[220] Chi digiuna, et altro ben non fa.
[221] S. Basil. Monast. Constit. cap. 5.
Cassian. Col 21. cap. 22. Ne per causam necessitatis eo impingamus, ut
voluptatibus scrviamus.
[222] Amunomenoi tmn
hneran.-Naz
[223] Baruch, ii.v.18.
[224] 1 John, iii. 22; John, ix.31; Isa.
iv15, lviii. 5; Mal. iii. 10; 2 Tim. ii.8; Psalm, iv.6, lxvi. 8.
[225] Mark, xi. 24; Jam. i. 6,7.
[226] Rom. xii.12, xv. 30; Col. iv. 12; 1
Thess. iii. 10; Eph. vi. 18.
[227] 1 Pet. iv. 7.
[228] 1 James, v. 16.
[229] Luke, xviii. 1; xxi. 36.
[230] 1 Thess. v. 17.
[231] Phil. iv. 6.
[232] Elta leagomen
Kurte s zeos, pws mlagwnw; mwoe,Ceiras ouk eceis: ouk epoimse soi autas s ceos;
eucou nun kazmmenos opws ai mueat sou mh rewsin apomneai mallon. Arrian,
1.c.16.
[233] Inter sacra et vota, verbis etiam
profanis abstinere.-Tacit.
[234] 1 Tim. ii. 8.
[235] 1 Tim. ii. 2.
[236] Angustum annulum non gesta, disit
Pythag, id est, vitae genus liberum sectare, nec vinculo temetipsum
obstringe.-Plutarch. Sic Novatus novitios suos compulit ad jurandum, ne
unquarm ad Catholicos episcopos redirent.-Euseb. 1. ii. Eccl. Hist.
[237] See the Great Exemplar, Part iii.
Disc. xiv. of the Easiness of Christian religion.
[238] Matt. xxv. 35.
[239] Matt. xxvi. 12; 2 Sam. ii.5.
[240] Nobilis haec esset pietatis rixa
duobus; Quod pro fratre mori vellet uterque prior.-Mart.
[241] Heb. x. 24.
[242] 1 Thess. v. 14.
[243] Pulla prosternit se ad pedes: Miserere
virginitatis meae, ne prostituas hoc corpus sub tam turpi titulo.-Hist. Apol.
Tya.
[244] Laudi ductum apud vet. axya te kai nega neikos epistamenes katepause.
[245] S. Greg. vii. 1. 110. Epist.
[246] Praebeant misericordia ut conservetur
justitia.-St. Aug. Prov. iii. 9.
[247] Decret. ep. tit. de Simonia.
[248] Donum nudum est, nisi consensu
vestiatur, 1. iii. C. de Pactis.
[249] Qui dedit beneficium, taceat; narret,
qui accepti-Sinec.
[250] 2 Cor. ix.7.
[251] Luke, vi. 30; Gal. vi. 10.
[252] 2 Thess. iii. 10. A cavallo, chi non
porta sella, biada non si crivella.
[253] De mendico male meretur, qui ei dat
quod edat aut quod bibat: Nam et illud quod dat perdit, et illi prodcit vitam
ad miseriam.-Trin.
[254] Beatus qui intelligt super egenum et
pauperem.-Psal. A donare e tenere ingegno bisogna avere.
[255] Praemonstro tibi Ut ita te aliorum
miserescat, ne tui alios misereat.-Tri nummus.
[256] Luke, xii.2; Acts, iii.6. Chi ti da un
ossa, non ti verrebbe morto.
[257] 1Pet. i. 22.
[258] 2 Cor. viii. 12.
[259] Matt. vi. 4; xiii.12,33; xxv. 15.
Luke, xi. 41.
[260] Phil. iv.17.
[261] Acts, x.4; Heb. xiii.16; Dan. iv.27.
[262] Nunquam memini me legisse mala morte
mortuum, qui libenter opera charitatis exercuit.-S. Hieron. Ep. ad Nepot.
[263] Coloss. iii. 12.
[264] Nemo alienae viruti invidet, qui
confidit suae.-Cic. contra M Anton.
[265] Homerus, Thersitis maloa mores
describens, makitim summam apposuit, Pelidae inprimis erat atque inimicus
Ulyssi.
[266] Ira cum pectus rapida occupavit,
Futiles linguae jubeo cavere Vana latratus jaculantis.-Sappho.
Turbatus sum, et non sum locutus.-Psalm, xxxix.
[267] Hnati tw ute paiua
katektanon Anfixanatos, Nnpios ouk zxelwn, anf astragaloisi
colwfeis.-Iliad. Y. 87.
[268] Qui pauca requirunt, non multis
excidunt.-Plut.
[269] Homer.
[270] Kai manfanein men,
oia oran mellw kaka fnmos oe kreisswn twn enwn bonlenmatwn.-Medea,
Porson. 1074.
[271] Dieere quid coena possis ingratius
ista?
[272] amaram amaro bilem pharmaco qui
elunt.
[273] Plutar. de Odie et Invidia.
[274] Quid refert igitur quantis jumenta
fatiget Porticibus, quanta nemorum vectetur in umbra, Jugera quot vicina foro,
quas emerit aedes? Nemo malus felix.-Juv. Sat.4.
[275] Ergo solicitae tu causa, pecunia,
vitae es: Per te immaturum mortis adimus iter.-Propert.
[276] Provocet ut segnes animos, rerumque
remotas Ingeniosa vias paulatim exploret egestas.-Claudian.
[277] Prodigio par est in nobilitate
senectus. Hortulus hic, puteusque brevis, nec rest movendus, In tenues plantas
facili diffunditur haustu. Vive bidentis amans, et culti villicus hortl: Unde
epululum possis centum dare Pythagoreis. Est aliquid, quocunque loco, quocunque
recessu, Unius dominum sese fecisse lacertae.-Juven. Sat. iii.
[278] Jer. xiii.17; Joel, ii. 13; Ezak.
xxvii. 31; James, iv. 9.
[279] Hugo de St. Victor.
[280] 1 Cor. xi. 31.
[281] 1 John, i. 9.
[282] Acts. xix. 18.
[283] Prov. xxviii. 13.
[284] Rom. vi.3,4,7; viii.10; xi.22,27;
xiii.13,14. Gal. v.6,24; vi.15. 1 Cor vii.19. 2 Cor.xiii.5. Colos. i.21-23.
Heb. xii.1,14,16; x.16,22. 1 Pet. i.15. 2 Pet.i,3,9,10; iii. 11. 1 John i.6;
iii.8,9; v.16.
[285] Nequam illud verbum, Bene vult, nisi
qui bene facit. Trinummus act. ii. scen. iii.38.
[286] Dandum interstitium
paeniteniae-Tacit.
[287] I peccati et i debiti son sempre piu
di quel che si crede.
[288] Ti oun pros estin
euriskeiu bonfha; tu enantionefoz-Arrian.
[289] Mortem venientem nemo hilaris excipit,
nisi qui ad eam se diu composuerat.
[290] Heb. vii.15.
[291] 2 Cor. v.20.
[292] Luke, xv.7.
[293] Nosti tempora tu Jovis sereni, Cum
fulget placidus, suoque vultn, Quo nil supplicibus solet negare.-Martial. ep.
1.v.6.
[294] Vasa pura ad rem divinam.-Plaut. in
Cap. Act. iv.sc.1.
[295] Discedite ab aris, Queis tulit
hesterna gaudia nocte Venus Tibul ii. 1.12.
[296] Cruei haeremus, sanguinem sugimus, et
inter ipsa Redemporis nostri vulnera, figimus linguam.-Cyprian. de Caena
Dovt.
[297] L'Evaque de Geneve, Introd. a la Vic
Devote.
[298] Psalm cii. 1-4,10.
[299] Psalm xxxviii. 2-4, 18.
[300] Psalm vi.1.
[301] Psalm xli.4.
[302] Psalm li.1.
[303] Psalm xxv.6.
[304] Psalm li.2,10,11.
[305] Psalm xlviii.13.
[306] Psalm xli.3.
[307] Psalm xlix.15.
[308] Psalm lv.4.
[309] Psalm xxxix.6.
[310] Psalm cxix.25.
[311] Psalm cxvi.3.
[312] Psalm 1. 3,4.